JAPAN ITS
ARCHITECTURE, ART, AND
ART MANUFACTURES
JAPAN ITS
ARCHITECTURE, ART, AND
ART MANUFACTURES BY
CHRISTOPH...
271 downloads
2143 Views
28MB Size
Report
This content was uploaded by our users and we assume good faith they have the permission to share this book. If you own the copyright to this book and it is wrongfully on our website, we offer a simple DMCA procedure to remove your content from our site. Start by pressing the button below!
Report copyright / DMCA form
JAPAN ITS
ARCHITECTURE, ART, AND
ART MANUFACTURES
JAPAN ITS
ARCHITECTURE, ART, AND
ART MANUFACTURES BY
CHRISTOPHER DRESSER Ph.D., F.L.S., etc.
LONDON LONGMANS, GREEN, AND
CO.
NEW YORK SCRIBNER AND WELFORD 1882
Printed hy R.
&
R. Clark, Edinburgh.
PREFACE. An
apology
Japan.
is
We
needed
adding to the number of our books on
for
have heard of the ways of the Japanese, of the
pecuHarities of their manners, of their feasts and festivals, of the
food they eat, and of the aspect of the country in which they
My
excuse for writing
An
architect
is
and
a simple one
ornamentist
—
I
by
am
a specialist.
and
profession,
knowledge of many manufacturing processes,
live.
I
went
to
having
Japan
to
observe what an ordinary visitor would naturally pass unnoticed.
As
a specialist, and a specialist only,
When
public notice.
grapher that
I
in
Japan
I
I
submit
edifices,
me
;
but also architectural
engaged the best ornamentist
in
volume to
engaged the best native photo-
could find to take views for
only architectural
this
thus
I
got not
details.
also
I
Kioto to make coloured drawings
of temple decorations for me.
Many public
will
be surprised when
know almost
I
say that as yet the English
nothing, and even our architects very
little,
Coloured illustrations are needed to
of Japanese architecture.
give anything like a complete idea of the glories of Buddhistic art
;
yet
I
hope that
my
book may throw some
little
light
on
Japanese building, and do something towards revealing the fact that
Japan has had a great architectural chromatic
illustrations.
history, although I
Ornament springs from
have no
architecture.
I
PREFACE.
vi
have therefore endeavoured to trace
and
ventional ornament
Drawings of to us
but
;
known
and other peoples associated with
;
that just as the Greeks, Moors,
their architecture certain conven-
is
the
To me
case.
to the time that
I
my
book
from climatic
I
the
fact
was almost
visited the country, although
had been an earnest student of Oriental In
;
Japanese have a national style of conventional
yet this
unknown up
and development
flowers, of birds, of fish, of insects, are all familiar
tional forms, so the
ornament
origin
brought before the English reader.
is
not generally
it is
its
know, the growth of native con-
for the first time, so far as I
I
art for nearly thirty years.
attempt to explain how the architecture resulted
and
religious
influences,
and how the ornaments
with which domestic objects are figured, and the very finish of the objects themselves, are traceable to religious teachings.
As
a guest of the nation,
I
was not only permitted
to enter
sacred edifices (some of which had never before been trodden
European
but
feet),
had also opportunities
I
For the
of art industry.
privileges enjoyed
a debt of gratitude to the I
members of
studying
I
by
all
forms
shall ever feel
under
for
the Japanese Government.
had also the honour of presentation to His Majesty the Mikado,
who
himself ordered that
should have every
I
facility for
seeing
what I wished. While and
Japan
in
this record
me
taken for
I
made
a daily record of what
was roughly
illustrated.
I
saw and did
about a thousand photographs, some being
had a multitude of small coloured drawings ments.
I
visited
sixty -eight
manufacturers engaged
in other industries.
mens of work from most of the
As
potteries,
the country, to
and I
fifteen
twelve.
I
of temple orna-
some
scores
of
also brought speci-
factories visited.
to the temples and shrines,
in
made
;
bought or had
by eighteen, the others about nine inches by
inches
finest
either
I
I
saw about a hundred of the
say nothing of the crowd of temples
PREFACE. nestled together on the top of I
studied minutely.
thousand miles
but
;
vii
Mount Koya-zan, many
In seeing these things
my
I
of which
travelled about
two
stay was short, being limited to four
months. I
mention these
facts so that the
opportunities of study, and
now
I
reader
may
must leave
judge of
my book
in
my his
hands. I
am much
indebted to the painstaking care of Mr. Hundley,
who has drawn
the illustrations on
wood
for
me, and to Mr. G.
Pearson, the well-known wood engraver, who has cut the blocks.
Both these gentlemen have exerted themselves
manner I
have also to acknowledge the services of
I
to
the kindest
to render the illustrations such as I wished.
acted as
book
in
my
amanuenses, and thus rendered
be written during a long and painful
most of the
suffered while
willing assistance
Tower
was of great value
Cressy,
NoTTiNG Hill, London, W., Oclobcr
1
letter -press
88 1.
to me.
my it
daughters,
who
possible for the
illness
from which
was prepared.
Their
CONTENTS. PART
I.
CHAPTER
I.
— The Grand Hotel — Sights — —Japanese — Sachi—Yedo, or Tokio — Letter-writing—The Castle—Winter Japan — Temple Pages 1-18 of Shiba — Tombs of the Shoguns
Yokohama
in the Streets
^Jinrikishas
.....
hospitality
in
CHAPTER —A — Eating
Yokohama
fire
in
— A Japanese banquet— — Hara-kiri —The Mikado— The
....
— The Hamagoten palace
CHAPTER Preparation for long journey
—A
feast night
— Kioto —The
Year
19-62
HI.
to
antiquities
CHAPTER sacred dance
New
— By water Kobe— Entrance of —The Mikado's
Awadji, Sanda, Arima, Nara
The
— Music — Tokio firemen
^Japanese dancing-girls
the hotel
a live fish
Japanese matting
n.
the .
Mikado .
into
Kobe .63-103
IV.
royal collections
— Osaka
104-12:
CONTENTS.
CHAPTER The Japanese Calendar zan
— Splendour
Return
to
Osaka
— Wakayama—Japanese
of shrines and of scenery
— Feast of the god of
cold and Japanese vegetation
— Sakai — News of
riches
.
CHAPTER Temple
of Kioto
—^Japanese estimate
Lacquer-work gaura
—Value
— Kamiji-yama
.
.
— Koya-
Salsuma
Pages 124-140
VI.
— Picnics — Honest workmanship — Tea-drinking ceremony— Otsu — Futami-
.
.
.
CHAPTER Tidings of rebellion
revolt in
of Christianity
of Corean ware .
V.
.
141-170
.
VH.
— — Yokkaichi—Manufactures of Nagoya — Comparative estimates — Castle of Nagoya— Sidsuoka— Fujiyama— Return Yokohama Ise
of wealth and skill
to
171-196
CHAPTER A
Shinto festival
......
— Nikko— The
and police supervision
Vni.
great Sanctuary
— Arrival
CHAPTER A
Japanese blue-book carpets, etc.
at
Tokio
—Japanese reports
IX.
.......
— Object
of
my
visit
197-213
— Exportation
of ginger
— Manufacture
of
214-224
CONTENTS.
PART
11.
CHAPTER
CHAPTER
321-344
HI.
.....
The Lacquer Manufactures
CHAPTER
CHAPTER
CHAPTER
Minor Manufactures of Japan
415-430
VI.
by which Fabrics receive Pattern
CHAPTER
368-414
V.
.....
The Metal Manufactures.
345-367
IV.
.....
The Pottery Manufactures
Pages 225-320
n.
...... CHAPTER
On the means
I.
.....
Religion and Architecture
Analogies and Symbols
xi
.
.
431-449
VII.
.....
450-466
JAPAN: ITS
ARCHITECTURE, ART, AND ART MANUFACTURES.
PART
I.
CHAPTER
I.
— The Grand Hotel — Sights the Streets —Jinrikishas —^Japanese hospitality — Sachi — Yedo, or Tokio — I>etter-writing — The Castle —-Winter Japan —Temple of Shiba — Tombs of the Shoguns.
Yokohama
in
in
It was on the 26th day of I
first
As
saw Japan.
December
at
in
the morning that
yet this strange country was enveloped
a soft mist above which the sun was
we could undulating and richly wooded
the mist dispersed
and gorges nestled
6.30
little
see that ;
that in
only just the
land was
some of the
picturesque villages
spots palm-trees, with their
plumous
rising,
;
in
but as
pleasantly
valle}'s, fissures,
sheltered
that in
tops, rose high
above the
houses that found shelter beneath them, and that junks of quaint aspect ploughed the shallow waters of the coast.
A
cry arises from the Japanese passengers,
looking to the I
left
(for
look in the direction
The undulating
we have in
who
several on board)
are earnestly
— Fujiyama!
which they gaze, but see no mountain.
land in front
is
perfectly distinct,
and
out on a background of gray-and-white cloud which
behind
it
;
but
I
see no mountain.
of Japanese friends,
I
thrown
rises
high
the guidance, however,
look above these clouds, and there, at a
vast height, shines the immaculate ^^
Under
is
B
summit of Japan's
peerless
JAPAN
2
cone.
ITS ARCHITECTURE,
:
have seen almost every alpine peak
I
in
the land of Tell
Como
have viewed Monte Rosa from Zermat, Aosta, and
I
have gloried
mountain so pure impressive in
its
in
but never before did
;
imposing
form, so
its
beauty, as that at which
not wonder at the Japanese endowing
do not wonder
I
—
home
mountain
for surely this
Rounding
in
its
we now
see a
I
grandeur, so gaze.
do
I
with marvellous powers
it
;
cone around which clouds love to
this vast
at
sleep being regarded as the
storm,
Jungfrau and the pre-
the wild beauty of the
in
cipitous heights of the Matterhorn
;
I
;
of the dragon is
—
the
demon
of the
one of nature's grandest works
!
promontory we soon enter the bay of Yokohama,
a
two cannon, and drop our anchor.
fire
a few minutes
In
ship
come on board, and
officials
some seek
to take passengers or merchandise on
some bring out servants of the company
A
describe.
scene of
life
and
to
shore,
which our ship
to
belongs, and others a variety of things which
the
Some belong
surrounded by a score of native boats.
is
hotels,
certain
is
impossible to
activity thus springs
up around us
it
A
of a character so novel as to be both interesting and amusing.
small steam-launch
is
now moored
to the side of our great vessel,
and General Saigo, the commander-in-chief of the Japanese army, who is on board, invites me to step into the launch and accompany
him on shore
:
the launch
is
a
Government boat which has been Accepting the kind invitation
sent to convey the General to land.^ I
am
who
soon seated is
in the boat,
where we
with that
warm
affection
towards their children
unknown
in
for his child
;
fellow than he caresses
little
which the Japanese but there
is
I
and
I
is
yet
feel
that the
little
show
at all times
kissing,
for kissing
fellow has not received
almost long to kiss him myself
soon
in
motion, and
in
a
San ?"ranciscu by arrangement, so
that
we might
I
The screw
few minutes
General .Saigo was reluming from America, where
missioner for Japan at the Philadelphia exhibition. at
no
him
is
the East, and while the General manifests his love
launch
his due,
^
No
a cheerful smiling-faced urchin about two years old.
sooner does the father see the
little
find the son of the General,
I
all
of our
stand on
he had acted as the com-
met General
.Saigo
and
his party
travel together to his country.
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART, a
land which, as a decorative
intense
desire to
see,
artist,
whose works
who
admire, and amidst a people
have
I
my
hotel
somewhat resembling shuts back.
and
It
slender
now
I
have already learned to
I
hood that
cab, only with a
two somewhat large wheels,
lightly built, has
is
With the
civilisation.
get into a jinrikisha, a vehicle
hansom
a small
years had an
are saturated with the refine-
ments which spring only from, an old view of reaching
for
3
united together by a tie - piece near their drawn by a man who gets between the shafts
shafts
extremities.
It is
and most ably acts the part of the best of ponies, or sometimes by two, or even three men.
In the latter cases the
tandem
principle
is
adopted, and the leaders are attached to the vehicle by thin ropes.
As soon enough
as to
am
I
my
seated in
contain
my
coolies (for
I
have two)
astonishing,
if
not alarming, and
to the
Grand Hotel
—
which
carriage,
is
scarcely large
somewhat cumbrous body, off with a
set
speed which
my tandem certainly
is
soon find myself at the entrance
I
a European house
—where
I
secure
my
room
(terms three and a half dollars or fourteen shillings a day, including
everything save Breakfast
fire
and wine).
morning was
this
somewhat
neglected,
the
for
excitement of nearing land after a twenty-one days' sea-voyage
had lessened our appetites.
seemed impossible to spare time
It
meal when, with the movement of our vessel through
for a hearty
the water, shifting scenes both strange and beautiful were constantly
presenting themselves
exhilarating shine,
to
our sight.
The
keen, fresh,
the cloudless sky, the bright and cheering sun-
air,
and the gallop through the wind
caused nature to assert
itself
my
in
tiny carriage had
and demand some refreshment
for
the inner man. Sitting
down
hurried meal.
to table at the hotel
Fish,
sequence, as though while
potted
I
entrees,
were
sitting in
grouped on dishes were meats, and Keiller's
partook of a somewhat
I
and joint were presented
tins
in
due
the Grand Hotel at Paris of
Crosse
;
and Blackwell's
Dundee marmalade and jam.
I
confess that while these luxuries were in the most perfect state of preservation,
and
in
every sense enjoyable,
I
was disappointed
in
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
4
seeing such familiar forms of food instead of the tentacle of an octopus, the succulent shoot of a bamboo, the
some other such natives dainties Having finished my meal,
who
my
to act as
is
as
looked
I
am
I
secretary while
fin for.
by a gentleman
joined
am
I
of a shark, or
the country,
in
by
Prince Henri of Liechtenstein, and by Prince Alfred Montenuovo
(two Austrian princes with
whom
from San Francisco), and we
start for a walk, the secretary
We
guide.
nestle
all
villas
—
being our
Yokohama,
character half English and half Japanese
in
Here
lovely gardens, and on to the native town.
in
strange and quaint beyond
is
have been a fellow-passenger
pass through the European settlement of
where beautiful
—
I
The shops
description.
are
without fronts and their floors are raised above the ground by one high step
they are matted, and the goods are displayed on
;
so-called " stage
stands which resemble the
Strange
on
eye
the
every
wonder.
We
interest
which
is
a
ball
looked taken
We
at every turn.
for
her
to
hit
smiles
things,
to
we
— is
a
little
girl
bounces
ascending from
pass by a
which
canal
the is
and on which the strangest of boats of a
enter the precincts
we
Buddhist Temple, but we
off before
home by
the bluffs," from which
crossing
meet
look,
must take our boots "
greenhouse.
a
of
ball
We
again.
hill,
of
we admire, we amusement at the them common, meet us
we
stop,
:
and turns round while the
ground
;
in
at
watch children play,
tunnelled through a float
We
side.
are
"
strange people, strange objects
of food,
articles
cross the threshold.
we have
We
return
a glorious
view of the town and the bay, and by a road which, bordered
by curious fences where strange
(Figs,
trees
i
to 15),
abound.
I
winds
way through
its
nurseries
need scarcely say that we have
enjoyed our walk more than words can
tell.
Indeed
it
would
be almost impossible to describe the impression of novelty
minds
left
some notion of the aspect things I of may remark made by one strange repeat a " of the Austrian princes during the stroll. Had we died," he on
our
said,
"
and
;
risen
be more strange.
but
to
give
the
reader
from the dead the scene presented could not
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART, The
me, and at 8.30 we set out again
princes dine with
time
this
bears a lantern, as
it
by one man, who now dark, and off we go at almost the
is
We
pace of a race-horse.
;
drawn
each
jinrikishas,
in
5
laugh heartily at the shouts of the
men, the bobbing of the lanterns, the shaking of the vehicles,
and the excitement of the furious
we
Here our conductor orders be added
are to
room
for us a native repast, to
which
the pleasures of music and the dance.
The
but there
square,
plain
a
is
European
is
windows, and the doors have European the
and on the mats stand
floor,
glass
these primitive and insignificant
which a Japanese room
and two small
to serve the
is
afford the
fires
warmed.
tables, while
We
vessels
kneel in front of us on the
the natives,
is
who
shortly
brought
in,
rests a dish of sliced raw, unsalted fish, with
being arranged
vinaigrette
veait
if
much
and placed
On
fish
and the condiments are almost
comes
fried fish,
Sachi, although is
in
its
and with
varies
it
European
leaves.
We
taste the dish after
much
sa)-,
tasteless.
made from in quality
;
in
made
it is
not
and
in this
rice.
It is
England as a Like
it is
now
spirit,
alcoholic
all
qualities,
as
we do
drunk both cold and warm, but
hot by admixture with water, but
condition
After the raw
and the Japanese estimate
excellence by flavour, aroma, and other
our port and other wines.
mouths by
the viands have the
hot sachi.
generally regarded
a white beer
reality
drinks, sachi
the
condiments of various
unsuccessful attempts at getting the food to our
the aid of the chop-sticks, but strange to flavours,
in
this tra}-
compliment to us strangers, but chop-sticks
are supplied instead of knives and forks.
many
now been
the French dish of Tcte de
garnished with
tastefully
plates are used out of
like
come
music and dancing,
their
centre of the group of kneeling female attendants.
all
and
;
only means by
Preparations having
floor.
completed, a large lacquer tray
kinds,
(called
are favoured with Chinese
amuse us by
repast, or to
the
Mats cover
fasteners.
two brazen
in
each containing a few bits of ignited charcoal
hibachi),
chairs
one room of which we
front of a large house, into
alight in
enter.
In about fifteen minutes
run.
offered to us.
is itself
warmed
;
Native Drawings of the Fences which bound Garden?
Native Drawings of the Fenxes which eol'nd Gardens.
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
8
cups are usually small earthen vessels of about two
Sachi
diameter,
inches in
cups, or deep saucers.
empty
to the guest
moments cups
if
he
is
after being placed
to drink the
hot water for a few
in
warm.
sachi
serving- maid
second
a
much resembling in character shallow teaThey are without handle, and are offered
pours
empty
Into these
warm
the
from
sachi
a
delicately-formed china bottle.
Following the
and sea-weed
my
and
is
fish
and the wine a dish of sea-slugs with herbs
served, but the mollusc
as tough as leather,
is
powers of mastication are altogether overcome.
the repast, music begins with the samasin
drums
(horizontal harp), together with certain
(the
the taiko), while girls dance to the weird sounds
being graceful but strange.
This over, there
we all leave, take our drawn home at almost lightning
songs, after which
and are
On some
the following morning
care.
tsudzumu and
—
their
motions
singing of native
places in the jinrikishas, speed.
begin to
I
is
After
and the coto
(banjo),
make
observations with
Yesterday everything was so new that impressions
resulted chiefly from general effects, or curious incidents, while details
were passed almost unnoticed.
I
now, however, seem to
be more able to mark accurately what comes before me. ing on the steps of our hotel,
I
noticing the nature of the building in which
taken
up
my
To my
abode.
Stand-
glance upwards with the view of I
have
for the present
astonishment what
I
yesterday
regarded as a solid stone edifice turns out to be a mere wooden
framework bearing on is
This hotel
is
its
surface thin slabs of stone, each of which
through and
drilled partially
is
hung on two common
beautifully situated, having
looking the sea, from which
it
made road. On its As I stand on these
have above
deepest blue, an
right
is
steps
I
ocean
reflecting the azure
is
its
chief face over-
separated by a broad and well-
a canal which here meets the ocean.
rippled
me
a cloudless sky of the
by the smallest of waves, and
The white
of the heavens above.
picturesque boats reflect the rays of the sun, hidden
view by the house crispness,
in front of
due to the
nails.
which
I
stand
slight frost of the
;
night,
of
sails
from
my
while the air has
which makes
it
a'
in
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
the highest degree exhilarating.
and
though
tea, as
instead of being
i
were
I
me
quite
At
reckless fashion.
" field
had a perfect
While asked
me
passed
my
During
and
irresistible,
5.15
day
"
I
my
walk buy,
I
many
find
I
view
curios
a truly
fear, in
tired,
having
amidst the shops.
my room
was dressing. Prince Henri came into
I
London,
set out to
home somewhat
return
ham, eggs,
fish,
table in
I
him and Prince Montenuovo second day in Japan.
to join
find
I
my own
at
2,000 miles from home, and then
the shops and their contents. that are to
breakfast off
I
sitting
9
the following scraps noted
my
in
at dinner.
diary
and
Thus
under date
December 27th. It is customary here to go to a shop to select a number of goods, and then to ask the owner to send all the objects selected to your house, or hotel, for
decide upon at your
you
to look over
The people here are most polite and charming while we were making purchases tea was served to is
by no means
and
strong,
is
;
at
one place
The
us.
tea
pale yellow (almost amber) in colour,
drunk without milk or sugar.
is
and
leisure.
It
is
is
lit
served in small cups
without handles or saucers.
The
native
town of Yokohama
European quarter has
dark
at night
with gas, while the
The
streets.
foreign
settler
objects to a gas rate.
The next morning the northern
Yokohama length,
Japan
is ;
capital)
(the
I
go by appointment to Yedo (Tokio, or
by 9.34
train.
The
port of Tokio) with Tokio
well built,
and
is
eighteen
miles in
one of two railways now existing
the other railway connects
southern capital).
railway connecting is
The Yokohama
Hiogo (Kobe) with Kioto railway
is
in
(the
of specially narrow
gauge, and the carriages are m.ore like omnibuses than any to be
found on our
A
lines
train leaves
—being
Yokohama
every hour of every day mails
;
hence, while
apart, there
every day.
is
small in size and entered at the end. for in
Tokio, and Tokio for Yokohama, the year, and
Yedo and Yokohama
a delivery of letters
in
every train are
eighteen
carries
miles
both places every hour of
JAPAN
lo
These
ARCHITECTURE,
ITS
:
and indeed
places,
the towns of Japan, are now-
all
connected by telegraph wires, by the agenc}' of which messages character or in most of the European
can be sent
in the native
languages
but for conveying a message
;
extra fee
The
a strange tongue an
in
very reasonably demanded.
is
from Yokohama to Yedo
line
the greater portion of
length
its
the bay throughout
skirts
and the scenery along the
;
though curious, presents few features of marked
who happen
female peasantry
dresses, however, of the
route,
The
interest.
to be
in
holiday attire are quaint and pleasing, while the flowing robes of
men contrast favourably with our set and inartistic dress. At Tokio, I am met by General Saigo and Mr. Sekisawa, latter being a gentleman who was one of our part}' from San
the
the
General Saigo has with him his carriage,
Francisco to Japan.
which ''
runner
in
of European
is
more
make, and
common
recently been
introduced
For centuries the inhabitants of towns have been in
that
fact
into
Japan.
the habit of
in
the middle of the streets, for no Japanese town that
member has
a
England
in
rendered necessary by the
is
horse carriages have but
walking
but
;
This practice of employing a running groom
early days.
precede the carriage
to
drawn by a horse
is
precedes the carriage on foot, as was
"
properly
made
footpaths at the sides of the roads
;
I
re-
and
wells imperfectly protected are often situated in front of the shops.
General Saigo
is
a
man
handsome appearance, and
of
bearing, of about thirty-seven years of age
he
is
by no means small of
reach,
the
is
a
room
carpet,
which
in
and
in
it
I
am
in
stately
southerners,^
The
the English style.
received
covered with a
is
"
floor of
tapestry
"
stands an American stove, which can scarcely be
regarded as beautiful, though is
many
His house, which we soon
stature.
wooden building
;
like
it is
probably
of European character, but surely of
The
useful.
furniture
American make, and
in
pattern resembles English furniture prior to 1862.
As we It
sat
on European
had been arranged that
ministers
;
chairs, tea I
should
but Japanese etiquette ^
General Saigo
is
was served
visit
demands
in native
Mr. Sano that
— one
style.
of the
a note be sent
a native of the province of Satsuma.
ART,
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
immediately before the reception
which
I
to ask
visit,
things are ready for the
all
if
General Saigo therefore writes the
;
ii
Japanese
first
letter
have seen written.
His writing-box
is
about
inches in width,
i i
and 2 inches deep, and contains a
i
inches long,
2
somewhat
of fibrous paper
roll
bibulous in character, a stick of Indian ink, a slab on which to
mix the
small water vessel, and a few brushes formed of
ink, a
From
vegetable hairs.
box he takes the
the
roll
of paper, an
inch or two of which he unrolls and arranges as flatly as possible.
He
next mixes a small quantity of ink, and then holding the
of paper in
his
left
viously dipped in the Indian
The
the paper.
first
a vertical column
and so on at the top
the
left
upon the spread out portion of
ink,
character
is
made
at the
second follows immediately under
corner, the
is
and
finished at the
bottom of the
of the previously written columns.
roll,
and folded, and the
box, round which the writer the
box
box the
letter
letter
is
a silk cord.^
ties
to the house of the receiver,
answer comes
and so on,
formed, then a second column
till
written,
is
sheet,
and being
When
the letter
is
by the writing
is
completed, the portion of the paper occupied torn from the
upper right-hand it,
each case the new line of writing being commenced
in
;
roll
hand, begins to write with a brush, pre-
who
placed in a lacquer
A
servant carries
himself takes from the
which has not been touched by the messenger. in like
form saying that
Mr. Sano's house, which outskirts of the
city.
is
to
all is
ready, so
we
An
drive to
a fine old Japanese building near the
Two rooms
Japanese residence are furnished
at
in
least
of this
European
thoroughly
fashion,
and of
the residences belonging to Japanese ministers, or high officials,
which ing,
I
happened
to see, this, as a
was one of the most
specimen of European furnish-
successful.
Mr. Sano was the commissioner representing the
Government
Japanese
at the Vienna International Exhibition in the year
1873, a-r>d during his visit to Europe at this period he seems to have studied most carefully the art industries of the west, and the
nature of our '
manufactures
These boxes are sold
in
;
for
England
the suggestions which he as "glove-boxes.
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
12
made
own people upon
to his
return appear to have proved
his
very valuable to the industries of Japan.
During Mr. Sano's residence
government
his
to
at
make purchases
have an interest
as he thought likely to
the view of their being placed in a
be established
in
Vienna he was requested by of such manufactured objects
Tokio, much
Japanese, with
for the
museum which was about
after the plan of our
to
South Ken-
Museum. Unfortunately the goods selected were lost in Yedo Bay by the foundering there of the vessel which was charIn spite of this dire calamity, an tered to convey them to Japan.
sington
museum
excellent
has been established in Tokio, of which Mr.
Sano was the head and
chief,
the post in favour of Mr. Machida, a in
now relinquished gentleman who has travelled
although he has
Europe, and who both speaks and writes English Mr. Sano
is
a
man
well.
of aristocratic bearing, and decidedly of
He
large stature for a Japanese.
interests himself especially in
the advancement of the art industries of his country which have in
taste through his exertions.
European After
had determined
I
friend Mr. Philip Cunliffe
that
I
from the corrupting influences of
saved
a large degree been
should do what
to leave
Owen (now
my
old
Sir Philip) suggested to
me
England
for
Japan,
could to repair the loss sustained by the
I
Japanese through the wreck of the vessel containing the specimens of European manufactures. I therefore appealed to my manufacturinar
friends
and the
;
was that
result
I
took with
me
to
a collection of objects such as could only prove valuable
Imperial his
Museum.
Sir
Owen gave me
the
introductions to
Excellency Mr. Sano, General Saigo, and other Japanese min-
isters,
friends
and
it
whom
The
is
to
him
I still
visit
I
am
among
indebted for the the leading
men
many
valuable
of Japan.
presentation of this gift from our manufacturers to the
Japanese Government was the object of
to Mr. Sano.
Mr. Sano received (which
that
retain
representatives of the
my
Philip
Tokio to
we
me most
kindl}-.
carried on through the kind
of Mr. Sckisawa) tea was served
During our conversation and
careful
in natixe fashion.
interpretation
After a sump-
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
luncheon, served
tuous
European
in
me
wines, General Saigo takes
Mr. Sano
in
and with European
style
where Mr. Sano and
to the Castle,
Mr. Asami (another of our American party,
13
who
is
engaged under
European works pertaining
translating
met
tures into the Japanese language)
manufac-
to
us.
The Castle, which dates from the year A.D. 1355, was formerly an immense building enclosing gardens. It now stands in the centre of the more modern town of Tokio, which was founded in the year A.D. recent
1
600, and was ultimately built around
wars have destroyed much of
civil
Although
it.
some
this ancient castle,
huge towers and immense battlements, formed of stones of extra-
The
ordinary size remain.
Castle enclosure
broad moat, on the inner side of which
and
fortress:
Europe
is
if
as
ficial
surrounded by a
we may judge from its appearance, no The water of the moat
castle
in
broad,
is
on the outer side considerably above
it
Inside the walls there
a pleasure ground
officials
is
the vast walls of the
more impregnable.
and the roadway skirting its level.
rise
is
during the
of the Government.
a charming garden, used
summer months by
now
the high
In this garden there are small
arti-
lakes and streams of water, which are crossed by picturesque
bridges,
and are
part sheltered
in
by greatly contorted
here also are one or two charming the Castle grounds are not year, General
little
trees
;
and
Although
tea-houses.
usually open at this period of the
Saigo has not only had the gates unlocked for
us,
but has also had the tea-houses opened, and tea prepared for our refreshment. It
is
the 28th day of
December
;
I
looking as fresh as
were summer.
it
we saunter through
see trees laden with camellia blossoms
these beautiful grounds if
yet as
General Saigo gathers a
bunch of these beautiful flowers and presents them which my companions return to their homes and British
Embassy, where Mr, Mounsey
me
Legation) presents
to
staying to dine with him.
Sir I
to me, after I
go to the
(the First Secretary of the
Harry Parkes, and return to
insists
Yokohama by
on
my
the ten
o'clock train.
The morning
is
clear,
bright,
and
slightly frosty,
while the
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
14
With Prince Liechtenstein and Prince Montenuovo I start for Tokio, where we meet Mr. and Mrs. Mounsey, at whose invitation we were to-day to visit
air
the
pure and bracing.
singularly
is
Two
capital.
Temple of of the
carriages convey us
Shiba, which
As
city.
situated
is
by
beyond
rural
this
bordered on
is
it
and
trees,
fields,
kinds
various the
district
upon leaving a densely-populated
for
we approach
or gardens as
fields
spreads
city
Shiba
in
lies
district
while
a
huge
as
itself
which
upon
receive
most
is
me
beautiful
in
Buildings
delightful.
detail,
striking
so
reached
is
The impres-
station.
as
so
we
step
rich
in
symbolism,
in
Had
before seen, or even dreamt of
It
beholding the magnificent
first
temples and shrines standing before carriage
curious,
is
come upon
often
the north-east quarter of Tokio.
now
I
we
in
vegetation,
the centre of the town.
by a pleasant short drive from the railway sion
outer side
its
of
journey from one side of Tokio to the other
ring, a
town,
the Castle stands in the centre of the
and the moat surrounding part
Buddhist
the great
to
a richly -wooded suburb
in
from our colour,
have
I
so
never
a Gibbons been employed
on the wood -carvings, had the colourist of the Alhambra done his
a
utmost to add to forms, which
new charm through
themselves are almost perfect,
in
the addition of pigments, and were the
whole of such details subordinated architectural
worthy
edifice
to
fitting
places
in
a vast
no more
architects of the Parthenon,
by the
could be produced than that of the buildings on
effect
my eyes now rest. The Temple of Shiba,
which
to the service of
which
may
another
same
is
like
Buddhism, consisted of seven buildings, one of
be regarded as more strictly in
all
relation
to
Christian church.
cases a pagoda,
the
Buddhist
and
I
am
—
in itself tJie
Temple, while
the pagoda bearing
edifice
that
a spire
much
does
the
to a
Unfortunately the chief building of the seven
has been lately burnt by, aries,
most of the large temples dedicated
is
it
informed that
than any
now remaining
beautiful
than those which
;
yet
believed, revolutionary incendi-
this
building was more beautiful
how any
have
building could be more
escaped,
I
am
at
a
loss
to*
ART, understand.
(Fig.
AND ART MANUFACTURES. 1
6 gives the water-tank
in
15
the courtyard of
this temple.)
We
walk through the courtyard inspecting the long rows of
stone lanterns,
>
'^''
7"
and viewing the exteriors of the various buildings
r^, >'''f^
^.
^f-
L&
^.%;
'^^l
-1.
Fig. 16.
With
its
The Water-Tank at
Shiba,
monolith cohimns, on the tops of which festooned draper}' in colours and gold
on which we find
birds, flowers, water,
is
painted.
and clouds carved with a
tenderness and boldness scarcely to be surpassed, and so coloured that each object retains parts
combine
its
produce an
to
ment of the natural objects
individual beauty, while the various effect is
almost perfect.
The
art treat-
semi-conventional, the carving
is
of the crispest, and the subjects are chosen with the view of symbolising the
Shiba
power of the Buddhist's god over
is
not
minster Abbey,
is
only a Buddhist
shrine,
all
but,
created things. like
a resting-place for the mighty dead.
our West-
Here
five
of Japan's great Shoguns (also called Tycoons) were buried, and the
Shogun (who was
practically the temporal
ruler
of Japan)
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
i6
was of the Buddhist described
the
as
Shoguns found
Mikado (whom we have
while the
faith,
was
ruler)
spiritual
We
are looking
when
us
and wondering
entering
we have
it
we should
comes forward
to put off our shoes.
were
do,
mounds
of earth.
at all the loveliness outspread
a shaven-headed priest
the largest of the edifices which
into
religion.
tombs of great beauty, while
their resting-place in
over the ashes of the Mikados are heaped mere
before us
Shinto
of the
to
conduct
now
remain.
Before
This
it
was
right that
only because the balcony to which the
it
steps before us lead, and
the floor of the temple
The
polished black lacquer.
surface of these floors
are of
itself,
may
be com-
pared with that of the best papier-mache tray that Wolverhampton ever made.
There
little
is
the
in
Japanese temples or houses ings
more
will
be said when
way ;'
of wall in
but of the structure of their build-
we come
However, the building before us
by a massive
to consider their architecture.
a large enclosed space, covered
is
supported on uprights, between which are what
roof,
we may regard
as
movable shutters
;
—
the columns and shutters
The
forming the boundary of the building. extends about six balcony, and
being
bright
it
is
and
joists
we
Internally
not visible.
decorated
;
balcony which
this
The
black.
floor of the
temple
beyond the central enclosed part as a
feet
balcony and protects rafters
connexion with either
roof
of
I
the
have just mentioned as temple
overhangs
the
from the weather, while the constructive
it
which support
it
are
left fully
exposed to view.
have a ceiling of which the structural features are
The
ceiling
is
panelled out into small squares, and
red, blue, green, white,
and gold being applied to
it
is
in
all their intensity.
might be thought that such a system of colouring as
It
could only produce a coarse and vulgar effect for the
;
but this
is
not
overhanging roof which approaches within about four
this so,
feet
of the railing of the surrounding balcony does not permit the
entrance of any excessive amount of light ultimately reaches the
black
floor.
ceiling
is
all
;
and the
reflected,
light
which
and that from a
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
We
17
now taken by our shaven-headed priest to see the In front of each tomb stands a square
are
tombs of the Shoguns.
building or shrine, one of which by his orders
back and
front, that
am
I
we may
much
so
look on the
kindled,
that
my
my
to
the
see
SACRED name
have
of these
interior
but
;
am
I
now
of the
whose remains are entombed behind.
my
I
told
that
can enter these sanctuaries, as each
officials
building contains the
both
enthusiasm has been already
art
desire
sacred shrines becomes almost irresistible
none but great
at
behind.
pleased with the one temple which
been permitted to enter, and so fully
opened
is
monument
deified
Shogun the holy
believe that
I
enthusiastic
admiration of the art of the
edifice for religious enthusiasm, as
he somewhat excitedly exclaims,
father
"
You
mistakes
great
are
which few,
Shogun," and allows
me
to
enter
a
building
any, Europeans have up to this time been permitted
if
to inspect.
These shrines are
as beautiful as the larger temples
which we
But
have already seen, and their details are as perfectly wrought. as yet I
fail
the sacred
to
name
comprehend the object of these
is
deifies
God
heroes.
that
see
to
be,
I
do not understand.
throughout Japan there
Buddhism and Shintoism
Buddhism,
what
in its purity,
;
for while
does nothing of
Nevertheless, as the Mikado, while yet regarded
the kind. the
me
strange confusion of
a
Shintoism
Shogun may
of a deceased
Ultimate inquiry led
buildings, for
incarnate of the
Church, offers
Shinto
in
public
as
on
certain days of the year prayers for his people at certain Buddhist shrines,
it is
not to be wondered at that the leading sanctuaries of
Japan should betray a blending so inconsistent.
Upon
the death of a famous Japanese, be he daimio (baron),
hero, benefactor, or
when
his
name
Shogun, he
in the
sacred and unpronounceable tablet
of about
two
feet
in
exalted to the rank of a god,
is
god world
is
allotted to him.
by mortal
lips,
is
This name,
inscribed on
a
length by four inches in breadth,
bordered by a richly carved margin
;
and
it is
this
god name which
the shrines in front of the Shoguns' tombs are intended to encase
and preserve.
Every precaution C
is
taken to insure the safety of
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
1
these tablets, as in the beHef of the Japanese the gravest calamities befall the nation if
might
On day"
this
my
in
any should be
memorable day, which history, I
learnt
many
have certainly beheld, enshrined
lost or destroyed.
will
always be a "red
facts of
deep
interest,
letter
and
I
cryptomerias and other cone-
in
bearing trees of vast proportions, an amount of architectural beauty
such as evidence
I
have never before seen of
the
liberality
;
of the
and
I
may
here mention as
Buddhists, that
when Lady
Parkes applied to the high priest of Shiba for permission to have the Church of England service performed in one of the chapels
connected with this great shrine, her request was at once granted.
Hence
Christian worship
of Buddhist temples.
is
offered every
Sunday
in this greatest
ART,
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
CHAPTER —A — Eating a
Yokohama
fire
II.
— A Japanese banquet — — Music — Hara-kiri—The Mikado — The New Year— Tokio firemen
in the hotel
live fish
Japanese matting
^Japanese dancing-girls
— The Hamagoten
palace.
This 30th of December was spent sent director of the
personages minister.
my
chiefly in receiving official
arranging for an interview with Mr. Machida, the pre-
visits, in
was not
19
in I
Tokio Museum,
Tokio, and
to pass without
sleep
by the cry of
my
the door of off in his
its
Yokohama
excitement.
I
Upon
was awakened from
putting
search of a fire-engine.
nightshirt in
A
but the night
;
my head outside saw the manager of the hotel hurrying
I
haste, I found that our hotel
the floor above me.
hotel at
" fire."
chamber,
upon important
calling
dining with Sir Harry Parkes, our
in
my
returned to
in
was on
fire
Dressing
and that the
fire
large hole in the skirting-board
showed that the
interior of the partition (which
but a lath and
plaster "
danger of our
position,
studding I
")
was
all
is
buckets,
ablaze.
I
was
in
and wall
not truly a wall
shouted for water, and
Japanese servants could bring the
in all
Seeing the before
rushed
into
the the
bedroom and seized the poker, to the consternation of a lady who had just stepped out of bed. With this poker I hacked nearest
down in
the wall as high as
flames.
timbers,
I
Water was now
could reach, and found plentifully
and a ladder enabled which the
me
all
the joists
thrown on the burning
to climb to the ceiling of the
was rapidly spreading, but after some hard work we succeeded in overcoming our enemy. In this passage
in
incident
I
fire
was struck by the
fact,
that while
no engine came
till
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
20
was out not one visitor in the hotel, whether EngHsh, American, German, or French, offered any help, while a great
the
fire
whom
gaping lubber, of the hotel,
day
had
I
energy
yet
;
part of
my
by
thanked
for the service
posure
During the following
stood calmly looking on.
was
I
found to be the proprietor
afterwards
I
of the
hotel
had rendered, and even the lady whose com-
I
so
I
the inmates
of
several
much
complimented
disturbed
me on my
was informed that our landlord considered
duty to put out
on
fires
his premises,
it
no
and that he was
well insured.
The
fire
market, for I
saw
being out, it
was now seven o'clock
piles of octopuses
inspect the native fish
sallied forth to
I
the
in
;
Here
morning.
some heaps being of reddish
hue, while
others were of leaden aspect, but the tentacles of these strange creatures
say the
gave the heaps a look of motion and
least,
Here are
was strange.
inches in length, which
in
and
stalls are
a tub live
saw offered
At
also bivalve molluscs, ten
some
ten feet in length,
including the royal tai ; while on tables
fish,
ranged some of the oddest monsters which
for food in
any
a money-changer, from
whom
get
I
a silver and paper currency after the I
left
ever
return, sits
I
some picturesque
obsolete, the former coinage having been
A.M.
I
land.
the entrance to the market, through which
At 9
which, to
can only regard as over-grown mussels,
I
large creatures of the shark character,
and
life,
coins,
now
entirely superseded
modern American
by
fashion.
Tokio, having been invited to partake
for
of a native banquet to be given by certain foreign secretaries of
Each of our
legation to the Austrian princes.
was
to invite
one
friend,
Hon. James Saumarez.
and
I
hosts,
I
understood,
was the honoured guest of the
The luncheon was
served in the most
fashionable of Japanese tea-houses, being that in which the ministers
have state dinners, and
in
every respect according to the
highest rules of Japanese taste and etiquette.
At
the Yashiki
linguists, is
the
(spread out houses)
brothers
as familiar as
Siebold, to
of those accomplished
whom
any European language,
the I
Japanese tongue
met Prince Henri of
ART,
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
21
Liechtenstein and Prince Montenuovo, Baron Rosen, Baron Gold-
whom
schmidt, and Dr. Roritz, to the latter of
of gratitude for kindness which
removed from European
I
owe a
when
far
to the tea-house, where, taking
house
stairs (for this
two
is
thing unusual in Japan), and entered
in height, a
vast debt
Our party being formed,
civihsation.
we accompanied our hosts our shoes, we ascended the
I
afterwards received
off
stories
the banquet-
room.
As
banquet was
this
attempt to describe feasted, so far villa that
of the
characteristic
The room,
it.
nation,
will
I
we London
or rather rooms, in which
resembled the front and back parlours of a
they were formed into one for our use by the removal of
certain " slides,"
of small English
may be said to represent the " double doors " houses. As we entered the room, we saw, attached
which
more or
to the right-hand wall, a slightly-raised dais,
less
shut off
from the main portion of the room with a sort of enclosed
on which sure
is
rice-ears rested as
an offering to the gods.
arranged with scrupulous care
wood stands
as an upright at
its
;
an unbarked stem of cherry
outermost corner, the dimensions
of each plank, upright, or other piece being determined
This
is
the
"
" (or
sacred niche
altar,
This enclo-
by
rule.
enclosure) which the Mikado, as the
god incarnate of the Shinto Church, would occupy were he ever to visit this hotel, and through an opening at the end of the partially-enclosed dais his food
could
not,
would be served by those who
through the smallness and position of the opening,
see his face.
The greater portion of the cupied by a window of about the floor of the room, but
which
it
is
intended, as
collected together for chair, table,
it is
all
wall facing us as
three feet
enter
any entertainment
The
oc-
is
height, resting on
high enough to serve the purpose
Japanese kneel upon the
nor anything that
native Japanese room.
in
we
;
indeed, there
we can regard
floor is
for
when
neither
as furniture in
any
left-hand side of the apartment
is
by a continuous series of windows, outside of which there is a balcony and these windows are so high that we The can readily walk on to the balcony when they are open. entirely occupied
;
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
22
room
other sides of the
consist of plastered walls, the plaster being
of agreeable texture and colour.
rooms
But although these European rooms, there
is
bear a certain
resemblance to
nothing European about them
indeed,
;
they are not only of purely Japanese character, but are constructed according to the most rigid laws of Japanese etiquette.
The windows
frames
consist of light
filled
with a delicate
in
and beautiful wood lattice-work covered with thin paper impossible to look out without moving one of the
it is
sashes
but as
;
one can
slide
matter.
The
window-sashes
all
past another floor is
window-sashes,
in
window
Japan are so arranged that
horizontally,
this
covered with matting
is
not a difficult
the ceiling, like the
;
entirely of unpainted wood,
is
hence
;
and altogether the
room has an air of cleanness and beauty which is most pleasing. When we entered the room the window-sashes were almost all
removed, but the sun shone brightly although the
A
cold.
square was placed object
air
was
cushion about one inch in thickness and fourteen inches for
each of us to kneel upon, but the real
cushions
of these
of
that
is
indicating
positions,
the
place of honour being that next to the Mikado's dais, and from this position the seats gradually decrease in value.
These cushions
were covered with a cotton material of indigo-blue contrasted
the
very pleasantly with
Four Hibachi
(or this
lined
with
in
fire-holders)
case
soft
were placed on the
wood-ash, of course
floor,
incombustible, and
half
on
full
little
the centre of this
The
and certainly fails to alter room to any perceptible degree.
heat,
the temperature of a Japanese In an English
wood
of a heavy
ash rested two or three small pieces of ignited charcoal.
Hibachi gives out but
walls.
each of
a square vessel formed of dark
Each Hibachi was
metal.
yellow of the mats,
and the green-gray of the
gray-buff of the wood,
which was
the
which
tint
room such a contrivance would be highly dangerous,
as the carbonic acid gas resulting from the union of the burning
charcoal with the oxygen of the air would render the atmosphere
almost poisonous
owing
;
but a Japanese room
to the slight
manner
in
which
is
so perfectly ventilated,
its
sides are constructed,
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
that no such danger
may be
to be apprehended.
is
23
Indeed, the Japanese
said almost to live an out-of-door
life,
the house being
the ground with a substantial
rather a floor raised above
roof
than a series of rooms properly enclosed by substantial side walls.
When we in
were seated, or rather arranged, on our cushions
a kneeling posture, a female attendant placed beside each of us
bamboo
a smoking -box containing a small
of which was
intended
a
body bordered by
two
yet
whiffs,
cut
is
and
of
With
tion.
tea
the
exceedingly
is
— metal manner. — much the
richest
shreds
finer
emptied out and the opera-
is
was
continued at discre-
is
first
served, the cups being
blue-and-white porcelain of about two and a half inches
of
diameter
;
being
cup,
saucer elevated on the guest, but
remaining
in
filled
with
a
On
foot.
the guest
hand of the serving -maid.
the
girls
in
till
artistic
which flat
general here
bows rendered
cosmetic.
The
hair
:
it
firm is
bamboo
resembling
No
:
is
a
offered
stand
the
sugar or milk
pure condition.
enter,
and passing
to
the
on their knees and prostrate themselves
fall
heads nearly touch the
of dresses, and their hair is
its
gorgeous apparel
centre of the room, their
stand
stand the cup
this
in
was placed by the
simply takes the cup
used, the beverage being drunk in
Two
tea-kettle with
tea,
on a small maroon lacquer
serving -maid
to
Banko
the tea was in a small
The
handle.
is
work
pipes at
and
round,
stem
the
in
finest
This process
repeated.
filling
and the
the tobacco-pipes are charged
:
second whiff the ash
after the
tion
A
pipe). lid
most exquisitely made with a
the very
of here
is
tobacco for more than
sufficient
Damascened
into
than anything we know
the
was passed
rim,
mouthpiece and a bamboo
unfrequently
not
The tobacco
from
Japanese tobacco-pipe
generally
is
it
metal bowl and
being
A
bowl not holding
the
small,
metal
a
charged.
bamboo cup
both the
lacquer, with
finest
bottom
cup, in the
pipe (the
a
emptied
ash
the
receive
to
tobacco-box of the
pipes were
water, and
little
is
is
stiff
by a
floor.
They wear
the
most
braided in the quaint fashion
and smooth, being formed into
lavish
jet-black, and
use of strange -smelling
two hair-pins form the
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
24
Powder
ornaments of each peruke. but no attempt
made
freely used
is
on the
face,
powder
disguise
the
fact,
ends with a regular and well-defined
line
which extends down
The
lips
are
is
to
back part of the cheeks.
the
being
red,
portions
central
with
painted
gold bronze
of the
pigment,
brightest
while
the
accented by lustrous touches of a green-
are
— happily
;
most potent
a
for the
kissing
unknown
is
Japan
in
One
!
of
the girls wears a broad green sash of the richest and most mellow colour
;
this
a charming art work, and over
is
of the gourd,
worked
of this spray
is
in
perfectly marvellous, having
beauty of the living plant, while of the surface which
Two more behind the pair enter plainly,
it
girls
first
two)
servers
The drawing
all
the vigour and
is
yet a consistent ornament
the
same way and kneeling and now a third
it
decorates.
(dressed
in
make
their
obeisance,
These
and prostrate themselves.
are
spreads a spray
it
lustrous plumbago-black.
of food, and
give
last,
dressed more
each guest a square
to
black lacquer salver about fourteen inches in diameter serving- girl food,
which
enters is
gaily-attired
a taiko
small
(or
bearing a
large
tray
;
another
with saucers of
The
placed on the floor of the room.
more
four
girls now leave the room, and soon re-enter with drum beaten with two sticks), two tsudzumu (or
drums beaten with the (or banjo), and a coto
samasin
The music now
fingers),
a yokobuye (or
flute),
a
(or horizontal harp).
begins, all the instruments being played but
the coto, the musicians kneeling on the
and two
filled
At
at the left of the door.
the
two at the right same time viands are
floor,
handed round, one saucer being placed on each of our These saucers each contain a lump of covered with a fine bright-green
flour,
soft,
trays.
dough-like substance
a circular piece of semi-
transparent plastic matter like a sectional portion of fancy sugarstick having a red exterior
and a white flower
in its centre,
a piece of white gelatinous matter of oblong shape.
and
Immediately
after the distribution of these luxuries a serving-maid enters bear-
ing another oblong tray other
articles
of food
filled
— an
with saucers of confections and
orange preserved
in syrup, a
small
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
opened and spread on a
fresh fish (like a sprat)
fashion, an
and
colour,
oblong object about three inches
crenated margin.
that
of food
with the chop-sticks which
how they were
but on seeing
mouth
soon found
I
convenience of the person eating.
for the
try to eat the putty-like
compound with green
attempting to bite a piece from the mass
my
that in removing
my mouth
saucer from
exterior, but
encounter a serious
I
of being wholly successful in
difficulty, for instead
find
used,
but Japanese etiquette allows a bowl or saucer to be
;
raised to the
in
;
a red
could pick up single grains of rice as well as larger pieces
I
I
black in
of white gelatinous matter with
slice
failed signally at first
I
me
of rice saddle
in length,
with white seed-like specks (exceedingly hard),
filled
and a semicircular were given to
roll
25
my
attempt
am
I
I
drawing
out an attenuated string of the ductile dainty, and that the portion in
my mouth
on the the
The more
floor.
more
my
now
connected with the larger mass
still
is
I
resting
try to separate this connecting cord
difficulty increases,
and
I
verily believe
that one
mass of such food could be drawn into a thread which would span the Pacific but even then
effort
I
in
I
try the
must take a
The the lady
I
more first
agony,
I
I
swallow the mass,
I
can break the thread
Being
floor.
satisfied
try the gelatinous rice-cake
part consume.
being so pretty that but
on the
to the dish
mouthful of this dainty,
an
my
seems an age before
it
me
which binds
at last, in
itself:
The
do not think
red it
inviting confections,
morsel
is
with one
which with
passed over,
right to venture
upon
amongst which the orange
place.
strangely weird, but somewhat exciting, music being over,
who had performed on
which she held on the
left
the small hand -drums (one of
knee and the other on the right shoulder)
lays aside these instruments for the coto or horizontal harp, four
it,
more musicians
each with a
—
—
who can sing as well as play banjo. The music now began
girls
samasin or
accompanied with singing
;
and
enter,
again
and the singing was even more strange
and weird than the music.
Two
basins of clean
warm water were now
slightly-raised lacquer stand,
and placed on the
brought, each on a floor in the centre
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
26
With them came two
warm
sachi,
one
being dry and the other sweet, while the sachi-bottles were,
like
of the guests.
bottles of
the bowls, of blue-and-white porcelain, and each rested in a
lacquer frame.
now
are
Small porcelain sachi cups, such as we
and one of these was
familiar wnth, were then brought in,
placed on the tray belonging to each of the more important
who It
dips
is
it
in the
warm
water, and holds
expected that the guests
who
it
up
visitors,
to be filled with sachi.
are thus
served
first
swallow the contents of their cups quickly, rinse them of water, and throw them across the
little
England
in
shall
in the basins
room to the friends with owing to this custom that
whom
they wish to take wine.
sachi
cups are frequently covered with basket-work, especially
when they
are
made
It
is
of egg-shell china, for this covering prevents
their being readily broken.
Music
now being performed and
is
the sachi cups are
quently passing across the room when soup
being brought in cover,
is
soups, but in
float a
it
number of
what resembling the mushroom, but different in flavour.
The
the chop -sticks
fungi
the
basin
is
pale
brown
bowl
from the
the tray and replace the cover so as to keep
The music being rise
over,
and prepare I
the
begin
four
for the
will for the
and we rearrange ourselves so that samasin players
and with I
:
observe
we should
dance
moment all may
warm.
it
girls :
who
first
brought
they move into the call
the back parlour,
see them.
The
four
a plaintive lay which they accompany
with their instruments, and the dancers begin the dance.
rhythm and pantomimic gestures characterise and the motions of the
and very
distinct in aspect
raised to the mouth,
are got
eye,
their
Measured movements,
which are very singular and conspicu-
ous, play a large part in the art of the performers.
Now
to
some-
After each sip they return the bowl to
a wine of rare vintage.
smaller room, which
The
common fungi,
that the Japanese sip their soup slowly and carefully as
instruments
fre-
the soup
placed on each of our trays.
is
but with a sediment not unlike that
soup
game
—
black lacquer bowls, each of which has a
little
and one of which clear,
served
is
comes the viand of viands
—
the most dainty of morsels
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART, the bit that
is
what the green
to the Japanese epicure
alderman, a dish that
turtle is to the city
of the
fat
none other than a
is
Resting on a large Cutane dish
living fish.
27
mat formed of
a
is
rounds of glass held together by plaited threads, on which living
fish
reality a
in
green
algae.
with
nished
A
and mouth moving regularly
gills
bank of white shreds resembling damp
a
rises
with
colourless sea -weed, while
In front a
the
fish
radiating
of
tuft
is
with the
now
isinglass,
but
itself rests
on
front of
rest, till
the pile
of the upper side of the
and simply picked up
fish,
which
I
all,
now saw was
the
disgust, the
raised the skin
already loose,
;
nay, even the
of flesh already served consisted of the lower half of the
pile
creature's body.
There
a refinement of barbaric cruelty in
is
consummate
of the Japanese, for with
the fish has been so
skill
carved that no vital part has been touched the
liver,
and the stomach
on which the
intact,
left
is
;
the heart, the
gills,
damp
algae
while the
keep the lungs
fish rests suffices to
sume
its
own body
and rarely
;
a living presence at
practised only
(.'')
to man's sensual
This
by the
No
rich. ;
living fish ever
but the
infliction
makes of such
on one of the lower creatures causes, probably, no
who appear
reproach amongst a people
death with dread.
may
but, if being eaten
;
that rarest of opportunities.
appearance on the poor man's table
suffering
we con-
given to any creature to put
most miserable of victims
to be buried, this
is
it
own entombment
its
pleasure actually enjoyed cruelty
is
The
in action.
miserable object with lustrous eye looks upon us while
As an
illustration
^
self-
to regard neither pain nor
of Japanese hardihood,
say ,that over seventy persons, two of
committed hara-kiri ^
all
which contrasts strangely with the geniality and loving nature
this
its
living
from the living creature,
after slice
slice
my
Then, to
consumed.
is
which, although alive, had been already carved
is
leaves.
placed on a saucer and passed to one guest, and so
serving-maid, not having enough in the pile for
in
fish gar-
bamboo
variegated
a
back
at its
a pile of small slices of raw
is
portion of the raw fish from the pile in
victim
:
is
whom
were women,
only six weeks prior to the date of which
Hara-kiri does not consist, as
many
in
England suppose,
in
I
I
opening the abdomen,
28
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
write, because
they had been defeated in a small insurrectionary
movement.
With
the living
came on another
fish
On
also of Cutane ware.
large saucer-like dish,
were two kinds of
this
A
browned, the other white, but both baked.
fish,
the one
portion of each
was served on a large saucer simultaneously with the live quiverbut the living fish is the luxury, and each morsel is ing flesh ;
dipped
Feeling that by
soy and swallowed like an oyster.
in
added no pang
tasting
it
flavour
and delicacy
I
music, were a
fit
I ate,
and certainly
in
surpassed any of the preceding dishes,
this
The slow and solemn
to the victim,
dance, and the weird strains of tremulous
accompaniment of a dish so ghastly
as that of
which we were partaking.
But what have the Japanese to swallowing
live
oysters
We may
.?
wonder, about our
it
cannot suffer
becomes
;
reason
is
receive at our hands,
by the
we
worse than ourselves after
is
treat-
inflict
So, perhaps, the Japanese are not
there can be no doubt.
a
pain.
acute as the organisation
less
eating live molluscs, and
yet that by ment which some crustaceans
more simple
is
much
such a creature suffers we do not know, and there
to suppose that feeling
pain
much
all.
The music which now the
I
argue that an oyster
creature of low organisation, and that
What
say,
followed was more
lively,
but
still
of
same weird character. The girls danced more briskly, and in pantomimic motions simulated lovers busy at love-making,
their
while boiled slices of vegetables.
These
bamboo
slices
shoots were served as a course of
were strung on
little sticks,
they were eaten, the sticks serving the purpose of our
came more
soup, with deer flesh in
it,
from which fork.
Then
as well as fungi, served in
covered earthen bowls with pattern in blue and white.
To
the fungus employed in the flavouring of Japanese soups
but in thrusting a sword through the neck behind the windpipe with the edge outwards, and then in grasping the sword with both hands, pushing it forward till the throat
is
entirely severed
the Japanese custom of
and
falling
making
upon
it.
The misunderstanding has
arisen from
certain scratches over the region of the bowels before
committing the fatal act, in order to symbolise the reason for their death. A large volume of some hundreds of pages has been written on the etiquette of the " happy despatch."
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
29
the characteristic odour of
of Japanese
soups a
all Japanese things seems to be attrimust now be familiar with the smell boxes, fans, and fabrics. On taking these
In England,
butable.
trays,
all
could scarcely convince myself that
I
compound
was not sipping
I
Hakone
consisting of a small stewed cabinet, a
and a length of Kioto
fabric to
which a
had been added, with the view of giving body to the on the question of food, Bull
among
not
is
the
But
liquid.
have prejudices, and John
nations
all
bigoted
least
tray,
packing material
little
his
in
views on dietary
matters.
Now
our music results from two samasins, but one
This bow
time played with a bow.
first
with a heavy lash, the bottom of which
A
performer. edification,
and now we have more
something
strips of
like
also brought
filled
now
down
We
with
and
again one of the waitresses charges a pipe, the bowl of
tunes to one of the singing it
Duck
and smoked, while every
which would not hold an ordinary pea, and hands
puts
for our
served,
lively dancing.
Yorkshire pudding are
the diminutive tobacco-pipes are
now and
is
and a large drum are
fife
for the
is
much resembles a whip held to the bow by the
so that
it
may
girls,
who
it
between the
takes one whiff and then
be made ready for the next performer.
were now told that
it
would be
polite of us
small bits of food with our chop-sticks in the
girls'
to place
mouths, and
and accordingly we did so. Our trays were now again changed, and we received two black-andto throw
them the
sachi cups
;
gold covered lacquer bowls, one containing soup, and one It
may
here be remarked that
at a Japanese feast
:
it
vulgar to eat
the upper middle classes use
article of food,
but to the poor rice
buckwheat and
millet taking
a saucer of
is
powdered
its
fish-roe,
is
it
rice.
much
rice
as a chief
a luxury almost unknown,
place.
Following the
rice
over which was sprinkled
came finely
cut and delicate looking vegetable stems, like small attenuated celery, but without flavour
viands being it
still left.
;
our saucers of
Now
a large light dumpling, and
becomes more
lively,
live fish
and other heavy
followed another bowl of soup, and in
some green vegetables. The music more brisk, strange innuendoes not
the dancing
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
30
admissible in English society were indulged ness
;
yet without coarse-
in,
and while the dance and the repast (which have lasted four
hours) were drawing to a close,
we were
receiving assurances that
the highest virtue was maintained by our lady performers. jinrikishas
Our
were soon bearing us swiftly away to Mr. Mounsey's
Embassy compound. After staying with Mr. Mounsey to
residence in the
within the the
New
sallied
New Year
see the
Embassy
and spent
enclosure,
this,
the
cortege on
in
way
its
of the
the direction
the palace
to
shops,
(the
I
day of
first
see
Having
the
British
palace was
old
also
is
Year, in seeing some of the sights of Tokio.
forth
went
in, I
Honourable James Saumarez, which
to the house of the
burnt
when about fifteen thousand houses Harry Parkes, Mr. Mounsey, and Mr. were consumed by fire). Sir Saumarez being about to pay their respects to the Mikado. The nobles of Japan pay their homage to the emperor on the first day
down about
of the year
weeks
six
;
—
since,
the ministers and persons of higher order having
access to his Majesty, while those of lower rank simply leave their cards.
The
dress in which these ceremonial visits are paid
ordinary English evening attire
;
and
is
the
indeed absurd to see the
it is
some of the nobles owing to the strange One little nobleman I met cut of their European habiliments. walking to the palace in a costume which must have been very ridiculous appearance of
He
uncomfortable. at
least
wore mittens, and the sleeves of
six inches too long, hence
arrangement of
folds,
and
it
by keeping
trousers were as his
hat,
much
elbows
his
akimbo, that the mittens, which were evidently not to be hidden from view, were kept
his coat
somewhat
articles of clothing
visible.
The
legs of his
too long as the sleeves of his coat
which was much too large
were
was only by a judicious
for his
;
while
head, was kept in
its
place by a handkerchief rolled into the form of a ball, and carefully placed
between
probably, like stances,
owing
many
his forehead
other
and the
nobles,
to the changes
rim.
greatly
This youth was
reduced in circum-
which have arisen from the over-
throw of the baronial system, hence he had ordered suit
his
with due regard to his possible corporal development
Court in
the
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART, future.
It
a truly pitiable sight, to see fine
is
our miserable dress, and that looking
costume
Every
so graceful,
is
will
artist
for the
grieve
worst,
its
31
men
arrayed in
when the
native
and lends great dignity to the wearer. such a change having taken place,
at
we may almost term
Court has thus achieved what
the
national degradation of dress.
This being holiday season, tellers,
I
saw
one of whom seemed to enjoy special popularity. time to watch him and his hearers,
for a
plot of his yarn
;
but soon
all
uproarious laughter ensued.
tried
I
"
ment.
Where ignorance
came
I
great
was
clear that
I
had now become
bliss
'tis
folly to
top-spinners
much amuse-
be wise."
Farther
—
who were certainly clever, ^jugglers of who perform wonderful feats, and men
across acrobats,
skill,
Stopping
eyes were turned towards me, and
It
is
tale-
to gather the
the butt of his remarks and the unwitting cause of
on
some
the streets
in
with peep-shows for the children.
The morning of the day had been cold, yet bright but later the sun warmed the atmosphere, and the scene became more and more gay. From every house hung two or three white flags with ;
the red ball in the centre, and the people flocked into the streets in
holiday
the
its
the reception
for
belfry,
Many made
attire.
Asakusa with
I
nights since, the ;
Godowns
seemed
great drums,
five
Beneath us
thousand houses, only two
(fire-proof storehouses) its
only remain-
unsullied cone.
to be muttering incantations,
fires
Temple of
followed in their train, and from
and yonder rose proud Fujiyama with
priests
to the great
various shrines, huge coffer
of the pagoda got a fine view of Tokio.
was a space caused by the burning of ing
way
its
tanks for ablutions, odd-looking
of offerings,
and dignified pagoda.
summit
their
vast red gateway,
The
boys were beating
blazed in the centre of the building, incense was
burning, and small coins were thrown by handfuls into the sacred enclosure, while the grounds of the edifice were filled with stalls,
on which nick-nacks,
prints,
offered for sale.
now
I
sweetmeats, and toys of every sort were
visit
one of the shrines around the
Temple of Asakusa, where, one
after the
sfreat
other, the worshippers
take hold of the knotted rope hanging in front of the gong, and
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
32
by
it
make
the
gong produce a booming sound which is supposed god to the prayer about to be offered.
to call the attention of the
to perform their devotions, but
Most stand outside the shrine
man
and remains motionless
few minutes, with his knees, his
for a
hands, and his forehead on the the
one
with shoeless feet prostrates himself just within the Temple
streets
father,
is
mother,
sisters,
and brothers,
from one to the other,
The
floor.
great
game played
till
one
knock the shuttlecock
will
fails
to hit
it,
when
rush at
all
him, or her, and give a slap with the bat as a punisliment. is
game with
also a favourite
in
the
alike.
The
hissing
a
sound.
These humming
always hollow, and are not unfrequently cylindrical
On
is
kites are often
a in
but the strangest are those which, while high
;
make
air,
Ball
the children, while kite-flying
sport enjoyed by old and young
the form of birds
in
and shuttlecock, and a whole family,
battledore
are
kites
in form.
moat outside the Castle hundreds of wild ducks were The artillery were practising, and when their guns were
the
floating.
ducks rose almost
fired the
In the
in clouds.
moat
saw leaves
I
and bent seed capsules of the beautiful Nelumbium, or Buddhist
(Buddha
water-lily
of this plant).
is
In
always represented as sitting on the flower
summer
gay flowers and broad
not bigger than a cherry are
Going
I
reach
I
noticed beside the road a baby age,
smoking
his
pipe.
at six.
the following morning the sun, which had been shining
was overclouded by ten
brightly,
By two
Oranges
here.
more than two years of
Yokohama
On
common
to the railway station
boy, certainly not
moat must be covered with the
the
foliage of this beautiful plant.
the
fall
was
o'clock, then
considerable, but all
snow
fell
heavily.
had now become bright
as before.
The
princes are to-night to leave for Siam, after visiting which
country they are to return to China, where
about three months hence evening
in
;
Japan, with me.
I
am
to
meet them
so they dine and spend this, their last for
it
was
that
I
had
During our short intimacy,
only on the journey from San Francisco to
Yokohama
the honour of making their acquaintance, they have shown
me
the
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
33
Both of them have undoubted
most friendly courtesy.
art taste.
Both are well informed on even some of the recondite questions connected with Eastern ornaments, and Prince Liechtenstein has
made
with lanterns
ten
o'clock the
honour of our
in
The
off.
At
friends.
careful record of
what he has seen
indeed a pleasure in a foreign land to
It is
travels.
make such them
and
a most elaborate
during his
hotel
little
was ready
illustrious guests,
gay
boat,
oars were plied, fireworks sparkled in the
to take air,
and
the boat was soon lost to view.
Next day
(the
the successor of Mr. at Tokio,
him
me
at
show me
to
offered
Mr. Sekisawa.
wonderful
a
collection
of
which are the private property of the Mikado, and
Nara
are housed at for over a
first
Mr. Tanaka Yoshio, the curator, and
Machida
Mr.
antiquities
Yokohama to receive Mr. Sano, Mr. is what we should call the surname), Sano as the director of the Imperial Museum
stayed at
I
Machida Hisi-Nari
in
the building which has contained
thousand years.
It
was arranged that
Nara on about the 26th of
that the
Mikado
will
give
me
He
month.
this
them
should meet
I
an audience before
I
also told
leave this
part of Japan.
At given
the incoming of the
up
cottage
and
to
is
feasting
decorated
in
place in
fir-tree find
New Year
and
the native town
rejoicing.
some fashion or other all.
Two
is
entirely
Every house, shop, and ;
but the
bamboo
bamboos, with richly foliated
tops and about twenty feet in height, are planted in the earth
about twelve
feet apart, while
a branch of the the
At bamboos
fir-tree.
ground these
immediately
in front
of each stands
the height of eight or ten feet from are connected
plaited rice-straw, in the centre of which
is
by a deep
fringe of
a curious group con-
sisting of a crawfish, an orange, fronds of a fern, a plait of straw
having the form of a twisted
loaf,
a
row of dried percimmons on
a stick, and a piece of charcoal and a chestnut each wrapped in paper.
Grouped
in
a picturesque manner, these are attached to
the upper margin of the straw fringe, from which are also pendent certain pieces of white cut paper religion.
Some
—
the
emblems of the Shinto
rich persons place at either side of the
D
door simply
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
34 three thick
bamboo stems with
the tops cut off slant-wise, with a
piece of a fir-tree in front.
In
these cases the central
about three
in
height, those
six inches
feet
three feet, while the
New Year
These
about two
fir is
bamboo
feet three inches in height.
devices vary, however, in character, but even
bamboo
the poorest of the people seem to crave after a piece of
and of
fir,
be
it
is
the sides about
at
ever so small, as eagerly as our poor look for a
spray of holly and a bit of mistletoe at Christmas.
The next day cising,
I
hear at Tokio that the firemen are exer-
and that the sight
The
the ground.
is
worth seeing, so
make my way
I
to
exercises consist mainly in causing ladders to
stand in a vertical position by the aid of hooks which grasp the "
rounds," and are driven into the earth, and in the performance of
strange acrobatic
One man ascends
feats.
a ladder, and stands in
an inverted position, with his head on one of the side uprights
;
another ascends and, grasping one of the side supports with both hands, maintains himself in a horizontal position
on by
his
feet,
and while
body extends
his
another holds
;
from
laterally
its
support brandishes in both hands a chopping instrument such as is
used for destroying walls when a
the exercise consists in the the Japanese acrobat, did of firemen a lantern.
emblem,
is
all
that
London.
In short,
" Little
Alright,"
Before each corps
which being hollow acts as
a sort of badge of the corps as well as a religious
from each hang pendent the cut papers which sym-
bolise the Shinto religion. in
in
carried a peculiar device,
It is
for
men doing
when
spreading.
fire is
their construction,
and
I
Much ingenuity has am almost as much
been displayed interested with
these ornamental contrivances as with the exercises themselves. I
noticed that
many
of the coolies had
mentioning the matter to a Japanese
who can
possibly afford
it
buy
new
friend,
clothes for
I
New
clothing, but
was
upon
told that all
Year's Day.
The
poor, however, are but scantily clad at best, yet they appear a
hardy and strong
race.
Pantaloons formed of a sort of calico
of indigo colour form the only covering loose blue jacket, on which
is
to
their
legs,
either a strongly-defined
or a badeie a foot in diameter, constitutes the dress.
while a pattern,
The
feet
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
naked or are protected underneath by straw sandals,
are either
but these are far from being durable pairs
worn out
sant
men wear
—
35
indeed,
;
I
leather coats of buff
and
have known three
Some
one day, during a long run.
in
of the pea-
rich golden-syrup colour
the lighter tint being that of the pattern with which they are
These coats are both picturesque and durable garments. While we boast of the convenience of our attire, I notice that
figured.
the Japanese dress has an advantage over mine, in one particular
The
at least.
inch or
shops are covered rather with mats than
floors of the
matting, for the matting
padded underneath
is
to the thickness of an
more with straws which are regularly arranged.
pean steps upon a
floor thus covered, the
Hence the European has
penetrate and spoil the mats.
on the edge of the raised Japanese,
floor
who wear wooden
If a
and take
clogs,
can
Euro-
high heels of his boots
them
sit
down
boots, while the
off his
slip
to
moment
off in a
without the use of his hands, as they are held on only by a sort of thong which passes between the great toe and
its
four lesser
neighbours, and by a strap which passes over the fore part of the foot.
When who,
I
was
out shopping,
I
was sometimes surprised
were English merchants, walk
told,
boots on, and stamp over the floor as though
The anxiety
destroy the mats.
it
common
with their great
were their purpose to
of the poor shopkeepers under
such circumstances was quite distressing, and drugget, a
in
men
to see
I
have seen a
bit of
blanket, and other things hastily brought and
spread over the mats, to prevent their being ruined by these un-
No
gainly visitors.
none are worse
one,
I
many
the heartlessness of
fear,
can
Japan without perceiving
visit
of the so-called foreign merchants, and
in this respect
than
appear to find special enjoyment
in
my own
eigners often speak to the Japanese as inferior creatures
as
;
and
if
harm
make
if
to the country from
Such persons do
which they
For-
they were altogether
of low class they sometimes treat
though they were dogs and not men.
able
Some
countrymen.
annoying the Japanese.
hail, as it is
them
incalcul-
they
who
the stranger odious.
On January
6th
I
left
Yokohama
to
become
for a
few days
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
^6
the guest of Sir Harry Parkes at Tokio.
me
and Mr. Asami met
Mr. Sano, Mr. Sekisawa,
two carriages
at the station with
in
order
show me some of the places of interest in the city. I now learn is to Japan what poor Frank Buckland was to
to
that Mr. Sekisawa us,
and that he
engaged
is
establishing for the
in
Japan of the ova of salmon and other
for the transport to
which he has now just received, and these
and
place
standing the
first
in beautiful
place visited.
residence
now
it is
building
it is
fish,
intended to hatch
The Hamagoten, a palace grounds which border the Bay of Yedo, was
native
the
in
Government
In America he had arranged
a regular system of fish culture.
streams.
Having been formerly a Daimio's
(baron's)
became the summer palace of the empress, while
it
used for the entertainment of illustrious strangers.
The
old and of purely Japanese construction, but the
rooms
is
and corridors are covered with European carpets with patterns of little
To
merit.
the European eye the rooms appear to be scantily
furnished, as they contain but chairs chairs
are of black
pattern which was
common
as a dining-room and
and
tables,
lacquer they are of the
and while the
old round -backed
with us some twenty years since both
bedroom
chair.
In the garden surrounding the palace
a lake of the greatest
is
purity, a
running stream, and a small waterfall, while over the
stream
a
the
is
bridge
continues at
most curious bridge, turns
at
for
when
half across the water
a right angle to the
left,
and then again
former direction, while a railing which
its
one side of the bridge
is
then continues on the other
series of
diminutive, yet old, trees, and from the is
only placed
side.
Surrounding the lake are a
bay of Yedo
is
on the right hand up to the bend, and
in full view.
One
mounds on which stand top of every mound the
old and gnarled pine-tree, the
branches of which descend and wind amidst rocks,
is
almost snake-
Such trees are particularly admired by the they remind them of the drawings of the dragon way amidst stones and rocks, with which they have
like in its character.
Japanese, as
winding
its
been familiar since their
earliest infancy.
Stretching far over the lake, and supported on a light
bamboo
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART, trellis, is
a westeria creeper, which
perfectly
charming
fact
when
in
37
blossom
must
but what interests the Japanese most
;
that the whole
grounds
look is
the
represent a Chinese landscape in
miniature.
We
next visited the beautiful temple of Uyeno, where, as at
main building has been destroyed by
Shiba, the
remains are in
is
indeed splendid
some
;
What
fire.
but while the buildings
standing
left
respects not quite so fine as those of Shiba, the rows
of great lanterns (each pair of which has been given by Prince or Daimio) are
I
some
finer.
Having described one of the great Buddhist shrines of Tokio, will not attempt here to give any details respecting that of
Uyeno, as
I
shall
of the country.
two
have to notice Its
shown
ceilings
it
when speaking of the
architecture
character may, however, be judged of from the in Figs.
17, 18.
In the evening there was a party at the Embassy, for
Christmas
Day
—
The Prime
the 6th of January.
Sanjo Saneyoshi, with his wife and his deputy
it
was old
Minister
— Mr.
— Mr.
Iwakura,
were present, and other great personages, ladies and children, the latter being entirely in Japanese dress.
For the
ladies
and
Christmas tree which
children, presents filled
gentlemen were
amused by a magic
European
and buildings.
cities
in
lantern
;
guests
I
robe than what
ladies
who were
thought peculiarly beautiful.
we know
the surface were strewed
as a dress little
danced.
dance, as they can hire others
present in their
costumes looked very gay and interesting
particular
the Japanese
having views of
The European
The Japanese never themselves The Court to dance for them. native
were arranged on a large
the centre of the hall
;
its
It
one
:
dress
was more of a
ground was white, but over
summer-like flowers
in
the softest
of varying pinks, with here and there a speck of tender green,
while the whole was rendered lustrous with gold. all
Japanese
had like
it
ladies
is
jet-black,
and most of them
dressed in Court fashion, spread into a large
The
hair of
this
evening
flat
butterfly-
bow of less than an eighth of an inch in thickness. The next few days I spent in wandering about Tokio, looking
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
38
at shops, picking
the people
up
on the
;
art objects, i i
th
and watching the amusements of
we had
a slight shock of earthquake.
—A
Ceiling in thk Shrine of the ShSgun Tokugavva Ivemitsu. connexion with the Buddhist temple at Uyeno. A. gives the section of crossing members. B. gives the ornament at the crossings complete. Fig. 17. It
was
built in the year 1681 in
At one
o'clock on
this
Parkes was to take
day
me
the minister of the interior that
the
mail
Harry
;
but finding
was leaving he got the
appointment deferred day.
Sir
Mr. Okubo,
to
till
the following
we viewed a small memory Mikado's soldiers who fell in the
In the afternoon
Shinto temple, erected to the of the ^-
revolution
of
1868:
it
is
a
building
of which
formed of plain uncoloured wood,
in the centre
slightly raised dais bearing a large
European mirror and a small
is
a
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
vase formed of a joint of floor
temple
of the
bamboo and
covered
is
Brussels carpet of large panel pattern
more hideous European white
filled
with a ;
39
The
with flowers.
white ground
common
on the dais
spread a
felt carpet.
is
Besides the mirror the
temple contains about eighteen caned European arm-chairs.
Part of the Ceiling of the Temple of Uyeno
Fig. 18.
From
in
Tokio.
a model presented to the Author by the Japanese Government.
This temple course, from the
situated on
is
high ground close to the race-
bottom of which we get a splendid view of Tokio
with the bay beyond.
The
aspect of the city
is
very remarkable,
The
as the Castle rises conspicuously in the centre of the town. streets being broad,
and the majority of the houses only one story
high, the space occupied
houses,
when seen
in
by Tokio
is
very large.
All Japanese
masses from above, have rather the aspect
of hovels or a thatched Irish village, than of English towns. is
only when we view them
and
in
many
cases
it
is
in detail
the interior which
rather than the external aspect. carriage,
we
see proud
that
Fujiyama
we is
It
see their beauties,
calculated to
charm
Turning round to re-enter our rising as a rich purple
cone drawn
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
40
on a glowing sky, although
it
some sixty
distant
is
or eighty
miles.
On
the next day
Harry Parkes
Sir
Okubo
Mr.
Minister of the Interior.
to the
visit
went with
I
unusual stature even for a southern Japanese, and
head
and
than the average Tokio man.
taller
his
manners are
less set
while his conversation
now
a European building, like those
Government
The room
officials.
man
a
is
of
more than a
is
His bearing
is
dignified,
than those of some of the ministers,
most homely and
is
pay our
to
His house
genial.
is
fashionable with the higher
into
which we were shown was
and was carpeted and furnished
in European style. Here the servants do not prostrate themselves before the
upstairs,
Minister as Japanese servants usually do, but behave as Europeans.
Okubo
Mr,
is
in
European
and so are both Mr, Sano and
dress,
Mr. Asami.
Our conversation turned factures
;
chiefly
and the Minister requested
on the native
me
to
art
draw up a report on it
may
the
fact
Japanese commerce with Europe, and the means by which be increased.
my
During
visit
I
attention
called
way
that
much might be done
in the
fires
with which Tokio
so frequently visited,
is
and
the
tungstate of soda, or in
Tokio are most
some
Indeed,
it
is
formed, with
destroyed every ten years by
The fires number
said that a
number with those forming the
of houses equal in
entire city are
fire.
Mr. Okubo, although the Minister of the Interior,
is,
in reality,
the leading spirit of Japan.
He
took
revolution of 1868, in which
the
Mikado was brought from
seclusion
Okubo
an active
and restored to the government of
fought his
way
all
their construc-
are
chemical substance.
allied
disastrous.
by compelling in
of which the windows
paper
to
of preventing the disastrous
owners of houses to saturate the wood used tion,
manu-
to power,
his
part
in
people.
the his
Mr.
and when the Mikado assumed
the reigns of government was raised to the high office which he
now
holds,
To
Mr.
and which he justly won by
Okubo
duction of a
is
his
primarily due what
European
civilisation
prowess
we may
into Japan.
in the field. call
the intro-
And no man
ART,
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
41
have been more alive to the value of certain European
could
Japan now boasts
contrivances than this accomplished minister.
a telegraphic system as perfect as that of any European country its
coast
system
rendered safe by numerous lighthouses
is
being rapidly developed
is
towns are already place of useless
been established
lit
by gas
;
two railways have been constructed
;
due to Mr. Okubo.
mention here certain did not occur
till
sion to refer to
my
After
my
him but
may
I
and
;
return to England.
England
Of Mr. Okubo's
Mounsey.
from Mr. Mounsey's
now dead. Okubo
received from Mr.
I
following
letter the
my
is
friend Mr.
extract the passages which relate to Mr.
I
to
2(ith
of id nionth WtJt year Meiji.
Dr. Dresser.
"Sir
—
January of
In
sent
articles
last
by Mr. Owen
loth
to our
year
Meiji,
museum, and
April the articles have been exhibited to
I
you have
am much
brought
all
the people, and
the
obliged that you
After your returning
have taken the trouble to arrange them.
all
me
:
'•
"
a
a copy, while
Okubo's sad end, and to the report which he requested write
be
have occa-
I shall
which was shortly followed by another from
letter
may
perhaps be permitted to
rarely in this book, he being
return to
good roads
;
all this
respecting Mr. Okubo, although they
facts
after
larger
its
system of police has
a regular
are being made, and excellent bridges built said to be
some of
steam fire-engines have taken the
;
pumps
little
the streets of
;
;
postal
its
;
I
home
last
have notified
through the country your \aluable informations regarding to the important
you have given
of industry, which
points
during your
kindness that
visit to I
could
make
all
were obscure heretofore, and
make
the officer
to
several industrial establishments.
I
industrial
men
to
It
who attended you must be
your
for
understand the points which
can assure you that
in the future
time they
will
and bring that interest upon the commerce. " During your visit you have requested our museum to make the models of ornamental ceiling of several temples at Tokio, and now they have been a progress
finished.
" Although they are very trifling and not enough to compensate your last service,
I
present
them
to
you through Mr. C.
accept them as the token of
my
highest regard.
J.
Strome, and you
will
please
— With compliments, "
Okubo Toshimichi,
" Minister of Interior Department."
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
42
" Yedo, July
"Dear letter of the
Dr. Dresser i
—
I
have to thank you very cordially
7th May, as well as for
its
most interesting enclosure
You
which you have addressed to Mr. Okubo.
9,
for
—
1878.
your kind the report
have learnt by the papers
will
was brutally assassinated on the 14th of the same month
that that gentleman
His carriage was driving to a Cabinet Council at the Mikado's palace. was stopped by six men armed with the sharp deadly swords you know so They first hamstrung the well, who had been lying in ambush for him. Poor Okubo tried to get out of his brougham horses and killed the coachman. there were two men with drawn swords at the door, he tried the other side A fearful moment the poor man must have there were as many there too. as he
They pulled him out and hacked had when he thus saw death on all sides. to pieces, and then went and delivered themselves up at the Palace, pro-
him
claiming that they were actuated by purely patriotic motives. the
ministers are accompanied by escorts of
drawn swords.
Ito
Since then
mounted men, who
has succeeded Okubo, and he told
me
the other night that
he had just received your report, but had not yet had time to digest
"...
all
ride with
it.
must now congratulate you on having so clearly pointed out to the Japanese Government the sort of way in which they can augment their exports. With regard to the articles which you instance as certain to sell
in
1
our markets, they ought to be most grateful to you for the care you
have taken
in
their description.
...
think and hope that the Japs will
I
find your information so valuable that the)' will ask your advice again before
long.
Harry Parkes begs me thank you for having sent it to the Legation, Saumarez read it with great its contents most useful and valuable. and agrees with me in admiring your story and the way you tell it.
Sir
and thinks interest,
and
I
may add
that
Mrs.
Mounsey perused
it
with
much
Mrs. Mounsey desires to be kindly remembered to you, and
pleasure. I
.
.
.
remain, yours
Aug. H. Mounsey."
truly,
This was indeed a sad ending to a great of his removal from the
work which he had
in
life,
and the
effect
hand cannot yet
be accurately estimated.
The
receipt of
my
report
was acknowledged by Mr. Okubo's
successor, who warmly thanked
me
for the
trouble
I
had taken
in its preparation.
My
time during the next few days was occupied chiefly
paying necessary of these
Russian
visits
visits
was
to
and
in
studying the manufactures.
Madame
Ambassador (now,
I
C. de
regret
in
One
Struve, the wife
of the
deceased).
This
to
say,
ART, lady was
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
43
an assiduous collector of teapots, of which she had
more than seven hundred specimens, no two being alike. On the morning of the i6th January General Saigo and Mr. Asami called to take
me
other important places.
Mr. Asami kindly acted as interpreter.
The
to the arsenal, the
some
mint, and
arsenal occupies a portion of a garden arranged two or three
hundred years ago by a family from which the In the buildings of the arsenal for the first
time
I
Japan, and
in
hum
of machinery
cannot help feeling that while
I
may be encouraged by
the art of war
Shogun sprang.
last
heard the
the arts of peace
its aid,
and industry can only thereby lose the charms which they have small arms altered, but the
first
and
in
made and
In the factory guns were being
hitherto possessed.
all this
was no
place, there
had but
little
interest for me.
In
merit in the things produced
art
the second, the processes emplo)-ed were
;
European.
all
The garden surrounding the factories is, however, xcxy beautimany of the most celebrated in Japan, represents Chinese scene. In the garden are some lovely miniature a in summer pavilions, their little lattice windows being most charming and, like
ful,
in
Yet these are
design.
perishing for
all
while the lattices are falling, bit by is
indeed lamentable that such
to ruin, yet fatal to it
should be so
away with in design
tures
;
European
finest
cannot divine.
I
structures
civilisation
monuments
of
attention,
upon the ground.
exquisite
ancient monuments.
its
is
likely to
of the country
No
It
go
should
:
prove
but
why
nation can afford to
do
If they are of great excellence
they tend to uphold the character of national manufac-
and by attracting
they spend if
fear that
I
some of the
bit,
lack
in the
visitors
to a country the
land contributes to
the magnificence of
its
wealth.
money which
I feel
some of the great temples and
sure that shrines of
which Japan can boast were widely known, many would journey even from Europe to see them are beautiful
apparent
in
From which,
up
beyond
almost
the
but while some of the temples
description signs of deca\- are but
too
all.
the arsenal to
all
;
we went
time of the
to the great
revolution
Confucian Temple, in
1868,
was
the
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
44
Japanese university where 4000 students
and daimios
—were
Confucianism, it
need scarcely say,
I
has no concern for a future
As
he knew nothing.
man
relation of
The
with man. all
no
although
natural
sciences
express
it,
Now
from
its
The Japanese had
observers
great
of
nature,
and
This great Confucian
small.
as that of
resulted, as the
Oxford
Japanese
being dedicated to learning.
is
no more.
of mathematics, and of fucianism, and
;
of Japan, as taught in
The The study
things are changed.
all
religion
provides only for the
Japan what a university such
to
and the university
men
it
classics
and the glory of the building
to us,
no way a
in
is
Confucian writings.
knowledge of mathematics was
Temple was is
the sons of nobles
of which Confucius said that
life,
a system of ethics
the universities, were
their
—
educated.
languages, has
students are dispersed of the natural sciences,
replaced that
of Con-
European professors have supplanted the learned
of the nation
;
but the wheel of fortune
again moving, and
is
Japanese professors are teaching the natural sciences which they
have learned from Europeans.
As
a building the great Confucian
sombre,
wood is
:
consisting
internally
of
Temple
nothing
is
in
a high degree
but black
lacquered
the columns are black, the walls are black, and the ceiling
black
;
and the only
relief
which
is
given to this monotony
is
afforded by the bronze sockets which encase the bases of the
columns
;
yet even these are dark in colour.
however, this edifice in
Japan, for
its
roof
differs is
from
all
In one particular,
others that
I
have yet seen
of open structure (no ceiling), while in the
carving (though this exists in but small quantities) representations of animals are
much more common than those of plants. is now the great national library of Japan, and
This edifice
some thousands of volumes, a catalogue of which was kindly given to me by the worthy librarian. Leaving the university building we visited a large temple which seems to have but few worshippers but here I was pleased with the almost interminable passages, the numerous
here are already collected
;
rooms, and sweet
little
gardens connected with the building.
On
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
45
the altar stands a pierced earthen vessel of celadon ware, which is
and contains the ashes of burnt incense and a carved branch of the Nelumbium (the Buddhist
lined with brass
here also rests
Egyptian
lotus), strikingly
Fig.
;
in character (Fig.
1
To
9).
Object carved in imitation of a spray of the Buddhist Lotus. Buddha is said to hold this in his hand when he prays for his mother.
19.
subsisting between the arts of the ancient Egyptians I
shall
have frequently to
We
now
visit
Japan
the likeness
that portion of the mint in
bank notes are printed
;
which Japanese
but here the subtleties of electric etching
At
and European methods of printing are practised. at the mint,
and
some weeks
later,
at
and that of
call attention.
one weaving factory
in
the arsenal,
Kioto which
I
European mechanism was employed
no other instance did
I
see
;
visited
but
in
any indication of the native methods
being superseded by European appliances.
The next morning was occupied unpacked which
Museum.
The sky but at
I
Nearly
five in
and
out
England
from
to
the
National
happily, proved to be in sound condition.
morning was
this
and by eleven snow
overcast,
the afternoon the heavens were once
while, later, there cold,
took
all,
chiefly in seeing the things
was a glorious
sunset.
The
more
fell
;
cloudless,
night was bright,
starlight.
January
1
Yokohama by
8.
— This
the 8.15
morning train,
went with Mr. Mounsey to
I
where we engaged jinrikishas to
take us to Kamakura, a town about seventeen miles distant on the
other side of the
promontory which
boundary of Yedo Bay. acter, it
and
lies
The road
is
through a long valley of
passes over a high
bluff.
forms
the
southern
of a very imperfect char-
rice-fields,
while in one place
In Japan the rice-fields in
some
cases
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
46
extend of the
for
many
miles together, and are even terraced on the sides
This terracing of nearly empty mud-ponds,
hills.
for
such
the rice-fields look at this season of the year, as the fields are
all
sunk below the banks which separate them, and the water has run off
from the
soil,
gives to the landscape a strange aspect.
we approach
Rising from the valley as
seem
the bluffs or sandbanks which
its
head,
north side of the promontory from that of the south.
resembles the sandbanks with which
Deal
ingen, Ostend, and
and
:
of the carex or sandgrass.
may
It
we
to
the
at
This bluff
are familiar at Scheven-
these
like
Japan has no true grass which
we come
to separate the land
with the roots
filled
is
be worthy of remark that
will serve as
fodder for sheep.
The rough carex covers much of the country but as this dies down to the ground in winter many hills become bare during the ;
months of the
cold
year,
and give an uninteresting character
The absence
the landscape.
dear in Japan
is
(it
about
of grass causes mutton to be very
2s. 6d.
per pound in the open ports
where alone meat of any kind can be had, save
European ideas
the largest towns in which
in
one or two of
are being adopted), for
the sheep have to be fed in China and taken to Japan.
however,
is
follow with our tiny carriages
;
we walk
over the
till
it
and they
disappears altogether.
by-path traversing a bank which separates is
bluff,
but after passing the summit the
road becomes narrower and narrower
rice-fields
Beef,
only 5d. per pound, as oxen will eat the coarser food.
In order to ease our coolies
A
to
two
groups of
the highway over which our jinrikishas carry us
but as this road
is
by two stones the
cut
;
by many watercourses bridged over only
ride
becomes
exciting, for
we have
often to
consider whether the space between the wheels of our jinrikishas is
greater than the width of the bridge.
These
little
difficulties
once a great city little
time.
—
more than a It is
surmounted, we come upon what was
the town of village,
situated on
Kamakura.
is
is
now
a lovely island -studded bay, the sands
of which are rich in shells, and reminds
Here
This town
although larger than Yedo at one
a temple recently restored
me
of Bantry in Ireland.
and somewhat vulgarly
re-
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
47
decorated which boasts of presents received by the
from the Crown as is
Buddha
to the Great
We
back as the year
far
i i
Shogun
first
but our pilgrimage
;
or Dai-butz.
soon approached richly wooded land, and through an open-
This Dai-butz, formed of
ing in the trees beheld the colossal figure. bronze,
80
is
forty-seven feet in height, although in a sitting posture.
has been formed of parts of about six feet square, which have
It
been brazed together, and thus the whole figure now consists Figures of Dai-butz rest usually
of one huge mass of metal.
on a is
Nelumbium)
(the flower of the
lily
;
but
in this case the
base
represented by only two petals of the flower which lean against
the wall to the right and
The
completed.
figure
left
of the figure, for
representing
a boss
From
our Scriptures
—
am
" I
light
backs
downwards,
being
The
position.
figure
only the bosom altar,
on which
vessels for
leaves
the
draped
is
In
two bronze
rest
thumbs meet
while
exposed.
in
a
assume a
stands
it
feet
height, while
in
are even higher
still
when compared with the
right
;
table -like
and two
Nelumbium), which
lotus (the
the
brazen
yet the altar with
lilies
The
cast.
altar
with their vases
flowers looks small
its
the vast figure against which they are seen.
and to the
left
inspected this figure externally is
vertical
vases each contain a group of
of the figure there
pedestal-lantern, of about ten feet in height.
hollow, and
a
vases, a bronze censer,
and flowers of the Buddhist
six
of
manner, leaving
graceful
of
in
at their points, the
fingers
front
The bronze
flowers.
The hands
have been beautifully modelled and charmingly
is
supposed to
is
the light of the world."
the figure are so placed that the
To
most
and which symbolises an idea similar to that expressed
flow,
is
a
forehead protrudes
its
which
jewel from
a
repose with
dignified
in
sits
placid expression of countenance.
has never been
it
fitted
we walk
into
is
Having
a bronze carefully
interior, for
its
up within as a shrine or chapel.
it
On
approaching the altar we see the results of an act of snobbery
which
is
in
the highest degree contemptible
;
for
on the forehead
of one of the figures which stands upon the altar or
American
cad
has written
his
name
in
some English
ultramarine
blue.
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
48
An
so
act
cannot be too strongly condemned.
disgraceful
I
cannot help feeling that only a snob of a very low type would write his
name on any work
of
desecrated the offender would be at a cart-tail
but when a sacred altar
art,
is
thus
punished by being dragged
fitly
and whipped through the town.
Climbing the ladder, we ascend to a platform within the from which a view of the surrounding country and bay
figure,
be had
can
through an
descend to luncheon
in
opening
the open
and afterwards
the head,
in
air.
With the back of a grouse in one hand, and bread in the other, I wander around the figure, and notice over the shoulderblades two large metal loops, the nature and object of which
as
myself, appeals to his native
The
question
but
shine,"
how
is
as
at
this
the word
is
once
" for
the
by the
answered
I
puzzled with them
and asks
interpreter
their use. " for
words
the
throws no light upon the matter, we ask
spelt,
when the
reply
and with
shine,"
is
Varying
s-h-i-n-e.
we only arrive at the one we are obliged to be
the question in every possible way,
answer,
much
Mr. Mounsey, as
to understand.
fail
this
content.
To
the right of the
Buddha
find at religious places in
who
priest
evil,
figure,
The cost some
while the figures sold are in
as they reveal the origin of certain
Buddhism and
Christianity.
stall
of Daikoku
prints.
The
such as
little stall
This
Japan.
pictures
— and other sacred
trifling,
a
drawings of the sacred
sells
charms against Japan
is
—
maps
me
god of
of these things
but
is
cases of great interest
common
to
from which immunity can
be purchased by the charms are of almost every kind
charms appear to
often
of the district,
a favourite
symbols which are evils
we
attended by a
is
;
but the
to be simply folded bits of paper of about
four inches in length and one inch in breadth so
gummed up
that
they cannot be opened, and bearing an inscription which specifies the evil guarded against, and a red stamp, which
be the sacred seal of the temple.
One
may be
said
of the charms which
to I
bought was against smallpox, another against the dangers of travel,
another against
evil generally,
and so on
;
but the ailments
AND ART MANUFACTURES,
ART, to
be
by a small expenditure
averted
49
at this holy spot
are
legion.
On
our homeward journey with images
adorned
ance,
Buddha — and
we
visited a
of
the
they look
strange indeed
temple of great import-
five
hundred
—
as well
of
disciples
by three
as
magnificent wood -carvings by one of the greatest carvers that
Japan has ever seen, and some beautiful lattice-work. We were on the point of leaving this edifice when our
The us, and exclaimed now understand what he attempted "
an image straight before
We
shine!"
inter-
beaming countenance and excited manner, pointed
preter, with
shine
!
to
the
explain
to
when we were viewing the great Dai-butz, for the head of this figure is encircled by a Nimbus, and what we saw on the shoulders of the great figure were the fixings for this appendage to the
Kamakura.
colossal figure at
We had
upon our alighting
insisted
we had
that
tions
scarcely re-entered our jinrikishas
just
when our
interpreter
at a tea-house, in spite of our protesta-
sumptuously.
fared
Although he had
shared what to us had been an ample meal, he seemed dissatisfied
with the cake and tea
now
offered to him,
and ordered three raw
eggs, which were speedily brought in a saucer, together with
soy to serve as a sauce. placed them on the
floor,
some
Taking the eggs from the saucer he and breaking the
its
contents on the dish, adding a
to
his
little
soy,
shell of
one he poured
and putting the saucer
mouth, swallowed the morsel as we should an oyster.
Having treated the others in the same way, he drank sundry cups of tea, and then said calmly that he was ready for the journey. This little freak of our worthy interpreter was the more remarkable as the Japanese eat often and but
Japan
is
generally
a
land
little
:
a tobacco pouch
and
of
the is
littles.
little at
a time
air
indeed,
Their most beautiful objects are
knob of a
stick or the button
(netsuki)
of
often an artwork of the highest elaboration,
their dainty foods are served in small portions.
country
;
gave our guide an unusually good
Possibly the
appetite.
On
our
asking what should be paid, the interpreter explained that to ask for a bill
would give the greatest possible offence to a Japanese
E
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
50
You
hotelkeeper. for the
light
never pay, you simply give
pence or twopence-halfpenny
We
;
and the present
refreshment of tea and cake would be about two-
return to
in
our money.
Yokohama by
road,
and reach Tokio by a
late
train.
A
my
message respecting
me
brought to
Mikado was
presentation to the
next day by Mr. Sakata, an old friend
had the pleasure of entertaining some years ago
at
whom I had my house in
The meeting was a pleasure and a surprise to both, as when he came to make his official call he had not the slightest expectation of seeing his old London friend, thinking it was some one else of the same name, nor I of seeing him. His message was that the Mikado would give me audience at two London.
on the following
o'clock
private interview,
He
day.
me
and gave
that
said
was
it
to be a
a copy of the speech which the
Emperor was to make, asking me to be ready with a short reply. Of this speech I asked Sir Harry Parkes to let me have a translation.
January 20.
— Morning
as fine as ever, sky almost cloudless,
sun bright and warm.
The following is the English of the address which the Mikado is to make this afternoon Speech of His Majest}', the Tenno (ten-Heaven, no-Emperor also called Tcnshi, Ten and Shi-child), to Dr. Dresser, January "We shall long preserve in our memory the remem20, 1877. :
;
—
brance of a collection of articles manufactured other
countries,
Museum Museum
in ;
been made at the
having
in
England and
South Kensington
your country, and presented thereby to the Japanese
and also of your own kindness
in
coming
to
Japan
to
display to the eyes of our people the nature and appearance of articles
the
manufactured
road
trust that
in
Europe
leading to advance
your
visit
to
;
and
to point out to their
and improvement of
Japan may be
free
arts.
minds
We
from accident, and a
pleasant one."
To of the
this speech,
which
Mikado usually
is
are, I
said to be longer than the speeches
prepared the following reply
:
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART, " I
me
Majesty has done "
The
in
honour
the
appreciate
feelingly
me
giving
small present, of which
your
Imperial
a personal reception.
have been the bearer, to your
I
Museum was
Majesty's National
which
51
got together at the suggestion
Museum
of Mr. P. C. Owen, the director of the South Kensington
London.
in
and
who gave
Co.,
Nephew, Lewis,
"
of
and
am
I
indebted to Messrs. Londos
London
For years past
Messrs.
Ward and Cope
and Co. of Kidder-
my
life
is
now
real-
your Majesty's most charming country.
humbly beg
that your Majesty
means
national
their
Jno.
have been an admirer and collector of
I
the adoption of such
people
Mr.
of Nottingham.
Japanese objects, and the greatest desire of " I
and
Elkington,
to Messrs. Jno. Brinton
;
to Messrs.
ised in visiting
Green and
the greater number, to Messrs.
Doulton,
Messrs.
all
minster,
For the objects
arts
may
be pleased to order
as will preserve to your Majesty's
in
a
form
unpolluted by European
influences, for the ornamentists of our western countries feel it
is
humbly
their privilege
that
your
to follow the great artists of
Majesty's dominions. " If
will
your Majesty
from
time
time
to
Museum specimens
allow
will
me
forward
to
the honour of so doing,
your
Majesty's
National
of our most recent manufactures, and
be of any service to your Majesty's industries, or be the
I
if
I
can
means of
promoting the commerce of your Majesty's country, either during
my
stay here in Japan, or
beg that your Majesty services at " I
when
will
I
allow
have returned to England,
me
the honour of placing
my
your Majesty's disposal.
thank your Majesty most humbly and sincerely
great honour
About
I
you now do me." o'clock this morning Mr. Sakata
I I
answer, so that
Arrayed
in
might be translated
it
for the
called
for
for
the
this
Mikado.
my
evening dress according to
instructions,
I
was taken by Mr. Tanaka, the vice-president of the museum, and Mr. Sakata, who the palace, which
At
is
a
was ten
also
in
minutes'
English drive
evening dress, to
from the Embassy.
the outer gate sentinels gave us the European royal salute.
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
52
and driving through a garden, we passed a second gate and Here large low doors stood open,, drew up under the portico. and four servants conducted us along the corridors of the house, at
one side of which
a boundary-wall and the other window-
is
like " slides."
The temporary
palace of the
down)
recently burnt
Mikado
the old palace was
(for
a large Japanese house (yashiki) of the
is
The
usual simple construction and one story in height.
passages,
and such rooms as I saw, have their floors covered with European some tapestry and some Brussels, but in most cases the carpets
—
pattern
room
is
such as we should consider
into
An
artistically bad.
which we were shown had a black
slate
ante-
chimney-piece
decorated with coloured ornament and an open European grate.
The
wall slides, although of Japanese character, were covered with
a cheap French wall-paper, and the ceiling had a paper of similar character with an elongated geometrical pattern. of the
room was a
table over which
In the centre
ample
in
fell,
folds, a cloth
of soft low-toned green-yellow colour enriched with the figures
The
of dragons arranged as circular devices.
circles,
about six
inches in diameter, were
irregularly distributed over the surface
of the cloth, so that, in
some
cases,
they came nearly together,
On
while in others they were four inches apart.
The
table stood a cigar-box.
Around
was of miserable pattern.
carpet
the table was arranged six European chairs with carved
The
ogee legs and curved and open backs.
were covered with terry with a pattern
was
By
the centre of the
silk
in velvet
seats of these chairs
of imperial purple colour, and figured
or plush, and
when
velvet
this
looked upon from above gold was visible in the side of the
a
stood
table
hibachi
simple character, the stand of which, worked
(or in
fixed,
like
about two inches below while
The stand
of
plain pine-wood,
of a sieve) at the top, three legs, which were attached to
hibachi,
ground.
its
fire-holder)
hoop about three inches wide (resembling the hoop
consisted of a
circular disc
figure
of
the
rim,
it,
and a
the hoop, between the three legs, but it.
by
On
encircling
the hibachi was
disc
this
it,
of such
rested
prevented
the
brazen
its
falling.
a height that the
fire
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART, was brought
same level as the table, and through downward direction the danger of up-
to almost the
the legs spreading in setting the
53
a
was diminished.
fire
This was the entire furniture
of the room.
Two
gentlemen
one being favoured with a
Having been presented the household, then
monies,
where
am
I
two
its
who
the former,
throne -room,
the
to
by the Mikado.
sides
the minister of
is
the master of cere-
is
by them
enter our room,
lace than the other.
who
to the latter,
conducted
to be received
room, having
more gold
little
first
to
am now
I
now
gorgeous Court dresses
in
It is
formed of paper
a long, narrow the end
slides,
which we enter open, and the opposite end closed by a
My
partition.
instructions are that
I
am
spot at the centre of the open end and
advance one step and bow again four steps
—
to
;
that
advance three yards
piece of furniture in this
room
is
I
—and
come
to
bow
that
;
am
at
solid
to a certain I
am
then to
then to take about
bow
again.
The only
a European arm-chair, evidently
belonging to the same suite as the small chairs in the anteroom,
and covered with the same material. of the
centre
This throne stands
end of the room
distant
front of
in
in the
the solid
partition.
We
now
return to the anteroom, when, in about two minutes,
who had remained behind, enters us. Mr. Tanaka walks first, Mr, Tanaka does not, however, enter the
the minister of the household,
and says that the Mikado I
second, Sakata
royal
advancing,
I
On my little
last.
Following
presence.
my
instructions as to
myself about eight
find right,
nearer the
will see
Emperor than
emonies, while on
feet
and close to the wall
my
left,
1
from the Mikado. (or wall slides),
we have done, and
and a
am, stands the master of cere-
and opposite
to the
monies, stands the minister of the household three times as
bowing and
:
master of cere-
both have bowed
both, having taken their places,
stand with bowed heads.
age,
The Mikado looks to me is of medium height for
to be about twenty-seven years of
a Japanese (short for us), wears a
solemn expression, and stands, as
I
sec him, in
a slightly stoop-
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
54
He
ing posture.
gold
wears a European military dress, bright with
lace.
When we
entered the throne-room he was standing with his
face towards us in front of his throne.
He
bent his head slightly
but did not bow, and at once began to read his address (Fig. 20),
Knowing
audibly, distinctly, and apparently with feeling.
that
1
could not understand the language in which he was speaking, he
#v il -y
\V
^^
t.
*
^T
*
*
+
;i
#f
#.
g
1^
1
1^
7
oA-
'"J
J"j
'^
i-t
^^]
^ d
^
it -^ f ^H
=i
J^
^U X
*
i
>
?
If
f^
^'^
^ y^
5
X
^^^
K
T 2-
FiG.
20.— Facsimile
The day
following
the very Address from which the Mikado read. sent me the ver>' paper from compliment. My interpreter informed me that this is the first
in
reduced
size of
my
reception
by the Emperor, His Majesty
which he read as a special
time that such a thing has been done to any foreigner.
must have been aware that he was wasting his royal " sweetness on the desert air," yet his manner in no way indicated now read in English my reply to His I any impatience. Majesty's address, and then handed the translation of interpreter,
who
read
tones, being only a
names.
it
little
Emperor
it
to
my
and
respectful
puzzled with some of the
European
to the
in
soft
This done, we bowed and walked backwards out of the
royal presence.
ART,
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
„JiUUU
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
56
town.
ascend the
I
But
and enter a box.
stairs
let
no one
for
one moment suppose that the box of a Japanese theatre has any Both the floor and Hkeness to that of a European opera-house. the gallery of the Japanese
may be
theatre
boxes, which yet are rather pits than boxes.
arrangement
A
^
stood
if I
said
to consist
of
Their character and will
be better under-
compare them
to a series
of regularly arranged "pens" in one of our cattle markets. The
Theatre.
tops of the partitions
(a a) form the Aisles.
and
as their floors,
are
There are two entrances
22.— Section of Box or Pit of
Fig.
left,
and the
level
visitor
to the
theatre,
one to the right and one to
the
of the street face, with earth
left
with the road.
purchases his
ticket.
Here the native clogs
A
platform, running
across the whole width of
the
theatre,
extended
is
downwards
throughout
the length of the building as
two
which
aisles,
their turn
meet a trans-
platform
verse
inner end
of
an
To
aisle,
is
of
left,
may
and
close
be,
to
the
a series of boxes,
pits,
or
may
call
in
the right
or to the
as the case
arranged wall,
regarded
extension of the
stage.
the
the
at
the house,
which may be as
in
cells,
whichever we
^
them, and square
shape.
These boxes Fig.
are
separated
from
one
23.— Plan of Gallery of Theatre at Yedo.
Behind the bamboo screen (a a) the "gods" stand.
another by narrow branch aisles,
and have
their floors level with the street
;
thus
it
may
be
said that the places assigned to visitors are seats in square pits
ART, about
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
inches below the level of the aisles, and into which
fifteen
you jump when you take your
we have similar
At
our theatres.
in
57
boxes such as
place, rather than
the opposite side of the theatre
is
a
row of boxes, and between the two principal longitudinal arranged
aisles are
in
rows a considerable number of these square
boxes, while the gallery
is
portioned out in a like manner (Figs. 2
i,
22, 23). It is curious to see the visitors
walking along the broad
aisles
and then balancing themselves on the narrow planks which are only the is
tops of the partitions separating the boxes
flat
;
and
it
equally strange to see the people kneeling on the matted floors
of their
little cells in
family groups sipping tea, eating sweets, or
even boiling water in a
The
stage
is
our own, but
its
kettle.
seen from the auditorium almost precisely as
back
is
formed of a plain curtain, and
scenery consists of actual models of the objects required
all ;
the
houses
nearly as large as ordinary dwellings, and trees and other things
When
being placed on the stage.
in proportion,
to be changed,
it
swung on a central pivot, and that as much of curtain as
in front.
is
while the play
is
is
is
it
a vast circle
is
behind the
This arrangement has one advantage, for
going on new scenery
distant half of the stage
necessary
the scenery has
becomes apparent that the stage
;
and
is
being arranged on the
change the scene
to
all
that
is
the pulling up of the curtain and the twisting round
There
of the stage.
is
this
theatre, that the actors enter
further
peculiarity in
a Japanese
behind the audience, coming through
black curtains with white figures, near the doors where the public enter.
It
must
also be
remembered
that no
women
are
employed
on the Japanese stage, men taking women's parts as well as own.
their
Having
entered, the
actors
acting during their progress,
till
advance along the main
platform and the adjoining stage. this
aisle,
stage
is
I
saw a horse brought along
which was a make-up exactly
stage horses.
Behind those boxes
a screen
formed
aisles,
they reach the inner end of the
after the
in the
of vertical
fashion of our
gallery which face the
and
horizontal
pieces of
58
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
ART, are
artist
small
a
AND ART MANUFACTURES. piece
of
porte-crayon, about fourteen
charcoal
held
a
in
59
bamboo
light
inches long and very slender
flat
;
brushes formed of deers' hair, varying in width from three inches to one inch and three-quarters, while the hairs protrude from the
socket about three-quarters or seven -eighths of an inch, round
brushes in bamboo, and formed of white vegetable
about half an inch
in
Indian ink with
accompanying
There
much
is
its
indigo,
is full
seems as great as
gamboge, crimson
who
artist
is
in
whom
I
colours.
ultimately
of innocent humour, and his ability
His colours are Indian
his fun.
lake,
and red
One
earth.
ink,
of the other
to paint
first
comes forward, bows
ese fashion, and takes his place in front of the paper. elderly gentleman,
become
pigments a kind of dragon's-blood colour.
artists includes in his
The
and a few
slab,
one old flower-painter
interested, for he
as an artist
and
fibres,
diameter, plenty of water in a large bowl,
and
after
in
Japan-
He
is
an
having looked thoughtfully at the
paper for a minute or two, begins his work.
Taking the porte-
crayon, he touches the paper with the charcoal point at four or five places, so as
his
flat
just
to leave a perceptible dot
brush three inches
broad,
charged
;
and then with
with
Indian
ink,
makes on the paper, by an almost instantaneous dash, a large irregular mass of gray-black colour. With a smaller brush he
now
close proximity to the gray mass,
indicates, in
what appear
to be a few feathers, next, at a little distance, the
branch.
end of a pendent Then, beginning at the top of the paper, he works the
branch downwards drawn.
Now
till
an eye
of colour, and
we
it
is
is
in the line of the
drawn, then a
see completed
cock and hen pecking
in front of a
in
bill,
less
than
branch of a
a great portion of the white body of the hen
than drawn
mass of
;
for as the
this colour
the white hen
is
body of the cock
which was
first
end which was
then
is
come
fifteen tree, is
first
a few bits
minutes, a
and, curiously,
rather indicated
gray (being the large
placed upon the paper), and as
seen against the black cock, the stopping of the
black gives the form of a great portion of the hen's body.
was kindly presented to me by Mr. Sano. The same artist next drew a small landscape but
This
interesting sketch
;
it
is
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
6o
scarcely necessary to say that Japanese landscapes lack the
of their drawings of birds,
The
and
fishes, insects,
whom
old flower -painter, of
I
have before spoken, now
took his place before the paper, and after looking at
he were picturing
in
own mind
his
charm
flowers.
it
as
though
a group of flowers already
painted, made, like the former artist, two or three dots with the
charcoal upon the paper, and filling a brush with
some green
pigment, began by forming here and there certain pseony leaves
one
leaflet at a
touch
;
but although from time to time he some-
what varied the colour leaflet
differed
pseony flower, little
in
the brush, no two parts of the
in
With another brush he formed a red
tint.
—shading
same
each leaf by a dexterous application of a
water to the paper before the red was wholly absorbed.
Rolling up the paper at the bottom (a practice which
all
the
artists
adopt when they wish to work at the upper part of the
sheet),
he draws petals of an unfolded bud.
Now
with faint
Indian ink he forms both flowers and buds of the magnolia, then
he arranges pink petals into groups, resembling the flowers of the
almond, and afterwards forms clusters of red masses, so that they ultimately appear as the peeping petals of red flower buds.
The masses
of colour being thus carefully distributed with
due regard to the laws of composition tribution of masses
may
which
be
(a
regard
commended
for the
dis-
to the authorities
of the art schools at South Kensington), the stalks are so drawn that
all
skill.
the isolated parts are brought together with marvellous
Then
the calyces
are
added, after which comes a
little
touching-up, as the formation of veins in a few leaves, the addition of certain bits of pure colour, and a spot of dark here and there.
my knowledge of European artists, I doubt whether any one could produce a sketch of such excellence in anything like the time in which our Japanese artist produced his work Judging from
;
and although
I
myself
am
a trained draughtsman, and
young man engaged exclusively in studying flowers, I own my utter inability to produce comparable with that which is now before us.
A
young
lady,
who
is,
I
was as a
plants and drawing so rapidly a sketch
understand, a flower-painter to the
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
Empress, now made a sketch of a our winter aconite, but market, for the root
yellow flower allied to
little
appears as though just bought
it
up
tied
is
6i
in a
This sketch
bit of paper.
took the lady about ten minutes to complete.
the
in
She was followed
by a young man, who made a drawing of a flying duck, which is " worked " much in the manner of the first sketch but the ;
with which the body, with
skill
its
shade, and outline,
light,
was
managed, was truly marvellous. A brush of considerable breadth was dipped in water and drawn between the fingers of the artist nearly dry.
till
the
ink,
was then dipped
It
a thin wash of Indian
in
of the brush being bent outwards, so
portion
central
that the hairs of the brush
The
assumed a crescent-like form.
convex or centre portion was now hastily dipped into dark Indian
and the brush was allowed to straighten
ink,
now
three hairs were
Two
itself.
or
separated from one side and dipped into
dark ink, but these remained detached from the other part of the
By
brush.
a dexterous
hairs
making the
movement
the artist produced with one
body of the duck and an
stroke the shaded
latter,
outline, the
few separate
while the shading resulted from the darker
ink of the centre not having fully spread to the sides of the brusli.
A eye
bill is
is
now drawn,
then
feet,
added, then follows a neck,
when an admirable sketch of a
and
legs,
flying
then
baize,
and begins what we
drawing simply
man produces same method.
in
all
Indian ink.
After what
is
before us.
made
the middle-aged
fowls, kneels again in front of the
take to be a sea-piece, which he
Like the
a tint and an outline at the
when we expect
An
and a few finishing touches
duck
After two or three other drawings are
man, who painted the domestic
tail-feathers.
we take
to be
last artist, this
same
time,
waves are
the artist to place in the water
is
gentle-
and by the
finished, and,
fish,
or upon
it
junks, he simply adds a few dots and dark touches, and signs his
name. sketch
It is is
now
held up to view, when, to our astonishment, the
that of a train of rats, with one or two
party straying from the others.
What we
members of the
took to be waves prove
only to be a background, against which the rounded white rats appear;
backs of
— the uncoloured paper forming the animals.
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
62
Fans were now offered
to the various
and on these
artists,
sketches were soon placed, the crenated character of the surface
apparently
in
no way increasing the
difficulty of the work.
Having had tea in an adjoining room, we returned to see an amusement in which Japanese artists often indulge. A sheet of paper being spread on the baize one of the company goes forward, and dipping a brush in Indian ink makes some simple device. In this case a cross was formed in the middle of the paper about
two
by
feet in height
called to the paper
fifteen inches
told to
is
in width.
One
draw a lady so that
in
a very admirable
visible,
in three brief minutes,
manner
somewhat marred
ment had been intended, tunately an engagement
;
but the cross, being
for the
to dine with
a few
he finished his work
a very excellent sketch. I learnt,
cross shall
With
become an unobtrusive portion of the drawing. dexterous strokes, and
of the artists
this
still
The
slightly
entertain-
whole evening.
some
friends forced
Unfor-
me
to
While in tear myself away at 6.30, very greatly to my regret. Japan Mr. Sano contributed much to my enjoyment, but nothing that he did gave
me
tainment provided for
the pleasure that
me
this afternoon.
I
derived from the enter-
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
CHAPTER Preparation for long journey
— By water
to
next
two
or
—
days
three
III.
—
Kobe Entrance of the Mikado The Mikado's antiquities.
Awadji, Sanda, Arima, Nara
The
63
were
spent
into
Kobe
Yokohama
at
in
arranging for a long journey into the interior, for through the
kindness of the authorities
I
am
permitted to travel in any part
of Japan, and the ministers insist that during the rest of I
shall consider
my
journey
I
very imperfectly appreciated
the favours and the inestimable advantages which
through the preparations so thoughtfully made
and well-being by the Japanese Government. manufacturers of the town
before
me, and
stay
myself the guest of the nation.
Before starting on
the
my
I
had an
interesting either in the
in
which
I
I
was
my
for
to reap
enjoyment
Wherever
I
went,
stayed were brought
opportunity of seeing whatever was
way
of architecture, antiquities, or
manu-
factures.
Mr. Tanaka of the Tokio Mr. Ishida and Mr. Sakata,
my
future journeyings in
finance
and
interpreter.
the
may
my
arrived at
are to form
country, Ishida
duties, while
official I
Museum
who
my
hotel with
escort during
undertaking the
Sakata acts as
my
guide and
here say that no two gentlemen could have
acted with more kindness and consideration than they did through-
out the whole of our travels, nor could any have more faithfully served the Government in whose service they were. is
now
and as
dead, or for
I
Sakata,
Poor Ishida
should wish him every advancement possible I
can only hope that he
that will reward his faithfulness.
;
will rise to a position
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
64
At 2.30 we stepped
into a boat at the custom-house pier,
with Mr. James Saumarez,
days of our
first
who
will
accompany us during the few
Bidding adieu to Mr. Tanaka, we
travels.
pulled to the ship on which
we have taken passage for Kobe. This steamer, which belongs to the Japanese Government, must be considered as fairly comfortable, and is built on the plan of an American river-boat. us
—he
having the upper berth and
from mine, "
stay
or rod
"
between
his
I
have a cabin between
the lower
I
but his differs
;
being some inches narrower and having an iron
in
passing through
occupant must
A
Saumarez and
on
lie
such a manner that
in
it
its
back with the rod passing upwards
his
leo-s.
o evening than
finer
A
never was.
this
a glorious setting sun, a sky steeped
few fleecy clouds, hues,
liquid
in
a
cool
breeze of most refreshing air, and Fujiyama rising in all its grandeur above the horizontal belt of cloud which so generally envelops its base, combine to give the waning day a charm quite inexpressible.
The
now
glory fades and darkness comes on apace, but the moon,
two-thirds
night sky
full,
softer than the island,
it
is
At 8.30 we
are opposite a round undulating
an active volcano
from being awe-inspiring,
is
;
the highest
by no means
is
in its side, issue a
calculated
changing
its
mountain.
burning moun-
and
From (which as we
also from
its
small fissure
a
few flickering flames, such as might come from in
the
air
is
cloud
a
constantly
form, and which, fiery and glowing, hangs over the
As
the
flames
rise
and
fall,
extinguished
are
rekindled, so does the cloud brighten or darken.
coursing
cast to the
to
in eruption.
portion of the island
conical),
Somewhat higher
bonfires.
"
but the
preconceived notions of a volcano
all
the centre of see
first.
on which
tain," far
winds
gives brightness to the deep azure of the clear
thus one glory succeeds another, the second being but
:
way down
see
or
no lava
precipitous declivities, and no vomiting
forth of surging matter, nor
the changing and
I
fitful glare,
is
any noise
audible.
own
such as one of our
produces, characterises this burning mountain
;
Nothing but blast furnaces
in fact, the effect
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
produced by the blast furnaces of Lowmoor or
is
inferior to that
of
many in the Cleveland district. The next morning was as lovely
We
it.
65
as the evening which preceded
ran near the land, and there Fujiyama, as immaculate
as ever, rose above the horizontal stratum of cloud which appears
to divide
it
but above
Below the cloud
in tw^o. is
it
has the colours of earth,
it
The
pure as heaven.
air
the sea
cool,
is
is
calm, and w^e go merrily on.
me
Mr. Saumarez introduces
gentleman who speaks English of great
information,
matters.
We
it
to Mr. Samishima, a Japanese
well,
and who
both respecting
and
;
certainly possessed
European
commerce of Japan, and of how
talked long of the
can be extended to Europe
is
Japanese and
I
am
struck with the sound-
ness of his views concerning the future of his country.
In the year
1878, while I
minister to dine with
him
I
at his residence in the
Champs
was most graciously received, and the face seemed
where
with
my
could have met
I
dinner was half over
to
Paris as a juror at the
in
whom
Kobe.
I
I
host
this
The day wore
its
Japanese coast near which
\\q
good
strange
that
on,
my
which
but
When
host was Mr. Samishima
my way we
Yokohama
from
w'ere friends.
glory was not dimmed, and the are running
We
Swiss scenery. effect
Elysees.
familiar,
could not remember.
time up to his death but
of the
I
recollected that
so long conversed while on
From
Inter-
received an invitation from the Japanese
national Exhibition,
results
was
only
from
some
as fine as
have here, as
the Alps,
in
an
atmosphere
untainted by smoke and unsullied by the vapours of factories indeed, here
upon
hills,
we have rugged
heights, deep ravines,
mountains upon mountains, and valleys sunk
with that play of
light,
:
piled
hills
in valleys,
shade, and shadow^, w^hich only such a
country under a bright sun and cloudless sky can give.
no town during the day, but the
hills
are in
some
cases
We
pass
wooded
to the very sea.
By
6.30 the next morning
had anchored
at 2 A.M. in
was on deck, and found that
I
Kobe
harbour, w^hich
and sixty nautical miles from Yokohama. F
is
w^e
three hundred
Cannon were
firing,
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
66
way through
rockets of various kinds were ploughing their air,
the
and the ships and junks were gay with fluttering flags. All this excitement is due to the fact that the royal yacht
hourly expected, for the Mikado
way connecting Kobe with
coming
is
Kioto.
I
to
open the new
as
have
certainly
special
assumes I
we smoke which they generate
Europe, and the
in
appointment
somewhat
take them to be the day fireworks of which
I
heard
rail-
watch these fireworks, which
are being discharged in rapid succession, with interest,
is
and
strange
learn
not
are
To my
dis-
fireworks,
and
forms.
fantastic
these
that
day
that the Japanese like letting off ordinary fireworks in sunshine. If this
is
so, it
is
almost worth letting some off
in
sunshine, for
the circles of smoke formed by some, like the rings of phos-
hydrogen that we used to make when playing with
phuretted
chemistry as boys, are very curious.
At
the custom-house the officers searched
the luggage
The
Mr. Saumarez and Mr. Sakata, but passed mine.
of
practice of
when brought from one port to another of the same country seems strange, and is certainly attended with much searching baggage
inconvenience to passengers.
A
foreigner travelling in Japan
the journey
is
to be anything
must have a passport
more than a
and
;
brief excursion to
if
some
town not distant from a treaty port (where alone a foreigner can reside) he must apply to the minister of the countr}' to which he But the difficulty in the belongs for the necessary permission.
way
of a stranger visiting the country
the passport he must not only
name
is
this.
In order to get
the provinces through which
he wishes to pass but the towns that he wishes to
He must
roads along which he intends to travel.
purpose of his
make
visit
;
and when
in the
interior
valid agreements with natives, nor purchase
danger of their being confiscated. extremely
difficult
for the
These
visit,
he can neither
goods without
restrictions render
stranger to travel in Japan.
Murray nor a Baedeker
and the
also state the
it
There
him what to see, and he can form no idea as to the roads along which he must travel hence, if he is resolved on seeing the country he must be content is
neither a
to
tell
;
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART, to wait
treaty ports
at the
67
he can gather from European
till
him
residents sufificient information to enable
to arrange a route
after this the getting of the necessary permission
:
only a matter
is
of time.
The
restrictions respecting the validity of
agreements and the
who
purchasing of goods are met by Europeans
(called a bantd)
who makes purchases and
on
the
behalf
of
practically of
Hence,
European. inconvenience
little
yet
;
trade, the necessity of even a passport
as broadly as possible, being
me
ministers have, in fact, granted
and
please,
see whatever
to
I
restrictions
as all restrictions
me
for
passport
a
unaware that the Japanese for
my
The
journey.
permission to travel wherever
choose to inspect
and
;
and we hear that
arrives;
time the Mikado, with his rhinisters, will proceed railway station the procession.
The
to few,
if
wherever there
unoccupied
;
is
Japan,
orders
shown
to him. is
still,
the Japanese
is
we can view
six
feet apart.
is
It
kept clear by lines
seems strange that
an upstairs window, or an elevated position,
but
upon the Mikado
in state to the
place from which
seek a
in a short
roads are densely lined with people eager
some
of soldiers placed
All
we
so
;
Majesty, and the central space
to see his
learn that
I
;
no man
in
were
given
for the in the
see walking in the
black-faced European
that
Mikado
this
is
The conduct
approaching.
and only about
;
fifty
am
of
but immediately
yards
most slouching manner two (I
visited
same respect should be
highest degree respectful
workmen
it
Japan may look down
and when the Duke of Edinburgh
in front of the procession, I
limit
any other than myself, has such a privilege been granted.
The Mikado's yacht now
is
are
to be regretted.
is
Government have made every provision
to
the
enters into contracts
these
Harry Parkes has kindly procured
Sir
I
in
by taking with them a confidential Japanese servant
interior
worded
travel
in
filthily
advance, dressed,
afraid English) with torn
caps hanging half over their eyes, short pipes in their mouths,
and
hands
irritating
in
their
pockets.
and disgusting.
The
sight
is,
I
confess,
both
While such strange conduct might,
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
68
a case like
in
be accounted for by ignorance, another act
this,
of disrespect which
me
witnessed cannot be thus excused.
I
Beside
stood an English missionary with the broad-brimmed
worn by many of our
who had
many
hats (for
On
clergy.
But
heads.
their
this
Christian gentleman availed himself of a step in order to
and nodding
himself conspicuous,
hat all
of the male natives do not wear head
uncovered and lowered
coverings)
felt
the arrival of the Mikado,
head
his
defiantly,
one
make
declared
audibly that he would not acknowledge the heathen sovereign. I
had always thought that royalty was entitled to respect wher-
ever
was
it
standing
and
seen,
can
I
our streets while royalty was
in
that
a Japanese
passing,
and loudly
think
scarcely
averring that he would not uncover to a Christian
infidel,
would
get off without reproof, for even our street roughs, ill-behaved as
they
would
are,
that such an insult to royalty should not
feel
pass unnoticed, and even the cloth would have failed to protect
mob
from
Although not of combative
law.
disposition,
I
felt
almost irresistibly impelled to give that missionary a lesson in
manners such
as he
would not
respect for the feelings of that prevented
the
way
living
my
my
so doing
my
of revealing
easily forget,
and
it
was only
my
honourable friend from the Legation but
;
if
contempt
could do anything in
looks for
this
individual
who was
on the charity of those who desired that he should teach
the doctrines of kindness and love,
I
must have smitten him
to
the very quick, for a look of most sincere contempt must have
my
characterised
features
when he
thus
publicly
insulted
a
sovereign of high gentlemanly feelings and the greatest refine-
ment. I
If this
is
the
manner
confess that while in Japan
condemn,
wonder
or ill-bred If
answer
in
at
those with
illiterate
in
which our missionaries act (and
saw
I
whom
little
came
I
men who may be
workmen, acting be asked
in
much
to admire, but in
contact),
we cannot
stokers on board a vessel,
defiance of right and order.
why
such things are permitted, the
it
should
is
that in the open ports of Japan foreigners have
termed an extra
territorial
to
right
;
that
is,
the
what
is
Japanese have
opened a certain number of ports called treaty ports
in
which
1
ART,
may
foreigners
is
69
reside without being placed under the jurisdiction
of Japanese law.
here
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
In other words, the foreigner while resident
subject to the courts of his
own country
thus in the eyes
;
of Japanese law he can do no wrong, and the judge by
must be
tried
is
his
own
whom
he
travel
in
consul.
The English complain
bitterly
that
they cannot
Japan without a passport, while the Japanese can travel through any part of England without restriction. I cannot help thinking
commerce
that restrictions to travel injure the
yet
when speaking
of any country
;
to the Japanese ministers respecting the open-
ing up of the country, they invariably said that with the class of settlers
them up
which are now
the treaty ports,
in
claim
their
reasonable.
to
If a
extra
territorial
;
and
I
am
and
rights,
and has that regard
at all times
is
sure that no
man who
impossible
is
Japanese comes to England he
wherever he pleases, but he law
it
to allow travelling in the interior unless the
foi;
Europeans give this is
seems but
free
amenable
to travel
to
English
conducts himself rightly,
for the feelings of others
which
all
gentlemen
should have, need fear any molestation from the Japanese.
The
procession having passed, Mr. Ishida went to the govern-
ment house
to report our arrival, Mr.
Saumarez
to the
English
consulate to try and get a steam yacht for an excursion which
wished to
make
the next day, while Mr. Sakata and
I
the mountains to see two waterfalls, the one called the
we
walked up
Male
Fall
and the other the Female.
Kobe
is
one of the treaty
ports,
and
it
occupies a strip of
and the
ground lying between a range of rocky
hills
and the sea-shore being
was intended that Hiogo
parallel.
should be open to foreigners the
purposes of foreign
;
It
sea, the hills
but as this town was not suited to
commerce, Europeans were allowed to
town at the north side of a river which now separates Hiogo from Kobe, Kobe being the new town, and Hiogo the old.
erect their
The same thing occurred
at
Yokohama, where a new town
has been built at the distance of about two miles from the port originally
opened up, the new town being Yokohama, the old
town Canagawa.
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
70
From
we ascended we had
the hills which
a charming view
of Kobe, of the bay, of the island of Awaji, and of the ocean
beyond
and
;
we intended In of the
was
it
to the island
which lay yonder before us that
make our excursion on the morrow. the evening Kobe is beautifully illuminated in honour Mikado's visit. As the illuminations consist wholly of to
coloured lanterns, which are here used with great lavishness, the effect
is
very charming
myriads, as
mingling
and the
;
interest
and
now being
bobbing,
visible,
These are the lanterns carried by the in
Japan
by the
heightened by the
that
it
is
now
and
effect
is
one
also heightened
a feast day at one of the great temples at
Here we have blazing beacons, the burning of
Kobe.
eclipsed.
sight-seers, for every
The
carries a lantern after dark.
fact
is
appeares to me, of moving lights which are inter-
it
incense, the
sound of music, the throngs of worshippers, and much that calculated to add interest to the scene.
manifestation
of
life,
worship, and
The whole
a
is
is
brilliant
enjoyment, such as
could,
probably, be seen in no other country.
The steam launch having been
secured,
we
are astir at 6.15
The island for which we are bound is that of Awaji in the Hiogo Ken (province), and we propose landing at the chief town, Sumoto, which, we are told, we shall reach in three hours. It may be interesting to know that before the revolution of 1868 Awaji belonged to the
A.M.
It
is
dawn, and the morning
just
is fine.
Daimio of Owa, and that the ex-Daimio was educated and now
resides
in
London.
On
to
this small
bamboo which to see certain
numerous
villages, of
Sumoto.
While cotton and
30,000 which
the island there are
houses, distributed in five towns and
3000 belong
at Oxford,
stuffs
tract is
and cotton thread are made on the
of land can boast a
found
in
potteries,
no other of which
" fluted "
district, I
shall
island,
variety of the
our chief purpose was
speak more
in
detail
hereafter.
was 7.30 before we were fairly under way, and we had not when the sky became overcast and the clouds lowering, yet we steamed on grandly. The scenery was very beautiful It
gone
far
;
ART,
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
indeed, as seen from the sea the island to which
looked almost Alpine
At
in its
71
we were
steering
grandeur.
we had not yet even reached the island, and At the town of Sumoto is situated almost at its other side. twelve we had luncheon (tiffin), so as to economise time, for we half-past ten
were told that after we reached Sumoto we should have seven English miles to traverse potteries.
It
before
in jinrikishas
we could
get to the
was one o'clock when we reached Sumoto.
The landing of Columbus could not have produced a greater effect upon the Americans than our landing in Sumoto did upon these islanders. Adults and children, rich and poor, young and old, flocked to see the strange creatures that had come to their shores. They followed us as the street arabs follow a Punch and show in London. Even in Tokio a foreigner cannot make Judy a purchase without a score
him
;
Entering the
may
we waited
post-office,
here remark that in
hotel, the post-office
the
more persons gathering around
or
but here the whole town was astir with excitement.
has to
accommodation of
;
jinrikishas
make such arrangements
We
visitors.
portion of our journey
for
as
first
very good,
The
abound.
hillsides
lies
are
I
no
can for
we were
told
fifteen.
The
along a valley where paddy
fields
wooded with camellias and dwarf
bamboos, but ferns are abundant
we see a palm-tree. At a tea-house about
it
is
soon started on the inland
but the potteries, which
were seven miles distant from Sumoto, proved to be road, at
and
;
Japanese towns where there
all
in
the shady spots, and here and
there
stopped for
five
minutes to
eight miles along the rest,
and tea was
road the
men
politely offered to us,
by the mistress of the house. The road became more we advanced. What was formerly a mere track is now being made into a good highway. Some of the new bridges are in every sense excellent, and they are sufficiently broad for a as
is
usual,
difficult
as
cart to cross them, while the old bridges
than
a
jinrikisha.
through the fields,
there
We
rice-fields, is
now
leave the
and as the path
some excitement
were
in
is
little, if
main road
any, broader for a
raised above the
the thought that
if
path
muddy
one wheel
72
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
•
of the jinrikisha should shja over the edge of the narrow bank the occupant would find himself in the sludge below.
matters rendered pleasanter by the fact that the bank
Nor
are
cut
by
is
frequent streams spanned by two planks or two narrow stones.
While crossing one of these primitive bridges one wheel of my it rested, but owing
carriage slipped from the plank on which
Hence some
slush. less
fortunate than
and
all.
An
my
and
in
be
was, are lifted over these bridges, carriage
now happened which might have been serious, The man in the shafts let go his only laughable.
backwards.
In
moment my head was on the righted, and we went on our
a
many windings we
After
two
about
may
But the vehicle was soon
ground.
way.
they
fear that
weight being behind the wheels, the jinrikisha was
overbalanced
are
I
was saved a ducking
I
who
of the party,
accident
but turned out hold,
my men
promptness of one of
to the
potteries,
reach the village of Igano, where
one of which was founded by Kashiu Mimpe,
years since, for imitating
fifty
the
Dutch ware of
Delft.
The
present potteries belong, one to the son of the founder, whose
real
name
Mimpe, but who has assumed the trade name of
is
Mimpe
Rikita, instead of the second
the
nephew of the
first
Awadji
During our inspection of the fall,
and
boiled eggs.
and a
now
is
it
I
slice or
unknown
in
;
the other belongs to Sanpe.
potter.
six o'clock P.M.
We
should have been glad,
I
two of bread-and-butter
make
a hearty meal on
confess, to
have a
in addition
;
little salt
but bread
is
Japan, save at the open ports and at one or two of
the large towns which have
become partly Europeanised
common
those
who
think that rice
know
little
of Japan, for to the poor, as
is
heavy rain begins to
potteries
is
the
I
;
arid
food of the people
have already
said, rice
an almost unknown luxury.
When we and close
re-entered our jinrikishas, the hoods, which open
like the
hoods of our Victorias, were spread, and over
our laps a sheet of oiled paper was placed as an apron.
It
must
not be supposed that the Japanese oiled paper bears any close
resemblance to a sheet of English paper which has been greased.
ART, for oil
it
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
has pliability, toughness, and a fibrous character, while the
which has been applied to
making it European
The hood
greasy.
proportions,
and
I
renders
it
waterproof without
it
had
to
in
sit
a cramped posture.
and the driving
This, with the cutting wind
we had
during our homeward ride
rain,
rendered the Occasionally,
to cross the beds of large
mountain streams which, containing but boulder stones.
my
of the carriage was too low for
journey back to Sumoto anything but pleasant. also,
73
little
These river-beds usually
lie
water, are rich in
at a level
ably below that of the country which they traverse
consider-
and, although
;
impassable during the rainy season, are readily crossed at other
The
times by the aid of stepping-stones. the crossing of one of these streams
sensation produced by
remarkable, especially
the jinrikisha acquires an impetus increasing each
men who draw
Hence
the
than
guides and masters.
its
it
when
Descending the
place in the darkness of the night.
this takes defile,
is
moment.
are rather servants of the vehicle
The boulder
stones also cause an
unpleasant jolting, and further difficulties are presented by the
stony bottom and the upward ascent.
With
the view of turning to good use the speed gained during
the descent, the
man
in the shafts,
the vehicle, lets the carriage
rush
who is now alone in charge of down at an alarming pace,
aiming at the stepping-stones, across which he runs, while the wheels of the vehicle are on either side of these stones trundling across the bed of the stream,
moment in
to find the
—and
the occupant expecting every-
bottom of the carriage torn
off
by coming
contact with a stepping-stone, or to have a ducking in the
water through the upsetting of the vehicle.
Our journey late to
is,
however, completed by 9.30
;
but as
it
is
too
steam to Kobe, we take supper on the launch and return
to the post-office to sleep.
We may
be,
are
now shown
one room
is
are favoured
However
considered sufficient in Japan
contain enough beds on I
to our rooms.
its
floor
with a room
occupy another apartment.
;
to
but
if
it
will
but
in this case
Saumarez and
while
the Japanese
ourselves,
Our beds
large a party
are
now
prepared, that
is,
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
74 are spread
upon the
we might term
three
and each of these consists of what
floor,
wadded
coverlets, each
blue -and -white
cotton fabric.
figured
about six feet long,
These are covered with a
three feet wide, and one inch thick.
In consideration
of the
wants of us foreigners, a fourth coverlet, rolled into the form of a pillow,
is
On
produced.
was placed a
a stand beside the bed
lamp, the feeble light of which proceeds from a small rush wick
hanging over the side of a saucer suspended
This,
in its centre.
with the beds, forms the whole furniture of the room. It
now 10.30, but although a bed know what to do with it. Which
is
exactly
the covering
Am
?
Or am
to
I
uncovered
?
Am
me ?
coverlets over
to
I
make
I
on the
lie
to
After
who only
partially
pleased.
do not
the bed and which
is
is
and have the three
floor
on one and have two as covering?
lie
over
puzzling
Hence
I
removed
it
my
by
my
bed a new trouble
me
telling
my
is
my
friend
I
seem
Sakata,
do exactly
to
bed and two
arises, for
until
difficulty
call for
I
determine, as the night
damp, that one should be in
I
of the three a soft bed and spend the night
threatened with abject despondency,
when
me
before
is
as
I
cold and the air
my
bed and
But
covering.
my
bed-clothes
same narrow dimensions, hence it is impossible to the coverings and owing to their want of pliability, I
are each of the
tuck in
;
only succeed
keeping the cold wind, which howls through our
in
room, from one side of
my
my
soundly
difficulties,
somewhat
stiff
I
slept
and
sore,
body
but this
at a time. till
is
dawn.
due
in
Still, in
On
spite of all
rising
we were
part to our
cramped
posture during our journey yesterday, and only in part to the
hardness of our beds.
The
shutters being
removed from the outside of the balcony,
we open the paper slides which form the front boundary-wall or window surface (for it is both) of our room. Here is a lovely little
garden, over the end of which hangs a tree
golden oranges.
On
laden with
the balcony stand two chairs, each bearing
a copper pan of about twelve inches in diameter and three inches in
depth, with water for us to
Japan.
Pendent from
the
wash
eaves
of
in.
the
Soap roof
is
unknown
hangs
a
in
little
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
trapeze-like contrivance, which
is
hand
at
in
a large
huge boulder-stone and has a
During our ramble which concerns
itself
Some
houses.
the towel horse
but this
;
is
empty,
own towels. A further supply wooden bucket which rests on a
Japan carry their
for travellers in
of water
is
75
ladle lying across
after breakfast
it.
we soon come upon
a shop
only with the making and selling of Jos
of these are very interesting, and they are
Then we
marvellously cheap.
all
see a cabinet manufactory, where
such cabinets as the Japanese must use for the storing of their clothes (although
never saw one
I
are so absurdly cheap that
The
sent to England.
home was I
bought
it
I
in
;
hence what was absurdly cheap where
was absurdly dear when
The sun was
These
afterwards
I
cabinet cost thirty shillings, but the freight
seven pounds
Having made the
any house) are made.
purchased one, which
reached
it
circuit of the town,
its
destination.
we returned
to our boat.
bright and the sky clear, but there was a strong
cold breeze blowing. We were soon under way. After tiffin I went on deck, and surely scenery never was more lovely than that which I now beheld. There was that soft drawing of mountains
on the skies which
and the scene was It
I
have never before seen out of Switzerland, enchanting.
in truth
must not be supposed that our steam launch
vessel.
although
A it
little
paint would have improved
has a deck with a cabin beneath
it,
and the cabin
for while there
is
is
reached by
a hole in
cabin, appears as a hole
it
nor
rail
— —any well
a model ;
a stoke-hole,
it,
engine-room, the deck has neither seats upon
is
appearance
its
and
and
around
means you please, when you are in the there are no steps by can be made therefore
the deck which,
in
its
ceiling,
which either the descent or the ascent
;
getting from the deck to the cabin, or from the cabin to the deck, involves the performance of acrobatic feats of no
The
mean
order.
stoke-hole and engine-room are reached from the cabin
through an aperture about two
feet
by
thirteen inches.
Windows,
which should have consisted of twenty-four panes of glass ranged in
longitudinal series, form the sides of the cabin
twelve panes at one side six are broken,
five
;
but of the
being entirely out.
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
76
This, although of
little
importance had the craft been nestling
on the bosom of a small inland lake or of some placid might prove serious
if
caught by breakers from the broad
river,
Pacific,
it is on the fringe of this ocean that we float. Lounging on the deck of our little craft, I am lost in admiration of the lovely scenery as it is lit by the last rays of the setting-
and
sun
but while comparing our speed with that of a Japanese junk
;
which we overtake and reverie
am
pass, I
by a sharp and curious
my
suddenly aroused from
noise,
which
followed by clouds
is
Our
of ashes and steam rising from the entrance of the cabin.
boat stops, for the boiler has burst
put out the
We
fire.
now
are
any kind.
sailing gear of
in
the fire-chamber, and has
perfectly helpless, for
Perceiving that the night
and that without assistance we must speedily
mighty ocean,
my
first
impulse
Saumarez
proceed to do.
is
little
So
all
which
and
is
out into the I
at
once to
finds to his sorrow but
deck, one having brought with
immediately held out as a signal of
it
gets nearer,
Our Japanese
him the
made
at snail's
friends
fast to the
distress, while a
very
The junk
ap-
now only fifty yards off, but it passes shout that we will giwt much money for its effect.
A
rope
thrown, and we
is
junk and towed towards the shore, but only
pace, for the tide
ever, boats
table-cloth,
it is
This produces
their help.
we
on,
tinned meat, half a pot of jam, and one or two biscuits.
come on
proaches,
are
coming
instinctively drops into the cabin
chorus of shouts asks aid of the junk near by.
by.
is
to hail the junk, which
ascertain the nature of our food suppl}^,
a
drift
we have no
come from
against
is
us.
In a short time, how-
the land to our aid, and stepping into one
leave the steamer in charge of our sailors, and
row
straight for
the lights of Kobe.
Our next excursion is to much Celadon ware is made ;
desire
to
Japan, and at
which
visit. I it
am is
Little
is
yet
the
Sanda pottery
a district which
known
I
district,
where
have a special
of the Celadon wares of
informed no European has yet visited the potteries
made.
The Awadji
two days since have only been
potteries
which we
visited
—
one visited by two Europeans Englishman and one Frenchman, but these were in the employ of
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
the Japanese Government, and,
77
understand, were not interested
I
in potter's wares.
January
31.
—At 6.30 we
by 7.30 we have started
in
are astir; at 7
we
breakfast
our jinrikishas for Shidewara
the centre of the district in which the Celadon ware
;
Sanda,
in
made.
is
and
As
our journey, we are told, will take about four and a half hours
we
calculate that
may
night
men
we have an easy
be spent
day's
work before
and that
us,
our comfortable beds at Kobe.
in
Three
are engaged for each jinrikisha so as to economise time.
For several miles the road ascends and borders a rocky
The
the bottom of which flows a mountain str.eam.
defile, in
highest point
being gained, the road becomes easier, winding through paddy fields
but while to ing from
me
Kobe
gallop on,
the work of pulling us up the long incline stretchto the
summit of the pass seemed
run as though they could never
Shidewara at twelve
o'clock,
have brought with
me
killing, the
men
and with occasional cheery shouts
are yet as jocular as schoolboys,
I
Our men
and amidst well-cultivated gardens.
Still,
tire.
we do not reach
instead of being at four.
it till
Japan a pedometer with the view
to
of roughly ascertaining the distance traversed in out-of-the-way
and on unknown tracks
districts is
;
but an imperfect instrument,
utterly
long
the
for
useless,
but, while the
pedometer
in this particular case
strides
it
at best
proved
which these coolies
took
during their wild and joyous gallops were most unfairly recorded as so
many
make
a mile
how many The coolie in
ordinary steps, and I
have no
idea.
of their giant strides the shafts carried the
instrument, which, at the end of the day, recorded twenty-three miles as the distance run
toilsome pull up the
;
hill,
but
I
at the
am
persuaded that the long and
commencement
being considered, the speed did not average
less
of the journey,
than
five
miles
an hour.
At Shidewara we
learnt that here,
there are five potteries, but that to
be the
case.
assistants, appears district.
A
all
and
in villages
are small,
and
this
near by,
we
find
master with his son, or with one or two
to be the entire staff of each pottery in the
In Shidewara itself there are two potteries, one of which
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
78 is
exceedingly small
we
interest,
make wares
but as neither
;
by a track
leave the town
of any special
or road, which leads to a
plateau of moorland on the ridge of a high mountainous
little
We
hill.
have traversed about a mile and a half of ascending
we come to three small potteries near to each other, owned by various branches of one family. Here we rest for and road when
a time and inspect the wares of the different manufacturers the shades of evening seem to hint that return
viewing the scenery around the
hills
and
on the one
in the
we
dells
and
side,
us,
which
is
till
time for us to
a few minutes in
grand and
lovely.
On
get shadows mingling with vapours
of roseate light on the other, while
tips
across yonder valley rises a vast range of hills
now
is
we cannot go without spending
but
;
it
whose summits are
of glowing pink as the last rays of the setting sun
fall
on
their snow-clad peaks.
Our
coolies start
on the return journey with an
by the bracing
tread, induced
air
elasticity of
and a descending road, which
soon brings us to Shidewara, where we find Mr. Ishida (who had stayed behind somewhere on the way), and, to our surprise, the
Government
who had accompanied us to Awadji seated in Where the Government official can have sprung
official
a tea-house.
from we cannot imagine,
his first
is
we must
returning, as
stay the night here
we
are in no
;
but Saumarez and
way prepared
and have not even a tooth-brush with the dangers of the
and worse bridges,
staying the
night
beautiful town,
as best
In
we
is
carried on
we can
we consent
on
for a two-days' journey,
To
us.
his pleading that
thus
is
near, that the village in
very beautiful, and that by
see
to remain
is
another
industry and
a
and to get through the night
can.
front
of every Japanese hotel,
greater portion of little
insist
;
industry
this
I
way are considerable, owing to the bad roads we turn a deaf ear but when we are told that
the chief seat of the basket manufacture
which
appearance amongst
Ishida informs us that he has secured us rooms, and
us to-day. that
for this
its
length, there
is
and running along the
a sort of seat which, although
more than a continuation of the
floor
beyond the
sliding
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
partitions, constitutes the
place,
windows.
and here we have our dinner
This ;
is
79
the travellers' resting-
but to our sorrow most of
we brought with us have disappeared, and what remains in the way of provisions is chiefly a pot of jam. It was a happy thought of Saumarez putting that jam in the basket, for in most places rice can be got for money and although poor the sandwiches which
;
water scarcely forms of
rice boiled in
gives
makes
a relish and
it
since the time of which
only jam and a
and
rice,
monument ought
I
I
it,
now
jam
a satisfactory meal,
Very
at least, palatable. write,
have
often,
made my meal
I
of
soon came to the solemn conclusion that
Saumarez for first introducing jam when on an inland journey
to be erected to
the practice of carrying English in
itself
Japan.
The wayside place,
—
hostelry or rural inn of Japan
is
an interesting
scrupulously clean rooms separated only by sliding
its
paper partitions,
raised
its
on which the Mikado would
dais,
sit
should he ever select this apartment as his resting-place, the side-
opening
the
in
which
partition
rails
off this
domestic throne,
through which his food Avould be passed, the balcony outside the
room with the garden beyond, and the
bath, which
for the refreshment of the traveller, give
to
cannot
fail
is
deemed necessary its
hotel look slides
are
supplied
enclosed in a separate room, which generally
within sight of the central
within
is
a character which
to please.
While the bath lies
it
damp
courtyard or garden,
that the process of unrobing
precincts
;
and
here,
where
all
may
all
the rooms,
I
is
not
be conducted
the rooms of the
upon the one enclosure, and where the
removed from
it
front
window-
observe two of the
newly-arrived occupants of opposite rooms undress, and wearing literally
nothing but a smile, walk along the balconies
the public rooms in the most unconcerned
manner
neither noticing, nor being noticed, save
by the rude
in front
possible
;
of
and,
foreigner,
proceed towards the bath-room, which the one enters while the other remains on the balcony awaiting his turn. tainly a
There
charming simplicity about the Japanese, who,
condition he
may
be,
has never
\'ct
in
is
cer-
whatever
discovered that under any
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
So
circumstances he
me were
is
naked.
have seen
I
indeed strange sights
but
;
at
many
what
hotels
to
never saw a lustful look,
I
a lewd act, nor any manifestation of ill-advised emotion, incon-
may seem
ceivable as this
European mind.
to the
we
After our meal, which consisted chiefly of rice and jam,
ask for a
brandy or wine, as we thereby hope
little
but nothing of the kind
digestion
;
heard of
in this
we
known
happy and innocent town.
clap our hands, for this
manner
the
is
Our beds
called in Japan.
are soon ready
Saumarez and three
lets for
is
for
to encourage
or has ever been
Being ready
in :
for bed,
which the servant
is
there are three cover-
me, and to each
allotted a
is
bag
of rice husks for a pillow.
We
are scarcely in bed
when
a girl enters our
walls of most rooms consist of movable slides, readily be pushed aside, one
nothing
a
in
to take
any of which can
always being surprised by the
is
some unexpected corner, for there is Japanese room that represents a door or fixed place
entrance of a servant
of entrance,
room
In these strange houses where three
a pillow out of a cupboard.
— people
in
enter
most convenient to
at
the
point
we we
rise,
and on pushing aside the
themselves.
At
seven
in
the morning
window-slides in front of
us,
perceive that
been placed on the open balcony
in
a small tub has
front of our room,
beside this stands a large vessel of water covered with
ice,
while
and that
a towel hangs from the pendent towel-horse, for Mr. Sakata has
explained that
we were unprepared
home.
Hot water
and
added
this
shiver
is,
for
spending the night from,
however, brought us
to the cold
in
a
little "
serves at least to melt the
and wash, and dry ourselves as well as we
Japanese towel,
should be remembered,
it
is
piggin,"
ice.
can,
We for
a
only a piece of thin
blue-and-white cotton cloth, of three feet in length and ten inches in
width,
pattern,
purpose
it
and while
it
is
adorned with an
often
interesting
appears to the European but imperfectly to serve the
for
and on two
which little
it
is
Our beds
intended.
are cleared away,
trays about twelve inches square and supported
on legs three inches
in
height,
is
borne our breakfast, which
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
consists of tea, boiled
a
in
large
The
room.
of the
eggs,
covered wooden tea
and
rice
the
being brought
rice
iron frame over a hibachi (fire-holder) resting
the
in
supported
a teapot
in
is
—
which stands
vessel
8i
on the
centre
by a small
The
floor.
eggs are in saucers, one of which occupies a corner of each of
our trays, and with the exception of an empty bowl, a diminu-
and a pair of new chop-sticks Avhich
cup,
tive
fill
three other
corners of our trays, they constitute the entire settings of our breakfast-table.
A
serving
girl,
who
brings with her a small tray,
behind the rice-box, and holds out
one at a time. of a
flat
to
kneels
one and then to the
place on
it
our rice bowls,
Putting into the bowl a portion of rice by the aid
wooden spoon, she hands and
solely to serve the rice
choose to ask
first
we may
other her tray in order that
now
We
for.
it
have some
breakfast, for as there are
to
owner, her duty being
its
anything that a guest
to bring
may
eating our
little difficulty in
neither egg-cups nor egg-spoons,
we
have to adopt a method of peeling and sucking and sucking and
which would scarcely seem elegant
peeling,
European breakfast-table
At
eight o'clock
we
;
and worse than
are there, for the morning, which
and
frosty,
little
if
practised
we can
at
get no
a
salt.
are on our road for Arima, the seat of the
basket-manufactures, and a lovely road
we
all
hence our coolies run
is
we
travel.
fine
and
Arima
well.
is
In two hours
clear, is still cold
a most charming
Swiss-like village, beautifully situated on the side of a valley
where a mountain torrent dances between moss-grown stones and winds beneath the shade of rich overhanging street of the
The
foliage.
chief
town consists almost wholly of basket-manufactories,
bathing establishments, and charming tea-houses, and here nearly all
the buildings are two storeys in height.
A
more
esqueness of
beautiful its
town than
this I
never saw, for the pictur-
buildings and their delightful cleanliness would of
themselves render
it
most
attractive
;
but here
scenery, lichen-covered crags,
moss-grown
and
impetuous
withal,
indeed
is
the
rushing
Arima, that
I
of
feel as if
G
stones,
waters.
we
find
plumose
So
lovely ferns,
beautiful
weeks could be spent here most
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
82
After
happily.
room
tiffin,
tea-house of the town,
in the chief
principal street
which was prepared
for
us in an
upstairs
we walked through
the
and inspected the basket manufactories, the chief
Here we
industry of the town.
many
see baskets of
kinds and
shapes, baskets both large and small, baskets so dainty that the
highest lady in any land might boudoir, be
it
give
to
ever so carefully arranged.
tion of beautiful baskets
them a place Japan
my
the land of baskets, and while up to the time of
Arima work had found
common
of a
all
kind
its ;
way
and
it
her
Indeed, such a collec-
never before met with.
I
in
is
visit
into the
London market,
was not
until
I
truly
much it
was
pointed out to
the Japanese that the better kinds would find a ready sale in
Europe that they were introduced
We
now
discover that
Arima
into England.
one of the most fashionable
is
watering-places of Japan, and that
possesses mineral springs
it
which have a great reputation
for healing virtues.
one of the bath-houses, which
in
Lukerbad
in Switzerland,
some
and here
We
look into
respects resembles those of
ladies are enjoying themselves;
but they have dispensed with even the most simple apology for
They
a bathing costume.
however,
are,
in
no way abashed by
our presence, and, to our astonishment step from the water to hear particulars of the foreign visitors.
Much is
beautiful straw-work
indeed so abundant that
But
here.
about
I
that
it
is
I
offered for sale in Arima.
thought
all
it
must be manufactured
brought from Tagima, a town
is
now
so far spent that
we
are obliged, though most
reluctantly, to take once. more to our jinrikishas,
return journey.
On
paper of an inferior character been
collected
Upon
wetting.
paper-mill
;
but,
first
feeling
start
little
on our
caravan
which we are approaching much is
made from waste paper which
and reduced to pulp by
entering the village
we stopped
little
at the
more than door of a
on being told that there are two much larger
manufactories farther
Our
and
the road Sakata stopped our
to explain that at the village
has
It
miles distant and directly inland.
fifty
Time
find
is
down
the village,
was of wonder.
we went
If this
to
one of
these.
be one of the largest
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
what must the smaller
mills vat,
83
mills be, for here there
is
but one
and that no larger than an ordinary washing-tub, one hand
frame on which the paper
made, and
is
only seventeen inches
this
by twelve, while one woman and a boy constitute the
entire staff
of the establishment.
The frame which the woman uses has a margin of wood, while a layer of bamboo threads, about as thick as the shank of an ordinary pin covered by a sheet of hard
She was
ogram, and inches deep
in ;
size
silk
which was
sitting in front of the vat,
three feet six
in
forms
its
centre.
shape a parallel-
by two, and about eighteen She had the " frame " in
was the pulp.
in this vat
her hand, and by her side rested a pile of the wet paper which
had just been formed .
;
but here the sheets were not separated the
one from the other by layers of flannel or any other substance.
Having
stirred
the contents
of the
simply dipped her
vat, she
frame into the pulp and collected as much as she wanted, and by a dexterous
movement caused
of the frame.
Allowing
the water to drain pile
it
to flow evenly over the silk surface
to rest for a few minutes to give time for
she added this newly-formed sheet to the wet
by inverting the frame, and thus went on making sheet
On
sheet.
placed, is
off,
it
after
the top of the pile of wet sheets of paper a board
and upon
this a
is
few large stones, thus a quantity of water
squeezed out from the newly-formed sheets
;
and the
fact that
these sheets do not adhere the one to the other must be explained
by the great length of the small
amount of
at this
used
I
crushing
is
The
manufacture.
size
employed
obtained from a small conical root
do not know the name, the glutinous matter being
by soaking
extracted
of Japanese paper, and by the
fibre
in its
paper manufactory
of which
A
size
it
for
long
a
time
in
water
and
then
it.
sufficient quantity of
paper, the
water having been pressed from the
boy brings a plank of wood of about
and thirteen or fourteen inches
in width,
six feet in length
and then removes the
boulder stones and the board from the newly-formed paper, then separating from the heap the uppermost sheet, and placing this
on the plank, he presses
it
down
so that
it
adheres by
its
own
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
84
moisture to the board on which
and a
third sheet.
and leans planks
operation
In one instance
by
and so with a second
placed,
I
is
disposed of in this primitive manner.
observed that an economy of space was secured
six sheets of paper being stuck to the one board
each side
air
continued with other sheets and other
is
the whole pile
till
is
in a slanting direction against the side of the house.
it
The same
it
This done, he takes the board to the open
—
three on
but this board was outside one of the small factories of
;
The paper
the village, which probably was not so rich in boards.
being dry,
simply peeled from the boards and arranged
is
it
in
bundles for the market.
We after
now go on our way, and our men run
well.
a twenty-five miles' gallop they scamper
through the town, and appear as fresh as
if
At Kobe
like wild
Arabs
they were beginning
instead of ending their hard day's work.
Our next whole of
my
journey, one of the most interesting during the
Japan, was to the ancient city of Nara,
travels in
me
where Mr. Okubo invited antiquities
to inspect the rare collection of
which have been the private property of the reigning
Mikado from very remote ages. The time at which it was formed unknown, but the collection probably consists of presents given to the early emperors by the envoys of foreign potentates, and of the spoils of war. Whatever its origin may be this is certain, that an inventory of the main body of the collection was made more than a thousand years since, and that this inventory still is
exists with the objects therein catalogued.
We
are astir early, for
now saying by
train for
Osaka
from Osaka we thirty-three
we have our packing At ten
adieu for the time to Kobe.
— an
hour's run
and a half English
half an hour on the road our
they began
by
start in jinrikishas for
it.
go through the suffering fatigue.
To me toil
it
is
rail
do
we are we leave
as
on the way to Kioto
Nara, which
miles.
to
o'clock
is
;
distant about
With but one stoppage of
men end
the journey better than
perfectly astounding
how
the coolies
which they do, and that without apparently
Fancy a heavy man
about thirteen stones), wrapped
(for
in thick coats
my
weight was then
and a
fur rug, seated
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART, in
85
a carriage with a large heavy dressing-bag at his
dragged by the same men rate of
between
thirty minutes
being
feet,
and a half miles
for thirty-three
at the
and six miles an hour, with only stopping
five
The
on the journey.
exertion necessary for the
superhuman
fulfilment of this task seems almost
yet these feats
;
my
inland journey.
As though our poor coolies had not dragged already, we were told at Nara that the hotel was
us far enough
of endurance
I
shall often
have to record during
Having reached and inspected it, hotel, and that we must go
the other side of the town.
Sakata said that back to another
was not a good
it
the town
in
my
but
:
suspicion
prietor has an aversion to foreigners, for in
way
half a mile on
that the pro-
is
some of the
out-of-the
where a foreigner has never or rarely been seen the
districts
Japanese seem afraid of him, and Sakata himself brought up to believe that
if
me
tells
that he
was
ever a foreigner caught a
Japanese alone he killed and ate him
;
and when he was nine
years of age he had the firmest conviction that the belief was literally
borne out by
While the hotel
fact.
for
distant, the coolies start
from a long
rest,
as cheerfully as
No
A
people that
Japanese
is
I
a
is
good mile
they were just fresh
if
and with shouts and laughter bolt
astonishing speed. the Japanese.
which we have to make
know
most happy as
off at a
of are as
never to be angry, and
said
must say that although we were often
most trying positions
in
I I
never once saw Ishida out of temper, and
I
Sakata in the smallest degree angry, while
was frequently almost
boiling with rage.
The Japanese
are said never to scold, and
never to punish their children, yet
such happy, well-behaved children,
I
never but once saw.
I
—
heard a child cry save when actually
never in
my
before
life
so cheerful, so merry.
in
bodily pain.
Is
it
I
because
the Japanese are almost exclusively a herbivorous race while are largely carnivorous
By
we
?
six o'clock, having run thirty-four
and a half hours, we
saw
never
are
housed
in
and a half miles
in six
our hotel, a grandly quaint
building of true Japanese character, with the kitchen open to the street,
and a courtyard with a gallery
all
round.
We
dine in true
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
86
Japanese fashion on the
floor,
a recumbent position, for
Nara country. I
is
writing has to be done in
neither chairs nor table.
one of the oldest and most interesting
Prior to the revolution of
have already
signifies
my
and
we have
said,
i
means southern
capital,
of the
cities
word Kioto, as while the word Tokio
868 Kioto
(the
northern capital) was for seven hundred years the capital
of Japan, and for some years previous to this the Mikado's resi-
dence was at Nara, which was then the imperial
was
It
city.
during the imperial residence in Nara that the rare collection of antiquities to
was placed
the house where
in
remains, and
still
it
Okubo has kindly obtained for me but many objects were old even when The city also is full of antiquities of
inspect this collection Mr.
the Mikado's permission
brought together
in
;
Nara.
the greatest interest.
Up
to
two years since these
antiquities of the
Mikado had
never been seen save by those immediately connected with the
emperor himself
but then for a short time some of the treasures
;
what we might
were exposed,
in
great temples
of the
people by
railings.
call
the cloisters of one of the
town, in glass cases protected
This
is
the
first
time,
I
believe,
from the
on which
they have been shown to any foreigner, save when they were
open to public exhibition two years
since,
and
is
it
certainly the
only occasion on which the foreigner has been allowed minutely to inspect
and to handle them.
Hearing that they were to be
opened, Mr. Saumarez asked that he might see them at the same
time with me, and this permission was readily granted.
The following interesting Mai/ of ]une 12, 1875
extracts are from the Japan Weekly
:
"
Nara was
the residence of the
after this date the
remained down
to our
four were females.
Mikados from
a.d.
708
until 782.
Imperial residence was fixed at Kioto, where
own
Their
times. rule,
Seven sovereigns reigned
at
it
Shortly
has since
Nara, of
whom
with some slight interruptions, was a prosperous
and glorious one, distinguished by the cultivation of the arts, literature, and religion. In the reign of the empress Gemmio Tenno (a.d. 708 to 715) copper was first found in Japan. In 718, under the succeeding empress, a collection of laws in ten volumes was made, and shortly after a history of Japan in fifty volumes was composed.
The Mikado, Shomu Tenno
(a.d.
724
to 748),
had
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
87
relations with China, and in his eighth year two Buddhist priests arrived, one from Southern India, the other from Siam. About the fifteenth year of his
reign a colossal
Buddha
in the province of
of copper, overlaid with gold, was erected at Sitaraki,
Omi, by the exertions of a
priest
named
Kioghi,
over the whole kingdom to collect funds for the purpose. this statue
was transported
there to this day.
known
better it
will
It
Nara, and
to
is
the famous Dai-butz which exists
being three feet higher than the
fifty-three feet high,
is
Dai-butz at Kamakura.
thus be readily understood
It
who went
In the year 745
was cast
how such
in
a number of pieces, and
a colossus could be transported
from Sitaraki
to Nara. Little of the gilding anywhere is now visible. The head also of the statue is of more modern date than the rest. The temple having been burned in the sixteenth century, the head was so injured that it
the present face is much coarser and sterner than Kamakura Dai-butz, and is probably not an exact reproduction of the original. The religion of Buddha was making great progress in Japan at this time. In 746 died a priest named Gen-bo, who had brought from China
required to be replaced
;
that of the
thousand volumes of Buddhist books, and
five
many
images.
749 an
In
imperial edict was issued forbidding the slaughter of any animals in Japan.
Poetry was also
much
cultivated,
and some compositions of
this class are
still
extant.
The
"
last
sovereign of the seven,
Kwonin Tenno, died
782, and his
in
successor determined to remove the seat of Government to another place.
was some time before a to
locality
Kioto did not take place
till
was permanently 794.
fixed upon,
furniture
and property of
all
in
which the imperial
kinds was disposed.
" This building exists to this day in complete integrity.
It is
massive timbers laid horizontally, being raised from the ground on solid trunks of trees eight or ten feet high.
every
sixty-first
year since
Nara
Previously to the Court quitting
an immense wooden magazine had been erected there,
It
and the transfer
its
building, that
It is is,
said to have been
at the
made
of
pillars
of
examined
beginning of each cycle,
when necessary. What is more astonishing is that the objects deposited there by the Mikados have been kept in perfect safety from the eighth century down to the present time, having escaped the danger of fire, and repaired
robbery, and turbulent times, those destroying agencies which in no other part of the world, probably, have ever allowed any building of importance, less
have
a wooden one, to remain intact for so long a period. in the course of centuries
been added
Some
much
fresh objects
to the original collection, but those
which belong to the first deposit are all named in an inventory made in the eighth century which was deposited with them, and they can thus be identified
and distinguished from recent additions. " This being the age of exhibitions and popular the head of some antiquary that it was time to bring
it
came
to light the long
into
hidden
Nara repository. Hence the Nara exhibition, which has been by many foreigners during the present summer, although we suspect
treasures of the visited
instruction,
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
88
had any idea of the extraordinary character of the objects We have, it is true, in Europe marvellous collections
that very few have
exposed
to their view.
of the antiquities of
all
ages, which have been brought together piecemeal.
The genuineness and exact date of some of these objects can be ascertained, but how many of them are damaged and mutilated from the vicissitudes they have undergone, and of how many is the history and origin more or less open to question
What would
.?
the antiquarians of
Europe say
if
an ancient building
containing the household furniture and effects of Charlemagne, with a catalogue
same made under
of the
opened
for the first time,
preservation
But of such a kind
!
now
that monarch's immediate' direction, ^ were
and the contents announced
now
the exhibition
is
to
be on view,
to
be
all in fine
oft'ered to the
eyes of
Japanese antiquaries. "
The temple The
of Dai-butz affords a convenient locale for the display of these objects brought from the royal magazine are arrayed in the
curiosities.
area immediately round the great statue, on each side and behind outer galleries or cloisters which form the exterior of the temple
is
it.
a
In the
still
more
extensive collection of antiquities, contributed by various temples or by private
To some
possessors.
of these objects a
that of the contents of the
still
higher antiquity
is
attributed than
Nara magazine, and the very remarkable character
we have inspected induces us to think that this belief is well know exactly what external evidence of their age
of several which
founded, although we do not exists.
"
Amongst
century
which there
is
screens,
pictures,
books, sculptures, masks, of
a very large collection, pottery, and glass, copper bowls and
dishes, spoons, soap
(!)
round cakes the
in large
and ornaments,
scratchers, beads dresses, hats,
Nara Mikados of the eighth
the curiosities belonging to the
may be mentioned
and nondescript
bells,
articles.
size of quoits, tortoise-shell
weapons and
back-
utensils of various kinds,
Probably the larger part of these things
The
are of foreign origin, and principally Chinese.
eighth century was the
middle period of the great Tang dynasty (a.d. 620-907) and the books and pictures here collected
are a rich field for the
Some
literature during that time. likely to
poetry which
be Indian or Persian than Chinese.
A
study of Chinese art and
we saw
struck us as
more
jug or ewer of white glass,
about a foot high, excited some incredulity as an object of the eighth century. We were told by one informant that it was not to be found in the original inventory, while another antiquary,
assured us that
it
is
there.
able for the freshness of
been
just
cloisters
^
him
is
said to
is
engaged
in
studying the collection,
—
The miscellaneous collection in the outer various ages, from some alleged to be one
mill.
embraces objects of
number
who
specimen of Chinese writing paper was remarkappearance smooth and unstained, it might have
produced from the
Charlemagne of the
its
A
have been so particular that he had an exact
of eggs which the hens laid
upon
his property.
register furnished
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART, thousand
hundred years
five
The most
old,
down
89
to those of the time of
Taiko-sama.
antique of these curiosities are certain bronzes which have an Indian
and some statuettes of clay (?) which remind one of Greek work more than anything else. Some wooden statues, of nondescript physiognomy character,
may perhaps be
We
Corean.
of remarkable
artist,
saw one picture ascribed
The
merit.
pictures, on
best
and there were many specimens of
Corean
whole, are
the
The Japanese
attributed to Chinese artists, or copies from such. lovers of autographs,
to a celebrated
those
are great
this class of relic
notably writings by Yoritoma, Taikosama, and lyeyasu.
It would be imposfrom two days' cursory inspection of the Nara exhibition to give more
sible
than the faintest idea of the value and curiosity of
its
contents.
evident
It is
that here are the materials for the study of Indian, Chinese, antiquities,
such as are not likely to
satisfactory to in
and Japanese be congregated anywhere else, and it is
know
that Japanese antiquaries of high attainments are
engaged
cataloguing and describing the collection.
We
have been reading and preparing ourselves
morrow and was first found
of the -gold
it
may
in
Japan
;
made
of Nara, which was
Shomu Tenno,
in
the fifteenth year of the reign of
was covered with
hence the gold employed
metal,
year 749, the great Dai-butz
in the
or in the year 739,
entirely brought
in
start with
my
work had been
vast
this
this precious
from foreign countries.
Saturday the 3d of February 1877 great day in
for the sights
be worth while to mention that while
We
history.
one of the
Museum
are
up
officials
always remain a
will
at seven,
and
after breakfast
from Tokio, who has been
sent to conduct us to the treasury and the sights of the town. First,
we
here, as fire.
see
a
temple
everywhere
else
consisting in
Japan,
of
much
buildings
several
but
;
has been destroyed by
Originally the garan or complete temple
(or,
as
we should
group of temples) consisted of a number of buildings, one of which was the main temple or kon-do, one a pagoda or to, say,
one the eating-house or shioku-do, one the saidono, and one the bath-house or yuya.
been destroyed by
fire,
or nanyen-do, has been
have been added, and
while
eastern
Some
southern
From time to whole were now
rebuilt. if
the
would consist of a pagoda or nanyen-do, an
one, the
golden
lecture -room
to,
a southern
temple
or
or
of these have
round temple time, buildings
standing,
they
round temple or
tokin-do,
a
western
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
90
golden temple or saikin-do, a chief temple or kon-do, a lecture-
room
or ko-do, a northern round temple or hokuyen-do, a bath-
house or yuya, a building termed an anteroom or hosodono, and a
refreshment -house called shioku-do
now remain
but
;
pagoda, the eastern
the
are
of these
golden
that
all
temple, the
northern
round temple, and the southern round temple which
has been
rebuilt,
have been
but the three old buildings which
in existence
Under each of the main temples of one of sacred buildings material
of this
;
these groups of
indeed, the Buddhist scriptures enjoin the performance
The
rite.
materials prescribed for this purpose are pearls,
the Japanese shako, which
and a kind of
shell
by
called
appears to be that of the Sqiiilla
new or southern round temple is a great Buddha Buddha of which we read last night), but although
In the
mantis.
(not the great
proportions are colossal,
in a large
and
ill-lit
it is
building,
not very
where
it is
visible,
being enshrined
seen only through white
In front of this colossal figure are
curtains partly drawn.
sacred vessels, indeed, so many, that with the image and
roundings the temple is
remain
customary to bury seven pieces of precious
it is
gold, silver, agate, coral, amber,
its
still
about twelve hundred years.
filled almost to the door,
is
allowed to enter the building save the
sur-
and no one
The
priest.
many
its
disappoint-
ment to me caused by this arrangement was great. The northern temple of this group contains another Buddha and a number of other idols, besides an immense pile of blocks used for printing the Buddhist scriptures, but this Dai-butz
comparatively small.
The
are about twenty inches
and a half
in
long, nine inches
The
thickness.
is
blocks used for printing the scriptures
grain of the
broad, and an inch
wood runs through-
out the length, and they are engraved on both sides, the engraving,
however, only extending within two inches of each end.
much
These blocks are engraved print wall papers, that
is,
and produce the impression vening wood inch.
is
cut
away
like
those
the portion which is
to the
left
is
with which
we
to receive the ink
standing, while
all
the inter-
depth of about one-eighth of an
The unengraved end -portions
of the block are reduced
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
to the thickness of about three-quarters
of an
91
inch,
and serve
only as handles.
may be
It I
thought that
speaking of these printing-blocks,
in
ought to have compared them with the blocks from which we
woodcut
print our
illustrations
but the reader
;
I
woodcuts are engraved upon wood with a
vertical grain,
the
blocks of which
woodcuts also parts
are
are
but
I
under-
will better
stand their nature by the parallel which
have drawn,
for
our
whereas
Our
speak have a longitudinal grain.
engraved with great fineness, and the sunk
little
below
general
the
surface
of the block,
both our wall paper blocks and the Japanese blocks
whereas of which
I
speak are cut more deeply and
in
a
more simple
manner.
many
In this temple are also there
indeed,
are
piles
of such,
small gods formed of
wood
;
they being
the remains of a thousand figures, which were
formerly arranged together in the manner of the
members of
concerts .
;
the chorus at one of our great
and of the old arrangement of these
gods they show us a model.
I
am
struck with
the simplicity of treatment which these figures present,
and with the crispness and beauty of
their folded drapery, indeed, the treatment of
the drapery reminds
me by
its
simple excel-
lence of the best sculptured works of our
mediaeval times
own
and between some of these
and those with which we are familiar
figures in
;
own
our
cathedrals there
is
a striking reFig.
semblance (Fig. 25).
Seeing
these works, the priest presents
They
my
interest in
me
25.
Small God, or
Stati'e, carved
in
Wood.
with two.
are about eight inches in height, and while one
perfect the other has in part crumbled
away through
is
tolerably
the effects
of time.
In the eastern golden temple there
many
curious idols,
some of
life size,
is
another Buddha, and
some larger, which evidently The priest now tells us,
represent peoples of various nations.
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
92
these idols were presents from China, others from
some of
that
and that
India,
uncommon
not
is
it
Japan
in
presents
to find
of this description in the great Buddhist temples.
This
temple,
much
is
A
decay.
to
the
like
out of repair
we were permitted
last
indeed, what
;
is
here stored
number of coarse earthen
hundred years
and resembling
since,
often served
is
(only in
this
enter, falling
made about
vessels
a
form a modern tea-cup
in
on which the
of the country, with a particular form of stand
cup
to
is all
case,
cup and the stand
the
are larger than those of the present day and are united together), are
as well
here,
as
such as
I
saw
Tokio
in
mace -like
one of those curious
consisting of a bent stem of the (Fig. 19).
Nelumbium
censers,
Buddhist lotus)
(or
This censer has a flower and
leaf at the end, the flower ascending
and the
while in the centre of the stem there
a
is
leaf descending,
young and unexpanded
leaf.
This object was made about a hundred years ago, and
while
I
have only seen
Buddha holds
it
and that incense Seeing priest
my
presents
in is
his
it
left
upon an
altar,
I
am
hand when he prays
sometimes burnt upon
informed that for his
mother,
it.
admiration for both the cups and this censer, the
one of the former and the
latter to
me, and
have no compunctions of conscience about taking them, is
here perishing
will
;
and soon, unless things greatly change,
be ruin and desolation.
Under
the Shogunate
I
for all all
rule these
monuments of antiquity were carefully preserved but the present Government seem to consider it no part of their duty to guard ;
from destruction these ancient buildings and their contents. We next visit the pagoda, which is a splendid structure of
remarkably
fine proportions.
There
is
the pagodas of Japan and of China.
always uninteresting and possessed of
a great difference between
While the little
beauty, those of the
former are invariably both graceful and beautiful. ever, the
Our
in
In China, how-
form than
in
Japan.
priest-guide opens for us the door of the pagoda, and
entering,
By
pagodas are much more varied
latter are nearly
we
find a
few idols
climbing, scrambling, and
arranged
on
its
basement
upon floor.
squeezing through spaces which
ART,
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
are almost too small for
me
to pass,
I
93
reach the upper gallery,
from which we have a magnificent view of Nara and roundings.
am now
I
informed that
who has been permitted the
to
first
whom
the
I
am
the
to ascend this pagoda,
eastern
golden
sur-
its
European
first
and that
I
am
temple has ever been
opened.
Time temples
is
;
hence we
passing,
we must not
but
cannot tarry longer without
leave
at
these
inspecting an
old
— Lions of Corean workmanship, guarding the gateway of the great Temple of Todaiji in Kioto. It is impossible to view these without the thought
Fig. 26.
of the lion and the unicorn being
coniferous
tree
the
in
awakened
of
old
trees,
cone-bearing plants
especially ;
the mind.
grounds, the
horizontally with great grandeur.
fond
in
branches of which spread
The Japanese
of the
species
of
are particularly fir
and other
propping up their branches with great care
and securing them so that neither storm nor tempest
them
off.
From
tip to tip
shall lop
the horizontal branches of the tree
before us measure one hundred and forty-eight
feet.
We
now
give a subscription to the temple, bid adieu to the priest, and leave.
Walking nearly a quarter of a mile we arrive at the temple This of the Great Buddha (Dai-butz), the largest in Japan. is
the
years
temple of Todaiji, built eleven hundred and thirty -one since.
At
the gateway stand two stone lions (Fig. 26)
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
94
supposed to be of Corean workmanship.
In the porch, at the
=
gateway, are two colossal standing gods or niwo with a club of a form
name
is
common
mitsshaku kongo
Fijian weapons,
in
first
kings, one
and whose
the other bearing a brazen mace, such
;
hand while praying, and named
as a Buddhist priest holds in his
narayen kongo.
This porch,
many
is
which these
in
deities
have
for so
wooden uprights in height by twelve feet in one hundred feet (or pillars) being Having passed this colossal gateway we go circumference. years stood,
of vast proportions,
its
chief
through a second of similar proportions, then across the courtyard to the temple
Buddha, for
itself,
wherein the great Buddha
fifty-three feet in height,
almost
This
enshrined.
is
the enormous temple,
has a nimbus eighty -seven feet in diameter, on which rest
it
sixteen images, each eight feet high.
by
fills
broad
nine feet six inches
;
Its face
sixteen feet long
is
shoulders are twenty-eight feet
its
seven and a half inches broad, while nine hundred and sixty-six curls
adorn
head.
its
The temple posture)
in
has been
which twice
great
this
figure
by
destroyed
fire.
rests
sitting
(in
During the
last
fire the head of the figure was much injured and loosened, and shortly afterwards it was thrown down by an earthquake, when
a
new head was
The head
cast.
of this figure
nearly so well as that of the Great Dai-butz
much inferior to that The new head was cast in the
and indeed figure.
Our
it is
visit
to this temple
enough met with here he be
any student of the
days
if
is
not weeks
first
past,
but as
;
is
whether
we
are
to
inspection of the collection of ancient objects in
Buddha.
;
sixteenth century.
destination and renewed our acquaintance with him,
the
Kamakura
of the other parts of the
show us the great collection we must hurry on. Having reached our
keeping Mr. Machida (who of antiquities) waiting,
at
like
necessarily short, while there
is
to interest
artist or antiquarian, for
do not
I
we begin our
Nara, and find
part in corridors surrounding this temple of the great
The
objects here displayed are arrayed chiefly in plain
pine-wood glass-fronted cases, so fastened that the contents
may
any tampering with
easily be detected, for, instead of being furnished
ART,
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
with locks which, as
made
in
may
Japan,
95
be easily picked, they
simply fastened by twisted strips of tough paper
are
strung
through two clasps and knotted together, while a red stamp
The stamp used
impressed upon the folds of the knot.
purpose somewhat resembles our old-fashioned
formed of wood, and the part which
and not sunk.
raised
This seal
is
it
is
to yield the impression
is
charged with a kind of red
is
paint,
and then pressed upon the knot of the
It
obvious that a contrivance of this kind
is
in the
way
of keeping out a thief;
but
it
it
of adjustment to bring
soft paper-string. will
cannot
whether the case has been tampered with or has once been untied
for this
only
seals,
is
do nothing fail
not, for
show
to
the knot
if
would be quite impossible by any amount all
the parts of the impressed seal again
together in proper relation to one another.
Through the kindness of Mr. Machida these seals are broken whenever I wish to investigate any object, and I feel it to be indeed a privilege to handle and examine these rarest of antiquities. Here are sword blades one thousand three hundred years old,
which are made of copper, but these belonged to the gods
(idols),
and came from a temple called Horiu-zi
There
is
(zi
means
church).
a large iron shield about six feet in height, in every
On a saddle, way well wrought but its age is unknown. known to be about one thousand years old, is a conventional ;
Persian -like
A
good.
peacock, wrought
repousse brass, which
in
is
very
Chinese vase, which has been here preserved for over a
thousand years, and has a black ground, with a spray of bamboo
and certain rocks wrought upon are
wood
it
in
gray,
carvings of lions executed with great spirit
but the ages of which are
unknown
one thousand three hundred years thousand years of age.
There
is
;
two old,
by
sceptres, the
ings of
There
" feeling,"
one being is
one
a thin iron bowl most beautifully ;
this
is
a thousand
such vessels were formerly carried through the streets
;
priests,
and
while the other
shaped, the bottom of which has been patched years old
interesting.
is
who
held them out for the purpose of receiving offer-
rice.
One
piece of bronze-casting, which has been preserved in the
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
96
Mikado's collection ever since the inventory was made a thousand years since, ever seen.
as perfect a work, of
is
It
any that
kind, as
its
I
have
the frame of a sacred gong, and consists of
is
two dragons entwined together and standing on the back of a In another work a lotus flower cast in bronze springs
griffin.
from an ornament consisting of flames superposed on water water and the heat producing vegetation spirit or
god (Buddha) that
work
on the
sits
The age
Another
which the petals are
a crystal drop (Fig.
the
reaching up to the
flower.
unknown.
is
age, in
—
of this
lotus of great all
tipped with
and a small clay
27),
figure with the hair so arranged as to resemble
exactly what
we know
as the jester's cap with
which have been added *"m7';^''^t'/'''^°'"'' (Nelumbium) Flower, preserved in the Imperial treasury, with crystal drop in metal socket hanging from its
apex.
Each
is
in
of the
a tunic, evidently of Chinese workmanship, -T'
^y[^\^
-'
'
^ nchly-embroidcred collarcttc in gold
and colours
long shoc-Hke stirrups on which
;
of the outer
flower
had
things
later years there
i
petals
Of
occur in the collection.
ass's ears,
•
1
i
''"'^''^'
about
five
hundred years
since,
the
earlier
form of stirrup where the front part of the foot was incased
There are one or two simple pieces of
truncated cone.
j
thc foot would rcst, and which supci'sedcd,
being chairs and a small cabinet, six hundred years
old,
in a
furniture,
both used
on ceremonial occasions, and several pieces of armour which belonged to that warrior to whose
Kobe
(Hiojo),
and
in front of
memory
which
I
a temple was built at
saw the beacon
fires
during
the time of the illuminations a few days since.
There was
also an entire
row of Chinese Celadon vases (each
of about twenty-two inches in height),
some having the sea-green
glaze on white, and others on red, earth.
Certain of these bear
bands of Chinese ornament or sprays of foliage wrought upon them, while the ornament on others
But the most curious object singular formation (Fig. 28).
a rat which
sits
is
obviously Indian in character.
in the collection
Here the
upon the top of a
oil is
is
perhaps a lamp of
stored in the
body of
Half way down the pole
pole.
and resting on a projecting bracket
is
a
saucer, in the centre of
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART, which
a pin that connects
is
saucer
with the bracket on which
it
and leaning over
saucer,
this
in
is filled
with
a lamp which exhibits no peculiar
qualities
till
most of the
oil
has been con-
a
stream, which
Then suddenly replenish
to
suffices
now
the
rests
:
the
is lit
we have sumed.
it
When
a wick.
side, is
its
and the wick
oil
97
nearly
ex-
hausted saucer, issues from the mouth of the
The
rat.
saucer being
discharged from the
no more
full,
mouth
rat's
oil is
till
it
is
again nearly empty, when the kind creature sitting "
up
and so on
store of oil
till its
The manner
in
which
this
the
effect
although
simple,
a further supply,
aloft " yields
curious, for
achieved
produced
cannot run from a vessel unless
admitted to take rises
air
is Fig.
The peg which
place.
its
it
on which
to the support
terminates in a knob or cap
;
on which the rat
but the peg
as is
is
hollow and
the rat
by a tube which runs along the bracket and then ascends
perforated immediately below
its
above the bottom of the saucer. oil
hole
therefore
From
is
oil
It is
this
oil
can run from the
part of
the collection
some two hundred yards
much more
is
distant,
should be noticed,
exposed
no further
oil,
The
body.
obvious, then, that
to run out of the rat's
again covered by
no more
it
rat's
cap, or about half an
sinks to a point at which this hole
and thus allow the this
rests, as well
connected with the body of
is
pin which stands in the centre of the saucer,
the
pre-
by the detail, A. The lamp about two feet in height.
through the stand to the upper portion of the
is
Lamp,
indicated in the rat's body and in the upper part of the stem
rests
it
28.— Curious
served in the Nara treasury. The construction of the lamp is
the centre of the saucer and at-
in
taches
is
whereby
principle of the vent-peg or pipet fluid
is
only an application of the
is
it
exhausted.
is is
rat's
is
when
air will enter
mouth
air
inch
;
but when
admitted, and
mouth.
we walked
to a
building
which contains a second and
interesting series of objects.
This portion
is
arranged
in a
kind of entrance-hall and
H
in
one
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
98
Machida informs us that everything in the room is known to be at least twelve hundred years old but all the objects are not Japanese, nor is he able to say whence many Some, however, are obviously Chinese, and of them have come.
large room, and Mr.
;
some
while
Indian,
Indian
and half
which are half Chinese
several,
character, are perhaps from Tibet, Yarkand, or other
in
inland country lying near to India and China.
we have
In this room
a magnificent collection of art objects,
which have found their home
But what
years.
in
me most
interests
perhaps
woven
the
is
and are thoroughly mediaeval and
Had
their patterns.
made
I
certain specimens from
sington
Museum had
were more Arabian
One of a
not
known
but a cursory examination, the
and had
I
should have supposed that
collection
in
the South
Ken-
been lent for exhibition here, while others
in character.
of the Arabian-looking
fabrics
reminded
me
strongly
in
which a
VArt Arabe,
in that magnificent work
plate
the style of
in
to the contrary, I
Bock
Italian
fabrics,
preserva-
for these, while of this great antiquity, are in perfect tion,
hundred
for at least twelve
Japan
portrayed (see plate entitled Etoffe dc
similar fabric
is
XI I.
In the specimen here at Nara the pattern consists
"^
sicde).
of circles
ientiirc,
regularly distributed, both horizontally and vertically,
and separated from one another by a distance equal to about half their diameter.
These
circles are fringed
by
a sort of Arabian
ornament, of such width that these fringings of the various almost meet. face,
circles
In each circle are two conventional lions, face to
while in the spaces intervening between the circles are other
Red and
small animals.
dull yellow
is
not an
uncommon com-
bination of colour in these Arabian-looking fabrics here. fabrics of this
There are printed cotton the
figure
the
colour of
a
is
usually white, on
pattern
to
the
agent,
figured
while
" resist."
ground
others
appear to
portion of the fabric having
tected from the action of the dye
a
period also, where
plain coloured
Belonging to
;
having, obviously, been removed by
the ground
colour -discharging
some
this
by what
is
owe
their
been pro-
technically termed
remote age, there
is
also
a very
ART,
by two
piece of leather, about fifteen inches
fine in
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
of white lines arranged in the form of well considered
and a
scrollwork,
enamel
cloisonne
dish, with the wires projecting
from the body about one -sixteenth of an in
six inches
feet
of pleasant yellow-brown colour, and with a pattern con-
size,
sisting
99
the cells
The enamel
inch.
however, concave, for the surface has never been
is,
Of
ground down.
same age are
the
most excellent
certain
metal mirrors, some being circular, and one being square
some of these (probably all but one) The one that is certainly Japanese
now
and about
circular, its
fifteen
back closely resembles
One from
be found on similar objects.
to
but
are of Chinese manufacture. is
inches in diameter, and the pattern on
those which are
;
China has
its
character
but the Japanese mirror has a case covered with a
red
;
fabric of
silk ;
back figured with a geometrical pattern of Celtic
mixed
colours,
—
gray-white, yellow, blue, and dull
of which are outlined with black, and
all
The
ground.
of
pattern
Persian and that kind of
this
flat
fabric
is
in
ornament which
background of pre-Raphaclite
pictures.
on a green
fall
between
character is
general as the
There are some grand
pieces of Indian embroidery, in which the simplicity and purity
of the ornament
is
delightful.
These certainly surpass
in
tender-
ness of line, precision of form, and just distribution of the parts,
have before seen of the kind
anything that
I
been
for
in
Japan
;
There are vases of various kinds, some Greek Arabian
in
and they have
twelve hundred years.
character,
in
form, others
some Chinese, and some Japanese.
One
with black ground and bands of incised red lines might be a
work of the best Athenian characters with which
its
age, were
surface
glass ewer with a well-formed
lip,
is
it
in
not for certain nondescript part, covered.
There
of very pale blue-green colour, and rather rough texture (like of our pickle bottles), but the Japanese
came
;
they only
emperors obviously closely
know
that
it
a
has been
some
do not know whence in
it
possession of their
for
one thousand two hundred years.
an
Arabian
work,
is
and somewhat elaborate handle
To me
it
is
and the appearance of the glass
resembles that of the pendent enamelled lamps which
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE, have during the
few years been brought from Egypt and
last
purchased for the various European museums (Fig. 29).
There
is
a metal jug of
having around
its
proportions and Persian shape,
tall
body a row of
gilt
animals with engraved
Japanese metal water-bottle with
outline, a
by a
low and curious spout covered
and
I
may
lid
;
here add that a spout rising to
the level of the orifice of a vessel seems to be a late invention in
not
observable,
so
far as
Japan I
;
for
see,
on
it
is
any
native vessel in this collection.
There
are
leather bags, such as were
around the wrists of archers to prevent
tied
the arrows cutting them, a double-headed trident used in ancient times for the catch-
Rough Sketch of a
FiG. 29.
Glass Ewer, preserved
ing of
in the
Mikado's treasury at Nara. It undoubtedly an early Arab-
madmen,
a
box covcrcd
witli
baskct-
.
work aud
is
part lacqucrcd, a
itt
;y/(??/j"j/
brass
tray of sixteen inches in diameter, with a
stag in high relief in
centre,
its
two very wonderful basso-relievo
carvings in white marble, and as perfect and sharp as the day they
were
cut.
The
subject of these
and conventional clouds.
and of great excellence. in
There are two plates (each
in
yellow,
and an earthen bowl, the top of which
green and the sides striated, the stripes being due to the run-
ning
down
of the marginal green glaze over the white ware of
which the bowl
is
There
formed.
brown pattern printed upon in
fifteen inches
diameter) of white biscuit- ware, with pattern consisting of goose
and flowers is
a snake, mythological animals,
is
These are undoubtedly Indian works,
a
number of
it
is
but
;
a coarse white fabric with I
was specially interested
pieces of thick felt each four to five feet square,
which are well made and have most charming and simple patterns of true Indian character
wrought upon them by the entangling
of woollen yarns with the hairy surface of the fabric. fabrics
arc
now made
in
Persia
;
Similar
but the patterns of these old
works are simple and pure, while those now manufactured are figured with ornaments indistinct
and of complex character.
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
As
the process by which these
been practised, so it
as
we here
find
a floor
may
briefly describe
Japan,
kind that
I
I
have ever
made
felted, or
is
seen.
unwoven
into an
being sprinkled with water to which a
and then
made has never
spread a quantity of short hair, generally that of
is
camel, which
the
in
cloths are
specimens which, although twelve hundred years,
old, are the best of the
On
know,
far as I
felt
toi
cloth,
by
acid has been added,
little
rolled with a stone roller or beaten with stones or clubs.
This beating or
rolling,
when continued
for a sufficient time, achieves
the close intermingling of the hairs, or the felting of the fabric.
But before the
felting
is
quite complete, coloured woollen yarns
but imperfectly spun are arranged loosely upon the surface of the
now
nearly formed fabric, and by manipulation of the
finger (which
is
in
protruding hairs of the process, a
by the completion of the
felt that,
homogeneous
fabric
formed with figured
is
Leaving the large room, we now go exhibition
of old quite
European and Persian
be from
to
five
to
There are here also many cloths types, but
examined the
as
collections
where they came from
carefully
the circumstances, for Mr. Machida,
dared not leave
us,
and
was
I
no museum of antiquities
half so instructive to the
Where
else could
and, although as
where the
is
unknown.
I
is
felting
surface.
to the hall,
consists wholly of fabrics, believed
hundred years of age.
eight
thumb and
part a twisting process) are so united with the
we
who
is
in
him
as
more than a thousand years
Persia, Central Asia, China,
first
left
old,
their makers'
and Japan
know,
I
this rare collection at
see fabrics printed, embroidered,
on the day when they
There
out.
world, so far
the
European as
charge of them,
in
afraid of tiring
under
possible
as
?
Where
and
Nara. felted,
almost as fresh
hands
in India,
else could
we
see
these strange connecting links between the arts of Egypt, India,
China, and Japan, that
we
find here
?
We
now taken
are
massive structure which has sheltered and preserved this of wealth for over a thousand years, and, strange to say,
to see the little
it is
world
a mere
large oblong building formed of triangular logs of ivood (Fig. 30).
These logs are arranged
like those of a
Russian timber house,
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
I02
and ends
after crossing at the. corners protrude like the sides
and
"
of an
on a
The
Oxford picture-frame."
series of circular
Fig. 30.
—The
old
Wooden
Building in
preserved for twelve hundred
years_.
and two
feet
upon a stone building
in ;
diameter, and
the roof
upon the building when second, and
this, in
its
hundred years back, and one hundred and a portion of a
height
first
erected.
This
is,
probably, the oldest
in the world.
of
is
each one of these rests loosely
tiles,
but that which
The
comparatively modern.
is
five feet in
Nara in which the Mikado's treasures have been The roof has been renewed from time to time, but
the other parts of the building remain as
wooden building
building thus formed stands
wooden columns of about
tile
fifty
it
was
turn, this
first
now
covers the
roof which was placed
erected was replaced by a
gave place to a third about
five
was replaced by the present about
years since.
Mr. Machida kindly gives
from each of the two
me
latter roofs.
In looking at this ancient building one
is
perhaps most struck
with the fact that wood which has existed for a thousand or more years,
and has been exposed to an atmosphere
as trying
at least
as that of Great Britain, should have endured to the present time
more surprising still, the wood is was when it was first placed here.
and, it
at this
In
worn by the action of the weather, indeed, a log
was exposed
it
moment
some I
as
cases
was three or four inches
less
Japanese seem to have an almost imperishable wood. ;
but what
is
it is
much
observed that where in
than where hidden, yet the wood was not decayed
of our oak
sound as
;
diameter but the
We
boast
oak when compared with wood that has
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
103
actually resisted the storm and the blast for over twelve centuries,
and
as sound as
is still
ever was.
it
Mr. Machida now orders the large and curious padlocks to be
Upon
taken from the doors of the storehouse.
we
find
divided into three compartments,
it
with large wooden
chests
and
;
is
it
To my astonishment
find
I
of which are
all
for so
many
only
one -third
that
centuries.
Mikado's rare treasures at Nara have been unpacked. vast
number
many
may
of great trunks
in all probability there are
now
subjects
contain
filled
these chests that the
in
Mikado's antiquities have been preserved
passing the entrance
of
the
What
this
cannot possibly say, but
I
here objects which would throw light on
imperfectly understood, and would do
much
towards perfecting a history now unknown to the world.
We
were about to bid our host adieu, when he begged us to
we saw
return to the building where
This he terms a pagoda, but
wood, some six inches
in
in height,
reality
to
little
object
lies
in
its
accept.
a turned piece of
is
it
me
It
is
hollow, and the orifice
by a pear-shaped wooden stopper, but the great
closed
of this
desires
with a base and discs protruding
horizontally one above the other. is
the oldest of the treasures,
was a small object which he
as here there
interest
containing a specimen of the
first
printing ever effected in Japan.
When first
the art of printing was introduced to the country the
work performed was the reproducing of one passage of the
The
Buddhist scriptures. these
million of
copies of this passage were incased in
pagodas and deposited
little
them were placed
I
in the
when
I
number of these
temple at Nara, and
and
this
letters
toil,
little I
it
I
However,
pagodas did
at
that a
difficulty with difficulties
said to be the
found that it
is
it
of
god had
certain that a
one time exist
in
the
could believe anything respecting Japanese
but unfortunately they have nearlyall disappeared;
most interesting
on the
much
is
language and
inspected
only sixteen of these appendages.
patience and
It is said
was once shown a god which was
of a thousand arms, but
vast
a temple.
here, but there
numbers, owing to peculiarities translation.
in
little
gift is
enclosed
roll
worm-eaten and decayed.
Yet the
of paper are readable to this day.
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
I04
CHAPTER The
sacred dance
Having
visited
hotel and to
—A
feast night
one or
IV.
— Kioto— The royal
two
collections
we
other temples,
— Osaka.
return to our
we go by
a native dinner, after which
invitation
of Mr. Machida to see a religious ceremony consisting of music
and dancing
—
a ceremony the performance of which
—but our
at considerable
expense
prepared for
and has sent some Government
pany us
purchased
officials to
accom-
to the temple.
It is
streets
us,
is
good host has had everything
the night of a sacred festival, and
are also decorated, as the
town within the next day or two.
Nara
all
The
is astir.
Mikado is expected to visit the Bamboos stand at either side
of the streets at distances of about twelve feet apart, and these are connected
by festooned straw bands which hang
of six feet from the ground.
From
We
cut papers symbolising the Shinto religion.
an avenue of gigantic cryptomeria
have ever seen which are sold
—where
by an avenue turning on the never forget. colossal
Here
coniferous
is
feet,
turn into
— the grandest avenue
and other
right,
now
hang the
gay with trifles.
we behold
lanterns,
Leaving
a sight which
I
I
on
this shall
one of the most lovely of groves, formed of
trees,
lanterns at either side. to ten
trees,
are stalls rendered
toys, sweet stuffs,
at a height
these straw bands
with
innumerable
These lanterns vary
and nearly every one
two thousand
is
lit
(I
stone in
monumental
height from four
afterwards learnt that
two hundred lanterns in this grove.) Every now and again we come to little flights of rude steps, for the avenue ascends the slope of a rounded hill. This rising there
are
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART, ground, the flocks
gaily dressed
of
who
people
105
going
are
to
the temple to pray, and the strange aspect of this vast forest of
stone lanterns, produce a scene in the highest degree surprising.
At
the top of this beautiful grove, amidst a vast crowd of
lanterns, rises the its
temple called Wakamiya.
It
celebrated for
is
thatched roof, the thatch being very thick and regular, and con-
sisting of layers of the inner
most perfect of
kind
its
containing a god, which enter
service
is
is
Facing
abode.
its
the road,
what
bark of a
Japan
in
;
so sacred that even
this shrine,
which we have come to see
This house
The room
that
we
is
enter
is
may
a priest
its
a parallelogram.
side Its
with coarse lattice-work, over which no paper frames, hinged at the top, open inwards, and
to
the
road.
windows, which
is
filled
These
strained.
when open
are sup-
a horizontal position by hooks from the ceiling.
in
On
not
In this the religious
form the entire road-side of the room, are heavy frames
ported
the
to be performed.
long building with
a
is
is
a shrine
is
but at the opposite side of
called a " priest's house."
is
This roof
fir-tree.
and near the temple
this
the
evening of our
visit
the whole
of these
side
windows are open, hence whatever takes place within the room is
visible
to
those
the performance
and thousands congregate to
outside,
of a
service
in
which they evidently
all
see
take
interest.
At
the distant end of the room, as
we
enter, four priests are
kneeling on the floor behind small deal tables or
altars,
and
front of a large folding-screen, on which deer are painted.
has a
flute,
in
One
another a small hourglass-shaped drum, another small
cymbals, and the fourth curiously shaped pieces of wood, which are
knocked together Facing the
priestesses
and
in the
street, five
and
manner of our at the side
"
bones."
of the room, are three
female children, while along the open
side,
or facing the priestesses, are five small tables, like those in front
of the priests
;
these tables bear the rattles, or sistrums, from the
handles of which streaming ribbons are pendent.
The
priestesses
beauty, which
is
wear red under
chiefly white
;
dresses,
and a robe of great
but here and there
is
dispersed
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
io6
over
surface
its
a
spray of the westeria creeper
little
with a touch of colour,
—
with the red of the under of about
in
green
the green contrasting most pleasantly
Each spray occupies a space
skirt.
four inches square, while six or eight inches of space
Fig. 31.— Back view of dress of priestess of
Fig. 32.
— Front view of
Fig. 33.
— Hair of priestess of Nara.
dress of priestess of
Nara.
Nara.
intervene between the groups.
When
seen from the back, and
when the arms are held at right angles has much the form of the letter T (Fig.
to the body, the dress
31); but what
we may
term the shank part does not surround the body, but merely falls
as a broad sort of streamer, which, were
it
sufficiently long
to rest on the ground,
In front,
would form a train. the shank portion of the T is
as a sort fabrics
;
the centre,
while, arranged
of habit-shirt, there are folds of red, white, and
(Fig. 32).
colours
down
split
and the two parts are crossed over the chest
employed
The whole in
it
dress
is
most charming, and the
are the Court colours
are priestesses of a Shinto temple,
lilac
;
for the wearers
and the Mikado
is
the head
all
Japanese,
of the Shinto Church,
The
hair of the priestesses
intensely black.
It
is
is
long and, like that of
not plaited or braided in any way, but
flows loosely
down
the back; only being
by a curious
flat
gold band (Fig. 33).
tufts of red
and white flowers which
pins take the position of horns.
bound together
at the top
In the front two
stick out at the
little
ends of long
Close to the priestesses, as they
ART,
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
107
kneel against the side wall of the room, stand two hexagonal
boxes of about eighteen inches
in
height and eleven inches in
diameter, which appear to contain fans.
The boxes
with leather-paper of golden hue, and the room
supported on oil
We
by candles
is lit
candlesticks standing on the ground, and b)'
tall iron
lamps which
are covered
on small brackets projecting from the
rest
who have been
enter the building together with others
rows across the end
invited to the service,
and range ourselves
most distant from the
priests, leaving a large clear
in
walls.
space between
them and ourselves. Now all prostrate themselves, for it is supposed that the god is leaving the shrine opposite and coming into our midst. esses
The
up
priests strike
and two children
their music,
when
very slow and solemn, and the priestesses,
room with slow and
the three priest-
The music
and begin the dance.
rise
who walk
rise, lifting
grace and dignity,
across the
stately step, yet with a slight dancing gesture,
prostrate themselves to the very floor in front of the
They now
is
little
tables,
much
the sistrums from the table, and, with
move
in
a rhythmical, yet most solemn and
impressive, manner.
For about ten minutes these beautiful motions are alternated with prostration before the
little
tables on which the rattles arc,
while at other times the rattles are employed in the dance.
After
prostrating themselves with, the deepest humility before these tables or altars,
where they remain
still
little
as death for a few minutes,
with the rattles in their hands, they return the rattles to their places on the tables, rise
and again kneel
they originally occupied by
The next dance in
is
entirely
dances, for there are five in
of the
The dances not to
rise
from
the positions which
all,
five
children
just described,
;
but
it
differs
and the following
are merely slightly varied repeti-
All are equally solemn, equally impressive,
first.
and alike beautiful
in
by the
no important respect from that
tions
in
the wall.
in
the highest and purest sense of the word.
over, all
prostrate themselves
our places.
A
priest
;
now comes
but
we
are told
forward, bearing
one hand a small tray of clean unpolished and undecorated
pine-wood on which are a
few rough, unglazed, small earthen
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
io8
and
saucers,
other
the
in
and of the
(Japanese wine),
brazen
a
size of a
vessel
containing
two semicircular spouts, and a long wooden handle small
of the sacred wine (about a
quantity
poured into a saucer by the
whom
of those for
priest, is
Fig. 34.
Used
taken from the tray by one
The
drinks.
recipient
Brazen Vessel with Wooden Handle. we use the flagon at our Holy Communion.
bows and
second portion, in his turn,
we have
The
priest then passes to
at the Shinto Sacrament as
the next, pours wine into another saucer, this
A
(Fig. 34).
dessert-spoonful),
the dance has been performed.
now bows and
of this wine
sachi
small saucepan, but having
when the drinks,
partaken of this Shinto sacrament.
all
that the dance
is
supposed to have
was
I
spiritual efficacy,
of
recipient
and so on,
till
aware
and that the
wealthy have such dances performed as a means of grace, but
was not aware that Shinto had
We been so
we
its
I
sacrament.
now return home from the sacred house in which we have much interested, by the lantern-lit grove, but on our way
diverge a
little
from our path to see the chief Shinto temple
of Nara, that at the top of the grove being only the second in
importance
in this
Here we
town.
find eight
eaves of the roof, and is
hundred metal lanterns pendent from the
all
ablaze with light.
a large raised wooden platform which
this
is
And by
there, opposite,
scores of lanterns
the playground for the children, and from
sound of the tramping of voices.
is lit
many
feet
All seems brightness and joy and mirth. I
unkind look,
are thoroughly happy.
all
comes the
Amidst the
do not hear one cry of sorrow, nor see one
crowd of children
—
it
and the ringing of cheerful
AR T, AND AR T MA NUFA CTURES. Much
we have seen to-day has been
that
and never within
possible interest,
my
09
the greatest
of
much
experience has so
been crowded into a few brief hours as on this visit to
1
day of our
first
Nara.
have learnt that more than a thousand years since fabrics
I
were made which so closely resemble the during the
last
two or three
be told from the other
:
finest
—That from some
works of Arabia one can scarcely
centuries, that the
part of Asia cloths were
derived, so similar to those of Italy immediately preceding the
time of Raphael, that the one would pass for the other.
found that Chinese embroidery was as perfect years since as
it is
were
in style
the
only
fifty
more
pattern
now, and that the patterns on Indian fabrics
same
as those produced in the
purer
years since, but
beautiful to
colour;
in
in
that the
Saracens were conquering Spain than
Thus we have the strange centuries
fact
of
art
at
it is
greatest purity of design,
and giving
felting
the
time when the
moment.
at the present
brought before us that twelve
produced fabrics bearing
ago India
same country
form, better in design and
was better understood
felt
have
I
twelve hundred
and without any
patterns
of the
Hindoo orna-
taint of
ment, and that the art of India was at that period better than is
We
now.
know
it
though a
had
I
highest
what time Indian ornament development
?
it is
it
at this
would seem as
art of
day
;
in
manufacturing metals was as
both China
far
advanced
that the art of forming cloisonne enamels
back as
it
is
was then formed into ewers by some Asiatic people
could be
it
we now
this.
as perfectly understood twelve centuries glass
for
as
however gradual, has been taking place from
have also learnt that a thousand years ago,
and Japan, the as
its
decline,
day to
that
ask, then, at
now ;
;
was that
that iron
hammered into the most beautiful and thinnest of bowls made metal peacocks with spreading tails that
that the Persians
;
wood-carving was as well understood
in
years since as at almost any later period
;
Japan twelve hundred that sculptures in marble
were as perfect then as now; and that the manufacture of porcelain in China was as thoroughly understood and as successfully practised
no
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE. Thus we
then as recently.
find
from the collection here at Nara
that twelve hundred years have passed over the Eastern world
without bringing about any great improvement
most of the
in
manufactures, while in some retrogression, rather than advancement, is
painfully apparent.
The
fact
also
is
brought before us that but few new manu-
factures have been invented during the time that these things have
been hidden
we
the Mikado's treasury, for
in
here find illustra-
tions of weaving, felting, embroidery, porcelain, glass, metal- work,
hammering,
chasing,
casting,
and
damascening,
engraving,
of
lacquer-work, wood-carving, inlaying, stone-cutting, block-printing,
of leather- making and leather- stamping, and of
my
which time does not permit of
recording
;
many
other arts
and beyond these
but few manufactures have been invented even to this day.
There which
up
is
one specimen
me much,
interests
in the collection
although
of antiquities at Nara
have not even mentioned
I
We
are
which are
Bombay sandalwood boxes
those
familiar with
all
inlaid with tesserae of white metal, ivory, either white or
These boxes.
stained green, and sometimes with deep red wood. Sir
it
to this time.
George Birdwood
tells us,
are but copies of works produced in
Yet the Persian work
Persia.
from that of
Bombay
differs, in
one essential particular,
for while in the latter the
;
inlaid
tesserae
are brought close together, they are invariably separated in Persian
work by a surface.
fine
brass ribbon, the edge of which appears on the
am
not aware of ever having seen a specimen of this
I
Bombay work which modern happen
;
could be regarded as anything more than
but of the Persian work
I
have not only seen, but
hundred years
;
aware that we can trace the history of however,
I
find in
Nara
hundred years of age knows.
I
example which may date back some two and beyond some such date as this I am not
to possess, an
In
this
;
this
a coarse specimen
manufacture. of this
Here,
work twelve
but where the specimen came from no one
example the
tesserae
are
in
form elongated
hexagons of about one and a half inches from point
to
point in
the longest direction, and seven-eighths of an inch in width, and a
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
metal line separates the hexagons.
iii
we have evidence
Here, then,
of the existence of a manufacture, though, in this case, in a crude state,
which, so far as
I
know, we have only been able to trace back
two or three centuries
for
art,
so
it is
collection
most and just as this specimen what we have regarded as a modern
at the
reveals the ancient origin of
;
possible that were the other two-thirds of the Mikado's
open to our inspection, they would exhibit to us
more advanced stages of its development. While speaking of Indian manufactures, I may make a box in the collections at Nara, as it was formed of
this art
in the
to
bamboo arranged
the
on boxes
common
bamboo used
in
in the
The narrow strips and the manner
India to this day.
manufacture of
this object,
formed the original of the porcupine
the
find in the
more probable,
of
in
boxes of India, or that
quill
The
Mikado's collection.
for while
of
probable that either this
it
these Indian boxes suggested to the Japanese the
we now
strips
precisely as porcupines' quills are disposed
which they are placed together, render
as
reference
most of the
arts
making of such is by far
latter
which have been
practised in Japan are traceable to the Asiatic Continent,
I
have
not yet succeeded in tracing any Japanese influence on the arts of China,
India,
Persia,
Asiatic
Turkey, or any other Eastern
country.
Inspection of the Nara collections also reveals this fact
—
brought prominently into notice during a long journey
fact
Japan —
in
that while the Japanese are the most subtle and delicate
of workmen, the most accomplished of handicraftsmen, the most conscientious of race.
There
is
a
artists,
they are yet by no means inventive as a
good deal of truth
in
the statement
that the
Japanese have originated nothing, but have improved upon
ever}--
thing which they have seen.
Throughout Japan
traces of Indian
while Chinese objects of better class
most of the nobles
in
the land
;
art are constantly found,
may
and
I
be seen
in
the houses of
have also found patterns
of Persian, Egyptian, and even Celtic character on native work
but of these things
We
I will
;
speak hereafter.
must always remember that
at
an early period of
its
112
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
history Japan
was successful
in
invasion and
the
conquest of
and this is certain, that many of the arts of Japan, as some of its best architectural features, were derived from Corea. Through this peninsula many objects of Chinese manuCorea
;
well as
some from the more
facture, as well as
hands of the Japanese.
into the
that at Nara,
collection which, like
central parts of Asia,
Indeed, there is
is
came
Kioto a
in
the property of the
also
Mikado, consisting largely of things brought to Japan from Corea
by the conquerors of the country. the
relations
Nara
of this
mention
I
collection
now only
this
that
manufactures of
the
to
may
Japan, as well as to the industries of the world,
be better
understood.
To-day has
mony
also brought us face to face with a religious cere-
of special interest, and a
We have here, in
Japan.
a sacrament which
is
ceremony peculiar
in itself a fact of
no
little
most striking circumstance connected with the to-night
is
to in
interest
which reference
dance of
religious
by the
As, however, this matter
an old number of the Japan Weekly Mail
from that excellent journal a portion of an
extract
is
made
in
but the
;
likeness to the rites formerly performed
its
priestesses of Isis in ancient Egypt.
referred
Nara
to
connection with an early form of religion,
is
I will
article
in
to this ceremony.
Speaking of Nara, the writer says said to be second in antiquity
:
—
"
Here
is
a Shinto shrine,
and importance only to that of
Ise.
In a building not far from this shrine, and probably connected
with
it,
we witnessed
religious
handsomely and
three
young
girls).
girls,
Their movements were of a very solemn
their use of the sistrum or rattle recalled the
priestesses of Isis, of
unfailing
The performers were
dressed, but perhaps less showily than the ordinary
Geyslia (dancing kind,
a posture-dance performed as a species of
ceremony.
whose performances
accompaniment.
another a drum, and the
Three third
priests
this
Egyptian
instrument was the
—one
playing
occasionally beating time on the two simple pieces of
accompanied the dancers. of this kind were paid for
We
a
flute,
chanting with his voice, and
wood-
were informed that performances
by devout persons much
as masses are
ART,
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
"3
paid for by Catholics.
There are eight dancers or priestesses
attached to the temple.
They are the daughters of priests or of we presume, the office is considered
respectable inhabitants, and,
a highly honourable one."
We
The next morning we rose had not got far when our
early
and
strolled
through the town.
attention was attracted
by a
care-
roofed wall, the lower portion
fully
of which was built of a black rag-
and the upper and major part
stone,
of plaster tinted to a pleasant yellow-
ochre colour, along which were drawn
On
white
parallel
five
any
rounded
(Fig.
35).
lines
we were with
told
that
the
yellow wall
white lines running through-
five
length denotes that the build-
its
ing
or
and ruling white
it
mere caprice of the owner,
a
is
building,
special
whether tinting
out
lines
our asking whether this wall sur-
belongs
nected
to,
with, the
or
is
directly
con-
Mikado, and that
none but those of royal blood can have
a yellow wall
upon
it,
while the
with any lines
number of
Fig.-
3^.— End of Wall. The Wall is of This colour, and the lines, indicate that a
yellow-ochre colour. five parallel white
lines
employed indicates the relationship
person of royal blood owns or administers this property.
Emperor.
to the
Some
few years back, when about to send an assistant to
Spain and Morocco to make sketches of
my
good
Spain
is
friend
Mr. George
the land of nails."
kinds of art objects,
all
Augustus Sala
My
said,
"
Remember
assistant sent me,, from
country, sketches of the grandest nails that
I
had ever
this
seen,
and
even some of the nails themselves which he had managed to pick up at curiosity shops. But Mr. Sala was but imperfectly informed on this matter, for Japan
Spain
:
and
walked with
this
is
the land of nails and not
he would have been the
me around
first
to
admit had he
the old city of Nara this morning. I
Here
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
114
the temple doors are positively bestudded with such nails as are in
the truest sense ornaments,
A
huge hinge
is
'^6.
Fig-.
here sometimes attached to a temple door
with nails havingf heads from half an inch to an inch and a half
Old Nails from Temple-doors
Fig. 36.
in diameter,
Naka.
while every available part of the door
cases occupied
With
in
by
strained to stay
I
am
and note
while thus engaged
I
know
some
heads three and a half inches across.
nails with
these nails
itself is in
positively delighted,
forms
their
that
But here we have not only
am
I
nails
hinges two to three feet in length.
in
my
And
metal plates and bindings on the doors.
my
con-
feel
I
sketch-book
a drag on
but hinges
and
;
yet
companions.
— grand
hinges
besides hinges
we have
In Nara the old metal-
work would supply the art student with material for study, and examples to copy, for weeks and in no town in the world that ;
I
know
much that is interesting in this way be found. are many bell-pulls, knockers, and door-handles,
of can so
In Troyes there
which are place,
is
rich
in art
glorious specimens
metal-work of
;
and
hammered -iron
in
St.
Gothard, for a small
Frankfort on the Main,
still
remain to us
from
Nara you are everywhere impressed with possessed by the town in its metal-work.
medijeval times the riches
Andermatt on the
interesting.
;
but
in
ART,
We with
now have another
115
look at the great temple of Dai-butz,
and the more we look at it the more we are The columns of the gates, as we noticed yester-
vast gates,
its
lost in
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
wonder.
day, are one hundred feet in height
by twelve
feet in circumference,
while each consists of but one piece of wood, and the building
was erected eleven hundred and thirty-one years
since, or in the
year 750 A.D. It
difficult
is
hundred years of wood, and
to conceive of
any building existing
in a perfect state, especially
is
exposed to the atmosphere
here before me, although
it,
when ;
it is
for eleven
formed only
yet such a building
is
unlike the old treasury, has doubtless
been at times restored.
When
such facts as these are considered
understand
why we
should
seems
it
now be persuading
difficult to
the Japanese to
and not of wood, especially when
erect buildings of stone
it
is
remembered that Japan is a land of earthquakes. What buildings can we show in England which have existed since the eighth century and are yet almost as perfect as
when
and yet our buildings
and not on earth
which
is
rest
on a
solid foundation,
first
built
?
constantly rocked by natural convulsions.
Besides this
Japanese have, by the medium of wood,
the
produced a characteristic and beautiful architecture.
In the great
temple of Shiba we have a development of architecture perhaps equal to anything that has been produced by any people in any
Why
age.
then should
we
lead a nation, which
adopt new methods by which
it
can only be
made
Moreover, when a nation that has erected
traditions of the past.
in itself great, to
to appear small
its
?
habitations in
more solid material, it retain in the new method of building the Thus the Egyptians formed the columns
any simple manner, has begun invariably appears to
is
to build in
of their stone -built temples in the form of bundles of Papyrus
reeds
;
centre,
the roofs of
many Chinese
and thus perpetuate
in
buildings
sway down
in
the
form the bent pole which formed
the ridge of the original tent -dwelling, while the walls of the
Alhambra
at
complete,
for,
Granada
are
mere Arab shawl patterns with borders
while yet nomads, the Arabs formed their primitive
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
ii6
dwellings of the rich tissues which they wove.
we
find the
more
solid building
In
all cases,
embodying the thought
then,
or idea of
the original abode of the people.
But history supplies us with a
more rem.arkable instance
still
of the perpetuation in stone of an earlier method of construction, for
many
of the rock-cut temples of India are simply copies of
works or of a
While
style of
mere copy,
work which had pre-existed
wood.
in
not desirable that any stone building should be a
it is
either actually or in
wooden
of a
spirit,
structure, a
nation which would produce a noble architecture must erect such buildings as express the sentiments, faith, and wants of
and the buildings erected must be adapted conditions of climate, and
result
"
We, however, have
wrongly and
foolishly.
we have
fifty feet ?
gateways and huge temples
Hence
I
Can we teach them how in
to
stone so that at the end
cannot help thinking
it
standing?
I
only right that
we
still
from obtruding our advice upon a people who know their
own wants better than we We now walked to the gaiety and
life
;
do.
avenue, which
Here we
of food, such as the deer the deer
like,
come and
so
night
last
is
it
see deer running about,
Poor
as dogs are with us.
call,
we saw
the noble cryptomerias of which
gigantic indeed.
our
to erect
high, on small bases, so that
of eleven hundred years they will find them fear not.
acted both
Can we show the Japanese how
they will withstand the earthquake
tame
pro-
and these the natives
;
In this matter
imitate.
buildings one hundred and
raise vast
"
work-house architecture
expected to
refrain
particular
Tokio, the capital of Japan, one or two of the worst
in
specimens of are
people,
from a legitimate use of the
material most suited to their erection.
duced
the
to
its
in
such
formed are
and almost as
women offer to sell us little balls we make a purchase and then, at
eat out of our hands.
The deer have
the free run of the town, and wander wherever they
like.
Little
images of these deer are the popular toy of the place, just as the bear
is
dominant
We now little
visit
in
Berne.
a temple for the purpose of purchasing certain
netsukies which are peculiar to the town.
Many
of these
J
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART, are
form of the deer
the
in
grotesques, while
pecuHarity consists
their "
others
" cuts,
clean
the
their being
are
but
;
formed by a number of
surfaces.
man brought
After our return to the hotel, a
An
which we eagerly bought.
fans,
or
lobster
the Httle carving consisting thus of a series of facets
and not of rounded
Nara
some
crawfish,
recumbent posture
in
represent in
117
us
old
some
priest
beautiful
from the
temple to which we yesterday gave a small subscription also
mark of
and, after greeting us with every
called,
respect and kindness,
begged our acceptance of some beautiful oranges arranged on a most charming tray.
The
cloth with which the oranges were
covered was a thing to be coveted.
must certainly be
oranges
the
common
basket.
It
is
Presented better
in
than
such a manner served
if
from a
interesting to notice the beautiful objects
which a Japanese, when he wishes to show either Ins own wealth, or respect to another, will bring from a house that appears to
contain nothing but a few domestic utensils.
now wished
Mr. Machida
us adieu and
and promised to get copies made nails,
which
had to-day seen
I
The Japanese
for
in the
love antiquities
me
of
a
pleasant journey,
some of the grand
old
temple doors. for
own sake and
their
for
the sake of the objects with which they have been associated, and there
much
is
in
the Shinto religion which
calculated to stimu-
is
late this veneration.
My old
;
admiration of the art was mistaken for veneration of the
hence Mr.
by getting
nails
Machida, instead of
made
expense and trouble,
in imitation in
fulfilling
his
engagement,
of those at Nara, went to great
order to procure genuine pieces of old
metal-work from some ancient building of especial interest after letter
my
return to England,
from
of language,
my "
heads, used in irons
to you."
old
and
I
friend,
I
in
received a
;
box with a charming
which he says
in
the quaintest
present two ornamental coverings of nail-
Rashomon and Congoshuin, and twenty-one
To
thus
our great amusement, the
"
irons " proved to be literally " old irons," so far as
with the exception of one or two only.
But
I
old
twenty-one old
we could
see,
value them for the
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
ii8
sake of the giver, and the day
knowledge present
am
I
As we
may
I
discover in
may yet come when, by increased them points of interest which at
unable to perceive.
Nara
left
for
The road
Kioto the sky became heavy.
was new, having been prepared
Mikado, who
for the
to visit
is
town in a few days. On our journey we stopped for refreshment at a little wayside inn, where the inevitable eggs and rice
this
appeared
;
now welcome,
but they were
and half melted snow had been
At
this
for
was
it
some time
Mikado
hotel the
little
for
falling.
on
to stop
is
bitterly cold,
way from
his
Kioto to Nara, and for his reception a new room has been preThis room
pared at the back of the house.
nished pine-wood with the usual paper
consists
of mattress -like pads, also
openwork
simple
the paper slides, for in circulation
is
stocked with
There
is
fish,
is
feet
in
any of which you may
made
for
A
tops of
provision for the
In this case the
In the garden
diameter, which select for
a charming simplicity about
preparations have been
this
peculiarly simple. four
is
top of the room as a
the ceiling and the
the slides be closed.
small fish-pond of about
floor
a raised dais, which
covered with matting.
rooms there
all
of air should
pattern of the lattice
is
runs along the
lattice
of frieze, intervening between
sort
and the
slides,
Near one end
covered with matting.
of clean, unvar-
is
all
is
a
well
is
your dinner.
No
this.
costly
the visit of the emperor, no
elaborately fitted rooms have been prepared, no expensive furniture
purchased. at
a
little
The Mikado comes wayside
But that room
is
formed are of the there
is
inn,
its
way
:
the materials of which
and the workmanship
a look of cleanliness about
it
which
any country, and impossible Looking at this room and admiring
to equal in
it
is
faultless,
would be
it is
while
difficult
to surpass. its
beauty,
our surprise at the simple taste of the Mikado. that the food which he will partake of
is
that prepared for the guests at the hotel.
To
that a
and stays
with only one small room as his abode.
perfect in best,
as one of the people,
we expressed
We
were told
exactly the same as us
it
seemed strange
monarch should content himself with such simple surround-
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
and such common
ings,
fare
must have a marked
this
yards
find
which has been
in length,
Mikado
to be ready for the
At
but on a people like the Japanese
effect.
we
Farther on the road
;
a bridge two hundred and built in twenty-seven
days, so as
we reach Kioto, cold and which we have been obliged
the end of a seven hours' journey
as
sit,
foreigners
in
the hoods of the jinrikishas
up our abode
Mariyama Hotel
at the
make
their
European Hotel, yet it
fifty-
to pass over.
wearied with the cramped position to
119
home it is
We
were spread.
—
take
the house at which most
while in Kioto.
It is often called the
a thoroughly Japanese building, although
possesses tables and chairs, bedsteads and washstands.
After a
semi -English dinner, Mr. Saumarez leaves us to join Sir Harry Parkes and the other foreign ministers palace, in
morrow
in state at
the reader
months
make
order to
a Yashiki, or Daimio
in
preparations for their appearance
may have
gathered, trains have been running for
some
past.
While
this
hotel
by no means
is
small,
it
uncomfortabl)'
is
of visitors, owing to the influx of people desiring to see the
full
ceremony. justified in
I
have a bed, however, but
saying that
I
have a bedroom,
I
should
for ray
we
six-fold draught-screens, such as
scarcely be
bed
of a room, divided off from another portion which
by
to-
the official opening of the railway, on which, as
is
use in our
is
in
a strip
also occupied
own rooms.
Early the next morning, on pushing aside the window-slides,
was more than surprised
The
spread before me.
wooded
hill,
From
base.
and
at the magnificence of the
hotel stands high on the side of a richly-
my room
faced the plain which extends at
the balcony surrounding the building
on a grand old spreading
wooded
slope, while
I
view which lay
fir-tree,
I
looked
its
down
a lovely garden, and a richly-
yonder lay stretched
far
over the plain a vast
Here and there rose pagodas of beautiful proportion and elegant shape, while beyond the plain were snow-clad mountains, city.
mingled with cloud and
As there
is
I
looked from
mist.
my
balcony,
I
could not help feeling that
a likeness between the lovely view before
me and
that
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
I20
may be
which
obtained behind the Salt Lake City in America.
But while the town case,
presents but
itself
of the highest interest
is
it
interest in the
little
The
the other.
in
one
Lake
Salt
City has a half finished appearance, and consists largely of insig-
wooden
nificant
greater
vastly
houses, while Kioto
Both
size.
rounded by mountains
much
same
of the
;
most picturesque and of
is
however, stand on plains sur-
cities,
both cases the mountains seem to be
in
and
height,
in
both cases the city
much
is
nearer the one side of the plain than the other.
This
a gala day here
is
the shops are closed, business
:
is
suspended, and the streets are decorated, while people in holiday
So dense
crowd the chief thoroughfares.
attire
the railway station, that
am
I
is
the throng near
compelled to give up the notion of
getting within view of the pageant, and to content myself with
being a general sight-seer. In her Voyage in the Siinbeani,
opening of
this railway.
Lady Brassey speaks
curious that
It is
we were both almost
that, while
little
beyond the
spare time,
day to Osaka, which two
was
The
hours.
I
to be
of the railway,
treading in each other's foot-
we should never have met during our
Finding that
Thomas and Lady
Kobe end
Brassey) were observing those at the
steps,
should see the Kioto
while Mr. and Mrs. Brassey (now Sir
festivities,
and
I
done
sight-seeing,
I
sojourn in Japan.
Kioto
in
which
for
moved on
could
I
the following
reached after a railway journey of
distance
of the
less
than
Japan
forty miles, but the trains in
is
run slowly.
Osaka towns
and
in
is
probably the most important of the manufacturing
the country.
has, for this
there
is
very
rather regard
Here
I
reason, been
little it
take up
It is intersected in all directions
called
my
Amsterdam than
abode
canals,
Yet
the Venice of Japan.
likeness between the
as the
by
two
places,
and
I
should
the Venice of the country.
at the Jiyutei Hotel, in
the quarter of
the town called Kawakuchi, a building two stories in height, and called
the
European house
are furnished floor is
much
like the
;
but although the rooms upstairs
Mariyama Hotel
without furniture, as
is
customary
in
at Kioto, the
ground-
Japanese houses.
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
The manufactures bamboo-work is made and
wood-work
lattice
of Osaka here,
like
those
also toys
and cabinets
Much pierced in
hard
37.— Part of a Window.
and white
of China, tea-trays, bronze
carved lac-work, and
kettles,
many kinds. of many sorts,
of
(Fig. 37), vase-stands
Fig.
wood,
and
are
121
many
metal
other things.
After studying the manufactures of Osaka for about ten days, I
left
it
by
jinrikisha
for
Wakayama,
the
chief
town
of the
We
province of Kishiu, distant about forty-two English miles. start
at
10
A.M.,
and
in
two hours (twelve miles) reach Sakai,
one of the two towns of Japan
we
visit
in
which carpets are made.^
a temple reached by a bridge, the road over which
convex that notches have to be cut without them
it
would be impossible
help of the handrail with which ^
Carpets were formerly
ceased at the time of with,
Here
tlie
made by
it
is
for the feet to
to cross
it,
rest in,
is
so
and
even with the
furnished.
the Prince of Hiezen, but this private manufacture
revolution in 1868, as the
Daimio system was then done awav
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE.
122
Soon
we approached
after leaving Sakai
a distance of four or five
miles, a
the sea, and saw, at
range of mountains,
glorious
On
which must either be an island or a promontory. about the same distance,
running towards the end of the
go through a
left,
is
its
background
truly wonderful
turn to
when
source, cross the ridge,
its
and lakes
it
Here a
upon the view.
bursts
mirrors
like silver
green surface, has a range of snow-clad mountains as ;
and yonder a
at
are
not unlike that of Linton in North
vast plain, having rivers traversing
breaking
left,
we
we
In thirty miles
this ridge.
defile,
Devon, and following a stream to a scene which
our
another mountain chain, and
is
little
village nestles
beneath
us.
its
We now
begin a rapid, zigzag descent by following a sort of Saint Gothard
The moon
road on a small scale, and reach the plain at twilight. is
new, but
clouds flecking
There
is
and the
it,
stars
come out with
Our road
for the
common.
next mile
lies
form mighty torrents.
become contracted the river-beds,
As
or, in
some
unmercifully jolted,
;
it
;
but
little
which flow
rain
rivers
gradually centres of
dry up.
In the middle
we have been most which we cross by means
to the river,
This carries us and our five jinrikisJias
indeed
I
In this valley the cold seems
never before
felt
cold at
seems almost to stop the action of the
preparation for a thoroughly cold drive,
I
to
any
in the
I
all
approachYet, in
heart.
had dressed myself
thick tweed suit, thick underclothing, a flannel over-shirt, a silk
at
over which
across the stream at the same time.
almost unbearable
is
in the late
and, collecting in the
rapidly-running
cases, entirely
we come
of a flat-bottomed boat.
fall,
there
to small streams,
of this strange, stony valley,
it
such valleys are
:
During the rainy season (which occurs
other time of the year these
ing
great brilliancy.
across a vast river-bed, con-
sand and innumerable boulders
spring time) vast quantities of water valleys,
fleecy
little
a fine "afterglow," but this beautiful light soon passes away.
sisting of a little
here
sky has a few
its entire circle is visible, the
dressing-gown, and a very stout topcoat, while over
had a large wadded possum skin
rug.
But with
in
a
wadded
my
all this
knees I
had
borrow from one of our coolies a blanket which he was not
using to wrap
my
head
in.
AR T, AND AR T MANUFA CTURES. At
a
little
we reach Wakayama.
eight
before
excellent Japanese hotel, where, after a
and
English,
in part I
I
write
difficulty of
keeping
most
warm
cases,
them, but
this failed to
vails in this part of
underclothing, wear
manage
to
to
keep out the
Japan
so
;
I
my wadded
myself round and round
keep out the
I
to take with
wadded dressing-gown and
But even
in part
in
an
Japanese
have now overcome the
me
wear
was obliged
my
good
friend
while travelling a
it
night-dress.
a
as
terrible cold
which now pre-
to retain
my
thick
dressing-gown, and
then wrap
By
I
the fur rug.
cold.
is
Japanese beds and of the
of the
in
good meal,
Here
23
diary and go to bed.
through a suggestion of
me
Saumarez, who advised thick
my
have already spoken
difficulty, in
1
these
means
just
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
124
CHAPTER The Japanese Calendar zan
— Splendour
Return
To-day
to
Osaka
V.
— Wakayama— Japanese cold and Japanese vegetation — Koya— Sakai — News of Satsuma
of shrines and of scenery
— Feast of
being the
revolt in
the god of riches.
February
15th of
Japan according to the old Calendar.
is
The
New
Year's
system of dates was only adopted a short time since
now keep both
Most of the shops
days.
in
is,
according
to
Japanese
beginning of their empire. been, as far as last year,
far this
for
is
It
is
known, anything
chronology,
when one was proclaimed by
Sabbath
the
This year,
in
has
Japan
Government
;
proclamation has affected only the Government
shops are open and business
is
have
2537, from
strange that there like a
in
hence some
;
Wakayama
been closed to-day, and general holiday has been kept. 1877,
Day
Julian year and our
transacted on
all
the
never until
but thus officials,
days of
the year, save on the great holidays and on the feast days of their favourite gods.
Under the old system of recording time many difficulties arose, for the same year was constantly recurring, and to specify any particular year reference had to be made to the reigning Mikado
as well as to the
name
of the year
;
and, curiously, the
hours of the day bore the same names as the years in a cycle.
The Japanese
day, however, from midnight to midnight, was only
divided into twelve hours, each as long as two of ours.
Their
clock also differed essentially from ours, time being here marked
by a small horizontal hand, which that of our thermometers.
slid
down
a scale, resembling
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART, The names to
which
125
of the years in a cycle and the hours in the day,
added the hours of our
latter are
t
me
Ne, mouse
indicated, are 12 at night.
Ushi, ox
2 A.M.
Tora, tiger
4 A.M.
Uw,
6 A.M.
hare,
Tatsu, dragon
8 A.M.
Mi, snake
Uma,
10 A.M.
horse
1
.
2
noon.
Hitsuzi, sheep
2 P.M.
monkey
4 P.M.
Saru,
Tori, cock Inu, le,
The year
6 P.M.
dog
8 P.M.
boar
A.D.
:
10 P.M.
1877
the year of the boar, the preceding
is
year
being that of the dog.
Wakayama but
is
it
is
a town of
medium
especially celebrated for
its
size with several
industries,
oranges, and here in the
garden of our hotel, bitterly cold though the weather trees laden with
golden
For the strange tropical plants, will
cold
I
grow
semi-tropical
that
in a
can account only
of
frost
the
little
are two
fruit.
fact
this
preceding
way
as, in
even
in
almost
all
:
and
night,
and almost
fruits,
country where there
in
winter the sun yields such heat the
is,
thus
is
such intense
the
depth of melt
cases, to
the
cold
never
icicles
a yard
penetrates deeply into the ground. I
have seen pendent from the eaves of a house
in length, rise
;
yet
which have been formed between sun-down and sunI
never saw ice on which
once, and that sun's rays
might venture to walk, save
I
was on a small pool
by an overhanging
entirely protected It is also
rock.
highly volcanic country like Japan subterranean heat
something
to
do with
keeping
the
varying depths have here been
made
of
roots
Whether any observations respecting the
earth's
or not
from the
possible that in a
I
may have
plants
warm.
temperature at
cannot say
;
but
the fact remains that we have the orange luxuriating, the teaplant flourishing, the
bamboo
acquiring colossal proportions, and
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
126
here and there a palm-tree in a sheltered spot, while the cold
experienced It is
is
sometimes almost Polar.
morning
is
very cold, and
the sky
;
ice
is
almost cloudless, but the weather
is
we perform our
everywhere, yet
ablutions
on the open balcony.
Our a
business to-day
Estuary
village,
The scraffito
Some have work
Kuroye-mura, or Black
called
which we reach about mid-day.
lacquer wares
quality.
lacquer manufactures at
to see the
is
town ten miles distant
little
is,
made
here
cheap and of medium
are
patterns given to
them by
ceased, and the inferior
unimportant places,
am
the
work of
is all
that replaces
better form, has
its
and of a few other
this village
so far as
it,
European that has ever
first
in
Since the overthrow of the
baronial system that beautiful manufacture, in
I
made
however, very inferior to that formerly
the dominion of the Prince of Kaga.
This
scratching.
I
know.
this town,
visited
and
At
the whole of the inhabitants turn out to see the wild beast.
Awaji the excitement caused by the appearance of the foreigner was indeed great official
;
but here
two policemen join us
They
at
Wakayama
Kuroye-Mura
are certainly useful in clearing our
On
way back we saw one
our
A
knows no bounds.
it
has accompanied us from
for
for the
Government
my
safety,
same purpose.
way through
the crowd.
of the thirty-three Japanese
temples of note belonging to a particular sect of Buddhists.^ stands high on a mountain-side, and
The building in splendid camphor -wood steps.
mountain, plain, bay,
sea,
itself
tree
and
and
It
reached by three hundred
is
not very remarkable, but the
is
front
in
islands,
of
which
it,
it
and
the view
commands
of
more
are
lovely than words can express.
On
beginning
the
descent
I
felt
utterly
terrified
at
the
appearance of the steps by which we had reached the temple, although accustomed to heights
;
a staircase consisting of
for
hundred steep steps in an unbroken line, same size, is something fearful to look upon.
three
the
This
is ^
all
of exactly
no peculiarity of the temple of Kimee-Tera.
The
great temple of Asakusa in Tokio
is
one of
the thirty-tiiree.
Many
ART, temples
in
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
Japan stand on rocky eminences, or wooded
high above the road, and almost
and beautiful
On I
situations.
our return to
Wakayama
preferred to go and see
I
have to speak
for
but hearing that a pottery
;
is
Of
it.
made
is
only two miles
the manufactures
I
shall
hereafter.
At
the hotel
my
inspection
found specimens of the native industries sent
I
by order of the governor of the town.
what we might describe
these are
round the town, where
strolled
I
which the well-known Kishiu ware
away
slopes,
temples have commanding
all
found large cabinet manufactories
in
127
Amongst
as cotton flannels both plain
and
chequered, bed-tickings, a kind of arrowroot, Japanese isinglass, preserved oranges,
and
manufacture resulting
tanned
ox hides
—
new and
a
smal*
from the introduction of the beef-eating
European into the country. Here, for the
by the natives the in
which
first
"
time,
Hand
saw the
I
"
of Buddha."
a series of finger-like
fingered orange," called
This
is
a peculiar variety
members protrude from
the upper
parts of the fruit to the length of three or four inches.
from
strange variation
this
of
form
it
differs
little
Apart
from the
ordinary orange.
Our next excursion was terest
—
to a city of the greatest possible in-
a city consisting almost wholly of temples, and nestling
summit of a vast mountain. This High Field Mountain, can be reached work we were therefore actually on our
in a slight
depression on the
city, called
Koya-Zan
only by a long day's
or
;
road by 7.15 A.M.
Our way
for the first few miles lay in the direction of
but instead of leaving the river as
we should do
town we followed the bank of the stream
for
Osaka
;
to regain this
twenty-seven or
twenty-eight miles, crossing and re-crossing the water from time to time.
We
we were
told
were now at the small town of Miozi-Mura, where that
proceed farther. prepared
;
we must take
We
here have
kagos, as jinrikishas cannot
tiffin
but after an hour's delay
five miles farther
while the kagos are being
we
are told to
go four or
and then get them, and that jinrikishas can go
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
128
on,
though with
We
difficulty.
but soon find our carriages
start,
we run
of Httle use: the road, or bank, on which
is
narrower than
we walk. Kamuro-Mura may be
the vehicles, so they are carried, while
The kagos
supplied
us
to
at
thus
a circular disc of basket-work with a slightly
described.
Each has
raised rim
suspended by four ropes from the centre of a pole of
wood about twelve three inches in
feet
length, six or eight inches deep, and
in
Extending from the centre of
thickness.
pole to the right and
a
left is
this
while a board ascends as
little roof,
a back rest from the basket to the hindmost part of the canopy.
To
take a seat in this vehicle
is
a
much more
The Japanese
than might be supposed.
and through being accustomed
to squat
infancy their joints have a pliability
perfectly happy.
My
feet will
After
hang
out,
many
and
I
floor
from being cut by the raised edge of
success
of mine
We
is
is
;
earliest
Hence my
to ours.
my
my
and appear only
partial.
and save them
legs,
seat.
Three men are engaged to carry the burly suffice for
men
obliged to get the coolies to
form two stirrups of string to support
two
from
sort of ball
my
efforts
am
on the
unknown
companions double themselves up into a
matter
difficult
are chiefly small
foreigner, while
each of the other members of the party
;
thus one
always resting while two are at work.
now
start
on our march, a
man
bearing each end of the
enormous pole, from the centre of which the scale-like contrivance depends with one of us seated
in
it.
The men walk
and
steadily
with firm step, stopping to rest about once every hundred yards
but when about to stop each
man
At every
pole a strong stick which he carries for this purpose.
stoppage one of
my men
is
released, the spare coolie taking his
Uncomfortable though
place.
I
am, the
air
is
hill
When we
started in the
on the right bank of the
me up
I
do not know.
river,
I
am fall
kago we were ascending a high and how the poor men carried
Yet they talked and laughed as though
they were simply amusing themselves. half an hour the scene
I
soon
so cold, and
so tired from the exertions of the last few days, that asleep.
;
places under his end of the
is
When
simpl}' wonderful.
I
awake
We
in
about
are on a
little
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
path skirting a mountain slope, and down some
beneath
feet little
us,
wrapped
village
To
in palm-trees
the village in
We
now I
down below numerous
manufacture of paper, for the
much higher hill than that The path soon becomes so
just passed.
The peeps
vast stony bed,
its
Sometimes we look down
shall never forget.
I
the centre of
that seems bottomless,
defile
around are cryptomerias of huge proportions.
all
We
way through
tortuous
between the trunks of trees into a while
we have
the trees in a forest, and the river that
as
deep
into the valleys
the views of mountain peaks, which are here as
repeatedly crossed winding its
in the
dried lean against every wall.
get out and walk. us,
a
and bamboos.
begin the ascent of a
we have
over which steep that
it is
dell, nestles
hollow we descend, and here every
this
house appears to be engaged boards on which
hundred
fifteen
a strange and most precipitous
in
129
now
gain the edge of another picturesque valley, at the
other side of which
is
we reach by
a village, which
mountain and making but a
This
slight descent.
is
skirting a
the village of
Kamiya-tsuji, and as there are no hotels in the sacred city to which
we
we should have been
arc journeying,
for the night
obliged to remain here
had not the governor of the province
despatched a policeman to give notice of our preparation might be
my
kago once again, but
becomes perfectly
my
in
fearful
;
our sojourn
for
so
than
less I
in
fifteen
the city.
I
so that
now
try
minutes the ascent
again alight, to the great joy of
coolies.
This mountain for,
made
goodness
in his
arrival,
while
it
differs
much from any
towers to a great height,
with immense timber trees to
its
that is
it
I
have before seen,
most richly covered
very summit.
Here are
also
great vine-like stems, rising from the ground to the lower branches
of the trees, and then in a hundred festoons leaping from to bow,
—
a thoroughly tropical habit.
Westeria-creeper plant
is
in
its
native abodes
here thoroughly tropical,
which at
this height
The snow
gets
I
we
;
am
told that this
is
bow the
yet while in growth this
are getting to ice
and snow,
cover the ground to a considerable thickness.
more
slippery, the path
K
more
steep, the ravines
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
I30
deeper,
have
as
trees
they surpass anything that
till
down
looked
I
I
now
to such a
The bottoms
do.
feet, fill
pushes
me
my mouth
snow, and stars of
On
with
so steep that
My
thirst
More
snow.
toil,
is
so great that
more
exceeding brightness above our
left
is
more
moon and
a few
we reach
the top.
and
until the revolution of ten
city,
foreigners have yet visited this most remarkable of
the
Englishman that has
fifth
Harry Parkes being one of the
We
are
set foot
is
on
and but few all cities.
sacred
this
soil,
I
Sir
five.
now met by two more
private (the one with us
years back,
For ten centuries no female
passed this spot.
had entered the hallowed precincts of the sacred
am
gladly
a small temple, and on the right a Dai-butz.
years,
woman had
us,
I
lovely views,
the late twilight, with the crescent
in
I
so a coolie, having straw sandals on his
;
from behind.
For a thousand no
it
plumous vegeta-
rich
its
The path now becomes
towers far above.
can scarcely climb
many hundreds
of valleys are
of feet below us, yet the mountain, with tion,
Never
have before seen.
I
depth between immense trunks of
— —and
policemen,
a corporal),
a sergeant and a
a priest, and, by
the lights of lanterns, are conducted to a great Buddhist temple,
where we are to lodge It
up our abode or at
for the night.
must not be supposed that
its
in
in
the sacred edifice
lodging itself.
in a
temple we take
Around
back, yet immediately connected with
it,
the building, are arranged
living-rooms, which are to the Buddhist priest what the parsonage-
house
is
The
to an English clergyman. living
The ceilings woodwork of
rooms placed
at our service are
most charming.
are in square panels of plain, clean wood,
the walls
is
also without paint or varnish.
and the
The
slides
forming the partitions between adjacent rooms have landscapes
drawn upon them in a heavy horizontal clouds in
solid
beautiful,
though conventional manner
;
cross the mountains, but these clouds are
gold, with a raised outline
and diaper-work upon them,
the diaper and the outline being rendered visible only through their surface being raised
An
excellent meal
is
above that of the ground.
now
prepared, but no eggs, no
fish,
and
i
ART,
may
no meat
Being exceedingly hungry,
four.
One
be sold on the mountain.
1
3
profane policeman
me
brought with him ten eggs, of which he gives
has, however,
my
AND AR T AIANUFA CTURES.
eat without scruple, enjoying
I
meal, and drinking freely of the hot Japanese tea.
Although everything European
Japanese,
is
and so thoroughly
so pure, so clean,
influence
invaded
nevertheless,
has,
paraffin
lamp of the
brought to me.
I
felt
wretched specimen of
and commonest
form
ugliest
make was
that the place was desecrated
Brumagem
art
the
common
precincts of this city of temples, for in the late evening a
by
this
and apart from the question
;
of taste, the danger of introducing paraffin into such an inflam-
mable building
am
I
in
as a Japanese house
very great.
is
the town of Koya-zan, a town consisting chiefly of
temples, of which four hundred and forty tain,
now
exist on the
moun-
while formerly a thousand such buildings nestled amidst the
which here surrounds
rich foliage
In the town there are one
us.
hundred and ninety-nine houses and shops not connected with the temples, and the population
whom
three hundred
one thousand and ninety-five, of
is
and eighty-five are
Here
priests.
is
the
largest university for the rearing of priests in Japan.
February
18.
— By
we
seven
are
astir,
and by eight have
breakfasted, and are ready to see the temples. bitterly cold,
my this
and the night has been intensely
bed was the largest Hibachi that
I
towel,
which
I
Yet, Avhen
had spread beside
it
buckram, while a bottle of water near
With
I
awoke
to dry,
my
the town.
Passing the
and interesting
things,
shops, where
I
have never
the morning a
in
head was
I
stiff
as
solid ice.
we
started to see
purchased a few old
and trudging through the snow, under the
shadow of cryptomeria
we entered
little
Japan, and
in
was frozen as
the chief priest of the temple as guide,
is
Placed near
so.
have yet seen
contained a pile of glowing charcoal, such as
seen before in this country.
the
The morning
a vast grove
trees a
hundred and
fifty feet
where gigantic coniferous
trees
in
height,
spanning
roadway and meeting together form one vast cathedral nave,
under which monuments to ten thousand of the great dead find shelter.
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
132
This grove
magnificent beyond
is
all
All the larger
to twenty feet in height. in form,
is
The
top-
a compressed sphere, the fifth a cube.
is
Then comes ing,
\l____7
a
the base, consisting of a lotus mould-
and a slab or
hambra
38.— Monument IN THE Sacred Grove at kova-
a 11
;
and here and there richly orna-
elaborately coloured
as the Al-
Granada.
at <-
These shrines are as as
1
All of thcsc erected
rests
shrine of superb architecture gives variety
mented and
I
on which the whole
either side of the grove little
to the scene.
/illl.ii\\\\\
plinth,
There are hundreds of these monuments
(Fig. 38).
at
by
1
•
1
1
monuments and shnnes have been or friends of deceased per-
relatives
and the larger structures commemorate almost exclusively
great
warriors.
A
boy runs before the priest, and in a out the names of the chief celebrities to whom
singing voice cries
little
monuments have been erected. We saw the first monument here
the
are similar
stones.
square and has four ear- like corners, the
is
fourth
sons,
monuments
of the form of an onion, the next of a cup, the third
FiG.
the
monuments, from ten
and are made of the same number of
most stone
Under
description.
richest of foliage are arranged thousands of
raised,
it
having being built
during the lifetime of the founder of this grove, Kobo-Daishi,
who
died A.D. 843.
As
I
see
it
the grove
trees
;
On
very charming.
is
snow, several inches in depth
;
the sun
is
white masses of the crystallised water, like so
doves, keep falling from the branches
the ground
is
just peeping through the
high above
many us,
spotless
while the
thousands of monuments, and the richly coloured shrines, make up a scene altogether indescribable.
Traversing the grove for about a mile, and crossing one or
two streams, which are spanned by bridges, we come to a temple directly facing us,
nates the grove.
we
and which, with This temple
is
its
associated buildings, termi-
the Toro-do.
Into this temple
look, but are not permitted to enter.
About
a hundred lamps are burning in
it,
and the
priests are
ART, engaged
in
AND AR T MANUFA CTURES.
melting the frozen
over charcoal
oil
1
order to
fires, in
As
kindle more lamps, and replenish those already burning.
eye becomes more accustomed to the dim light of the sacred
we
see that
is
it
filled
with lanterns
our
edifice
somewhat
indeed, stands
;
3
resembling those used at our railway stations for the lamps of the train are
crowded together, and while each of these contains three
numerous as almost
layers of lamps, the stands are so
entirely to
the temple.
fill
Our
priest-guide
now informs
us that there are eight thousand
of these lamps in the building, that on ordinary days about one
hundred and
fifty
hundred are
fifteen
kept burning, that on feast-days about
are lit,
on the 26th day of April
while
—
the
anniversary of the death of the founder of the grove, and of that sect of Buddhists to
which
the temples on this
all
nearly the whole eight thousand are
with smoke and greasy with
on our
left
lit.
As we
oil.
belong,
hill
The temple
black
is
face the temple
we
see
a small piece of enclosed ground, containing a few
mounds
monuments of great simplicity These are the monuments of Mikados, and it crowning them. may here be noted, that while the Shogun found his resting-place in a magnificent tomb, the grave of the Mikado was always a
plain
simple is
mound
of earth with stone
of earth
not a cemetery.
It
;
is
but no one
buried
is
in this
grove, for
it
simply a vast collection of monuments
raised to the illustrious dead.
Behind
this temple,
which
is
building almost hidden by trees.
wood, and has on
its
summit
sents the soul, or spirit, of man.
who
so rich in lanterns, It
is
thatched, and
I
see
the
a small built
of
that onion-shaped ball which repre-
This
is
the shrine of the founder,
died one thousand and forty-four years prior to
here
is
my
visit,
and
poor coolies who dragged our jinrikishas from
Wakayama to Kamuro-Mura performing their devotions. Although they had dragged us twenty-five miles, they follow us throughout the remainder of our journey (twelve miles) and climb this great
mountain as though they were actually
We to a
now
in
need of exercise.
return through the grove, and, passing the shops,
pagoda of peculiar construction.
Near
it
is
come
a temple, differ-
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
134
ing widely from that at the end of the grove, for (it
was
years
eighteen
built
This
beautifully decorated.
We
now
visit
by three
received
fifty
new is
the Gokoo-Shio.
is
who show
priests,
prized manuscript
nearly
we
another temple near at hand, where
These consist
edifice.
it is
exceedingly clean, and
since), is
are
us the treasures of the sacred
chiefly of swords, but there
a
is
much
by the founder of the grove, one thousand and
years old, and yet in excellent preservation, and a manuscript
by a Mikado who reigned some temple
the
in
which
these
centuries
rare
since.
antiquities
The name
of
preserved
is
are
Kongoho-Zi. Visiting a house containing a thousand gods,
drawings of their favourite
I
bought two
divinities, a piece of blessed rice cake,
and two pieces of a kind of moss that
said never to die.
is
After continuing our round as long as time will permit, return to our temple, and are not a
pared for
which
Our host
us.
tells
to eat beast, bird,
fish,
or eggs.
neither create nor destroy
and also
priests to marry,
its
Thus
it
is
supposed that they
life.
thinking matters over,
I
am
at
a loss to understand
where the four hundred and forty temples which are said on
this
the
mountain-top are
four
and
I
have seen some twenty or
hundred odd have not come within
Through each ings,
;
vista in the
of these,
all
I
we
glad to find a meal pre-
us that the sect of Buddhists to
mountain belongs forbids
this
Upon
little
wood
am
I
my
to rest
thirty,
but
observation.
see, indeed, the roofs of build-
told, are temples.
But
in
order to
understand this mysterious city properly a sojourn of weeks would be necessary
;
and even then but
little
would be known of the
innumerable shrines, monuments, and temples which make up
Koya-Zan. In the midst of journey.
The
fast- falling
snow we
priest brings us to the
start
on our return
end of the buildings, and a
policeman sees us to that Dai-butz which marks the entrance of the town.
None
of us enter our kagos, for the road
and the path so slippery that we are
Soon
my
is
so steep
afraid to be carried.
boots become as slippery as the ice-covered ground
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART, on vyhich
Two
tread.
I
come
coolies
my
to
135
and
help,
manage
I
by putting an arm round the neck of each. Seeing that the Japanese can walk in safety in their straw
to get on only
sandals,
ask the coolies to
I
have a stock
in reserve
in this position I
native shoe. well
am
I
can
now walk
we reach a warm hollow
till
my
forced to take off
that
I find
boot
they
soles, as
no amount of tying secures them
but as
;
my
a pair on
tie
boots and adopt the
So
with ease.
which the snow
in
Here the discomfort reaches its acme, as I might as through iced water with naked feet as walking
melting.
is
well be in
goes
all
wading
sludge with
simple sandals on.
We
continue our journey along the winding path and
such descents as
We
down
never remember seeing, even in Switzerland.
I
wear neither topcoat nor
hat, sheltering ourselves
from the
snow with a native umbrella, yet we Never did I see effects more weird and grand than those which are almost melting with heat.
are
now
Trees bending over with snow, palm-trees
before us.
down yonder,
while
;
bamboos
of aspects,
presenting the strangest ostrich feathers
drawn distance which might belong
huge white
like
beneath
far
us, is
to another world, as
a dimly-
has no
it
features familiar to us in this.
We cold,
night
journey on, and
to be spent
is
The
my room
there
communicating
and no
fire
just as
it
is
from the
We
is
directly with the
my
rug,
I
bitterly
town where the consists of eggs
it
are lodged
clean and
is
frieze of eight inches in
open
Snow and
air.
ice
depth
without
wind courses through the chamber
do not add
pleases,
is
well ventilated, for around the top
an open-work
within, while the
dressing-gown and
we
hotel in which
certainly
it
little
and to have a meal, though
little
comfortable, and
to comfort
;
sleep soundly
yet,
wrapped
and
suffer
in
my
no harm
cold.
have a long day before
are on our road.
get
The evening
becomes dark.
hence we are not sorry to reach the
as usual.
of
it
them
on,
and to keep
My
hence
my
I
feet
us, so
we
damp
rise early
and by seven
it is
impossible to
resolve to try Japanese socks
and sandals,
boots are so
that
dry and well wrapped
in fur
;
but
how
vain
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
136
are man's hopes
We
!
have not got two miles on the road when
the path becomes narrower than the vehicle
hence
;
trudge through the snow, while the jinrikisha
road
Reeds
us.
ground, and
is
path look like solid
at the side of this elevated
many
in
parts the path
but
is
Throughout the whole of
the jinrikisha. there
Our
carried
is
along a path, skirting a river often forty to sixty feet
lies
below
have to
I
broader than
little
this portion of
our ride
constant excitement, for the danger of our slipping over
the precipice
is
a sudden lurch
not slight, and once
I
was saved only by making
the opposite direction, while
in
my men
gave a
sudden bounce.
A is
you is
cold bath
likely to
is
not pleasant at this season of the year, and
your descent, and the water which you reach
in
it
be peculiarly distasteful when the carriage accompanies in forty feet
but one foot deep.
The road
gets
but the snow gets thicker
better,
eleven o'clock half our journey the sun shines
fitfully,
The snow becomes if it
We
to the
tures of the province,
glass
find
we had been making, with
as
—
Government House a building of great and see samples of the manufac-
—
which have been collected here
There are cotton
beads (the glass
in
a crude
for
my
crapes, earthen vessels,
fabrics, silk
being imported from
state,
me
as specially
European wants.
Bidding adieu to the governor, we
visit
on
in the
in
most simple and rude manner
shops which here abound
manufactures of Japan,
—
for
—and
Sakai
is
the chief carpet
first
manufactory, a very small establishment, carried
streets
day.
Europe), with other things, but nothing that strikes suited to
fall,
we
sludgy, then less in quantity, and
beauty, and formerly a temple
inspection.
ceases to
hail.
were an August
now go
The snow
over.
by
still
and then come showers of cutting
Sakai, the town for which
dry as
is
;
the
which weaving ;
is
then the cutlery
seat
of the steel
afterwards a pottery, where only
coarse wares are made.
We
were just going to take our seats
Mr. Sakata,
whom we
had missed
for
in
our jinrikishas, when
some time
past,
came
in
ART, excitedly with
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
the
news that a revolution had broken out
Satsuma, and that an army was on
Sakata himself
rebellion.^
13V
is
way
its
in
thither to quell the
We
from the south.
however,
start,
for
Osaka, and after a pleasant run reach our old hotel, where
am
glad to find a comfortable European bed awaiting me.
The next two days
I
are spent in Osaka, with the exception of
a few hours devoted to visiting a pottery near Hiogo, where Kishiu
ware
is
We
made.
it
may
learn that the insurrection has spread to
and Mr. Saumarez writes from Tokio to say
several provinces,
that
now
be serious, as most of the army consists of Satsuma
men.
The weather now two days
since, for
Yonder, however,
and
I fear
winter in
in
that were all
presents a striking contrast with that
it
gloriously
is
the higher ground,
Upon our we found that to
as
warm
of
as spring.
snow -clad mountains,
the distance arc the
we on
severity.
its
visiting the pottery,
and
fine,
we should
still
find
from Kobe, after
return
leave the railway station
Osaka we had to pass between two rows of policemen. A little excitement was caused by one of our party being seized, but after explanation he was allowed to join us again, the fact is, at
—
he was accused of being a Satsuma man, and this
all
the natives of
province unless in Government employ, being regarded
insurgents, are cast into prison It is a feast-day
till
tranquillity
of one of the gods of riches
:
as
restored.
is
—
the god Yebisu
is
receiving homage, and both here, at stations on the road, and
at
Kobe, hundreds of people are out ^
in
holiday attire worshipping
This rebellion ultimately became very serious, and
The
route in Japan.
rebellion of
1868 A.D. which ended
it
materially circumscribed
in the
my
overthrow of the Shogun
and the restoration of the Mikado, was headed by General Saigo, who, being victorious, was ultimately made the Commander-in-Chief of the Mikado's troops. This General Saigo had a younger brother who also became a general in the royal army, and it is this
brother of
whom
senior Saigo has
now
I
have so often spoken
at the
commencement of
himself become the arch-rebel, and
The younger brother has we have the strange
is
this
work.
The
warring against the powers
made Commander-intwo brothers heading contending armies. After months of warfare the rebellion was ended by the Royalists proving victorious, and the rebel chief committing hara-kiri. The younger brother is now the Japanese Minister of War, but those who are interested in this matter should read that admirable book, The Saisiona Rebellion, by Mounsey. which he himself
set
up.
chief of the royal troops, hence
recently been
spectacle of
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
138
Yebisu
their god.
(the red tai)
under
his left
where you
may
worshipped are numerous
is
purchase on his feast-day, toy fishes of red
This god and another, Daikoku, seem
colour and sachi tubs.
may
always associated, and they
Charms
of small images.
fish
fond of sachi.
is
god
this
sits
ahvays laughing, has a
is
arm, and
Near the temples where stalls,
He
one of the seven gods of plent}\
is
with one leg up and one down,
both be purchased
the form
in
are sold on this feast day, each bundle
of which contains a piece of gold paper (supposed to be an old
gold coin), a model ingot of
bag of
ingots, a
silver,
bags
for
money, a large bag
hammer
an account-book, a
rice,
for
hammer
(the
of the god Daikoku), a key of a warehouse, a measure of quantity,
This bunch secures
a pair of scales, and ribbon-like streamers.
good luck cured for
to the possessor,
in
;
who
may be
simplest form
of riches are, Yebisu^
— Daikoku, who
one hand, and
with his
in its
pro-
one halfpenny.
The seven gods described
and
also
is
hammer money
on two
sits
always laughing
have already
;
if
this
hammer
god
falls
and who
sits
very large bag containing valuable things is
I
appears wherever the blow
has a very large stomach, large ears,
high forehead,
whom
rice bags, holds a
;
—
Jiuro,
who
;
strikes
—
has a very
very old, has a long beard, holds a staff
hand (generally a deer
is
gets riches through his
Hotei,
beside a
in
his
represented as following this god), and
wisdom
;
—
Ben-ten, a goddess,
musical instrument and snakes following her
;
—
who
Bishiamon,
has a
who
wears armour and gets rich by conquest, has a spear, and bears a small pagoda in his
hand
left
;
and Fukuroku, who wears a cap
resembling that of our brewers' men, with the top falling over,
and has a beard, but
The
his wealth.
to every
one
in
cannot learn
I
this
gentleman acquires
three and the female appear to be
first
Japan
how
;
known
but the latter three are not well known.
and beautifully carved.
some of which arc most elaborately One pagoda and temple are worthy of
special note, as even the
under surfaces of the over-hanging roofs
Osaka
is
rich in temples,
are most richly modelled and coloured. '
If
any one laughs inordinately
it is
But a description of the
said that he laughs like Yebisu.
ART,
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
numerous temples of beautiful is
city
this
though some of them
Here
fair.
in
in
a belfry
only appear monotonous,
could
we
In one that
are.
going on and music which reminds
139
me
visit
chanting
of an English pleasure
a priest with two thick shavings of
is
wood
hand, each being beautifully cut, and about ten inches in
his
length by one inch and a half in breadth
name
Behind the
of a dead child.
and
in the chant,
Around
—
priest are
who have
written the
is
two women joining
lost their infant children.
the interior of this belfry runs a small gallery, the
lattice railing of
children
they
it is
on each
;
which
is literally
covered with the belongings of
and on the
frocks, hats, sandals, dolls, etc.,
floor of the
many similar things. These have all belonged to now dead, and have been brought by the mothers to this The chant being over, the priest strikes the great spot.
edifice are
children
sacred
times with a heavy rope which dangles by
bell three
causes
to give forth
it
its
the shavings to the mothers, one to each.
women pit
take to
some twelve
sunken tank situated
a feet
is
filled
which seems to be climbing over water the
women
then gives
These shavings the in
the
bottom of a is
from the mouth of a tortoise its
edge.
Into this running
bamboo bowls and handles
once these shavings are
water, the mothers
and
introduce these shavings by placing them in
ladles with cylindrical
When
side
long by eight in width, into which water
The tank
always running.
its
He
grand booming sound.
free
seem perfectly
of great length.
and are immersed
satisfied
;
in
the utmost complacency for a few brief
moments and
happy, having, as they think, done
that they can for the
all
the
they watch them with
home
return
little
departed ones.
There
is
a
particular
stands in front of consists of
Here
at
all
many
They
and arranged
counted a
all
top,
and a tie-beam.
painted red, as the temple in
groups without order.
hundred of these curious
temple, which, like so
which
are hundreds in the grounds of one temple
to the Fox,
are
torii,
Buddhist, temples, which
two uprights, a cross-piece on the
Osaka there
(Fig. 39).
I
kind of gateway called
Shinto, and
many
in
Japan,
is
structures.
is
dedicated
In one group
From
this
on high ground, a view
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
I40
of the town, surrounding country, and bay can be got, which, under
the effects of sunset as
At 8.30 we
I
saw
it,
was most splendid and charming.
leave for Kioto, where
we
find
two long rows of
policemen guarding the exit from the railway station, each with
Fig.
39.— Temple in Osaka. Showing a few of the Torri in the Temple Grounds. Here the Fox is worshipped as the God of Agriculture.
The
a paper lantern.
each of
calls
my
escort by name.
communicated our coming as
one, reading from a scroll of paper,
first
lest
The Governor
of Osaka has
any of the party should be arrested
Satsuma men. I
now begin
danger during
to
my
wonder whether
journeyings, and
I
have been exposed to
whether the police escort
which has accompanied us from town to town has been needed for
our safety.
Thus
far
I
had looked on them
obtrusive adjunct to the part}', but after
my
safety
all it
may
as
rather an
be regard for
which has induced the authorities to act as they" have take up
my
quarters at a tea-house called
done.
I
on the
plain, thus saving the
hotel on the
hill.
fatiguing ascent to the
Nakamura,
Mariyama
ART,
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
CHAPTER —Japanese
Temple of Kioto
Lacquer-work gaura
To
—Vakie Kioto
the
see
least,
I
VI.
— Picnics — Honest workmanship — Tea-drinking ceremony— Otsu— Futami-
estimate of Christianity of Corean ware
— Kamiji-yama.
days at
141
temples
am
told,
in
the
most cursory manner ten
would be needed.
We
visit
first
a
temple called Kiyomidsu, beautifully situated above the Mariyama hotel.
one of the thirty-three temples of which we have
It is
already spoken. to a Buddhist
Leaving the temple, we proceed along the
cemetery
—
hill
All the tombs, which are
Nishi-otani.
very closely packed together, are pyramids of stones, the only variation in
any being that the top stone of the
times a mere cube with a
domed
top,
pile
is
some-
sometimes a cube with a
square mushroom-like cap, and sometimes a cube with panelled sides. I
in
am
told that poor persons
when dead
are placed
in
a box
a sitting posture, and are carried to the grave in a kago, while
the rich
lie in
person here in Japan can be buried wherever he pleases field,
by a
roadside, or under a tree
;
all
that
that he purchase the ground for his sepulture.
ing a lovely prospect
We
now come
is
is
A
site
in
which
is
a
is
object,
the head and shoulders of an
These planks
are covered with gold paper, but as every join in the effect
in
command-
gateway of Otani, a beautiful
enormous Dai-butz, formed of planks of wood. whole
—
needed being
generally preferred.
to the
and thence to a temple
visible, the
A
a coffin and are dragged in a kind of horse-car.
wood
so coarse as to be almost horrid.
is
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
142
we saw
After this
"
Corean
the
ear
monument
(Fig. 40),
"
form ahnost exactly resembles the monuments of Koya-
which
in
zan.
When
the Japanese went to battle in former days,
customary
them
for
bring back
to
the slain as trophies
was
was, however, found too
it
;
it
the heads of
great a task to bring back the heads of those slain
conquest of Corea, hence the ears only were
at the
secured as
had been ex-
After these
trophies.
mound, on
hibited in Japan, they were buried in a
the top of which this
JMAkkiii.VvsSi
s.
Next we
I
Fig.
thirty-three divisions.
— Corean
40.
"Ear
"^
monu-
monument
stands.
see the Sanji-sanken-do or temple of
and two yards
This temple
length,
in
is
divided into thirty-
is
MENT."
.
.
three
absolutely
spaces
by
hence
pillars,
with life-size figures.
filled
It
one hundred
is
name, and
its
is
popularly believed
that there are in this temple thirty-three thousand three hundred
and thirty-three
Some
and one.
but
idols,
in
are only a thousand
reality there
of the idols, however, have forty hands
;
others
have nimbi on which small figures occur, and some are sheltered
by canopies crowded with
little
deities.
Hence
although erroneously, that the larger number
These
figures are arranged
and
rising gallery,
These
lines are,
all
in
is
it
is
supposed,
reached.
straight rows on
a gradually
face one of the long sides of the temple.
however, broken
in
the centre by a Dai-butz, and
twenty-eight figures, which are of special interest, as they are a
thousand years
old,
In front of
and were brought from Nara.
these stands an idol with a nimbus and a vesica piscis on which
There
are a thousand small gods, each with a nimbus.
popular belief that the ridge of this temple-roof piece of in
it,
wood
(willow),
is
and that the whole of the
save those from Nara, were
is
also a
formed of one idols contained
made from branches
of the same
tree.
We
now saw
the largest pagoda in Japan, the T5zi-no-to, or
that connected with the temple of Toki. portions, but
is
on the pagoda
without any of that rich
It is
of splendid pro-
carving which we observed
at Osaka.
i
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART, At
split
round one of the temple buildings, and throwing
written, running
Fig. 41.
stick
we see people, both old and young, bamboo on which the name of the temple is
the temple of Tozi
with slips of
a
143
that this
box each time they get round
a
in is
East Gateway of the Temple, Nishi-hong\van-ji, Kioto.
to
it.
I
understand
considered to confer some religious advantage upon
the performers.
The gateways as the temple to
of the temple Nishi-hongwan-ji are as beautiful
which they
lead,
Here we who shows
and that
is
much (Figs. priest who speaks
saying
by a
41, 42, 43, and 44).
are received
English wellj and
us through the main building, the
many rooms connected in
which a peculiar
From
the priest
revolution of
" I
tea
with the temple, the garden, and a house
ceremony
"
takes place.
learnt a fact of peculiar interest.
After the
1868 the newly -formed Government adopted,
to
a certain extent, both European manners and customs, and set
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
•44 itself
to
manufactures on a
establish
with a desire to
utilise for their
European
own good
Filled
basis.
the experiences of other nations, they serious-
whether
ly considered
European
progress
was not traceable the
influence
Christian
to
of the
religion
upon the people, and whether they should not adopt the Christian
together
faith,
with
European
a
With the studying
civilisation.
view
of
Christianity
and
porting on
the high
it,
re-
priest of Nishi-hong-
wan-ji,
and priest who has
Akamatz,
been our guide around this
beautiful edifice,
were sent to England Fig. 42.
— DooK, or Gate,
and with that object in
the East Gateway of the
remained
Temple, NisHi-HONG\vAN-jt, Kioto.
for
In sending these particular priests the for
which has no
their sojourn in
Christianity professed,
idols,
and allows the
London they reported
was
inferior
and that
in
to
our
drunkenness were much more
all
London
eighteen months.
Government had
they belong to the most spiritual of
sect
in
a motive,
the Buddhist sects,
priests to
marry
—
but after
;
that as a civilising agent
the religion which they themselves Christian
common
country crime, than
vice,
in their country,
and
where
Shinto and Buddhism prevails.
The next temple nificent structure, built
that
we
visit,
that of Chion-in,
is
by the most celebrated carpenter
a mag(builder)
ART, that
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
Japan ever knew, and a man who
Fig. 43
— Carved
Panel
in
is
145
idoHsed by the craft of
East Gateway of the Temi'le, Nishi-hongwan-ji, Kioto.
The
the present day.
of
tention
at-
the visitor
is
here directed to a portion of an umbrella which visible in the
is
This
roof.
was the umbrella of the carpenter -builder, and that
said
is
there,
in
he
order
it
left
it
that
a
part of his belongings, as well as his work, should
remain to posterity. In a building connected
with this
temple
is
largest bell in Japan.
the It is
nine and a half feet in di-
ameter at the mouth, eleven inches thick at the rim, and Fig. 44.
Details OF East G.\TEW AY OF the Temple, N,sHi-HONGWAN,Ti, KioTo.
•
.
c
i.
•
i.
•
i-i.
sixtectt fect HI hcight.
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
146
The
other temples which
we
those already seen, and there
visited
is
that the high
;
and
we
but during our rambles
five
of the temple
priest
them which
a sameness about
renders any description unnecessary see several with the yellow walls
are of less interest than
white
lines,
which indicate
of royal blood (Fig. 45).
is
Here
may
I
none
notice, that
of the children of the Mikado,
the
save
succeed to
marry priests
My
;
to
is
throne, can
the
boys must
the
and the
be
girls nuns.
Japanese companions
now arranged
that
dance
a
should
I
room of the
see in the large hotel
who
eldest,
peculiar
to
Kioto, in which the costumes are
those of the characters
To me
personated.
dance
beautiful,
Wall
Fig. 45.
in
The
Kioto.
five parallel
lines indicate that the building belongs to
ciently
white
a person
this
strange rather than
is
and
I
am
familiar
not
suffi-
with
the
represented
characters
to
of royal blood.
catch
This
representations.
combination
the
meaning
of dancing
and
which the motions are slow, gentle, and graceful, had seven
hundred
years
back,
and
is
much
of
the
acting, in its
appreciated
origin
by the
Japanese.
The weather talk of picnics arrived.
The
;
now
is
so
warm
that people are beginning to
but unfortunately the picnic season has not yet favourite excursion for the
merry-making people
of Kioto, during the time of the cherry blossoming,
yama, a
buy
hill
famous
As
for its cherry-trees.
at
is
to Arashi-
Killarney you
objects of arbutus wood, and at Jerusalem trinkets formed of
olive stems, so at
Each of these
Kioto you buy boxes formed of cherry wood.
objects
is
inscribed with
which the cherry-tree has grown,
the
name
of the
hill
on
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART, Picnicing richest art
much enjoyed by
is
and
most
careful
the Japanese, and
workmanship
147
some of
expended
is
their
the
in
production of cases, boxes, and various contrivances, in which they
Some
carry their picnic to the country.
of these contain vessels
of the most minutely figured lacquer-work, bottles formed of silver
with golden sprays, and sachi cups perfectly delicious in
inlaid
character.
On
the ninth day of January (old Calendar) the Japanese go
out and gather seven kinds of grass, taking their picnic with them
each person carries his
supply of sachi
hedge
salad.
have already engaged the best photographer
I
;
most have a separate
taken home, boiled, mixed with
grasses are
and eaten as a
rice,
picnic-case, while
bottle-gourd slung over the shoulder on a
in a
The
stick.
own
in
Kioto to
make photographs of architectural details and rare objects, and I now engage the best decorative artist in the city to make coloured drawings of temple decorations as
examples of true Japanese
art that
The next days we spent and manufacturers, and but on the 28th
in
in
I I
am
can.^
(Fig.
46).
the
figures, figure,
bus,
is
On
our road
its
band stand
;""
in
central
measuring
and a vesica
the
called
next at a temple
Lucerne
^
main building (Butsu-den) are three
being a Dai-butz
fifty feet in
sitting
on a
lily.
The
height without the base, has a nim-
piscis of vast dimensions.
Both the temples
Next we see a Buddhist 47) founded by a priest who came from Ingen,
and the gods are six hundred years temple at Uji^ (Fig.
we
in full relief
a covered bridge resembling those at
Here
;
to visit certain celebrated temples
which has a huge dragon
pendent from the ceiling of
where there
the
searching the curio shops for treasures
we arranged
at a Shinto temple,
all
visiting potters, metal-workers,
ten miles distant from our present home. first
anxious to get
old.
Accompanying the drawings which I ultimately received from this latter artist was model of a complicated bracket of which I wished to have a drawing. To my owing to his imperfect knowquestion why this model was made, the answer came that ledge of perspective he could not draw this elaborate work, and that he had consequently - This is the temple Takinoo-no-yashiro. made a model instead (see Fig. 72). ^ This is Obakuzan Manpuku-ji. 3 This is Hodo of Tofuku-ji (Fig. 46). 1
a coloured
—
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
148
in the district of
Annan (now
of the columns with him.
who brought over
Saigon), and
forty
In the courtyard of this temple are
immense stacks of for printing the
tures
blocks, used
Buddhist scrip-
they are tied together in
;
bundles of ten, and there must
be
many thousands
of them.
Crossing a river which flows
from Biwa Lake, and
the sur-
roundings of which are highly picturesque,
tea-house Fig.
46.— Wall of the Temple Tofuku-ji, Formed of wood, with bracketed
Kioto.
and
structure,
plaster.
we
enter a charming
which the empress
in
stayed a week or two since,
when
on her way to Kioto from Nara.
We are now
at the village of Uji,
on the highroad from Nara to Kioto, and the tea-house where we is
the Kiku-ya (Kiku
= Chrysanthemum
;
Ya chouse).
At
rest
Uji
the best tea in
Japan
grown
is
48
(Fig.
gives
part of a tea-
making
estab-
and
lishment),
every
nearly house
here
engaged tea
in
is
the
industry.
Here sold
also
are
netsukies,
tea scoops,
and
other
trifles,
formed
of
the
Fig. 47.— Interior of
Roof of Obaku Temple.
hard and closegrained
wood
of the tea plant.
in these productions,
for
As
they are
rather than to please true lovers of
art
works there
made
is little
merit
to gratify excursionists
art.
k
ART, After luncheon
on
piles,
AND ART MANUFACTURES. we go
one more temple which stands
or supports, rising out of water.
appears Indian
in style,
Fig. 48.
details
to see
the
Tea Manufactory at
Uji,
are all seen to be Japanese.
more
to
be regretted as
splendid temples in Japan.
open the building
for
description.
handle
in
a
the
This temple
is
glance
no longer
is
This
one of the most the priest brings to
so remarkable as to deserve
is
a rod of
wood an
inch and a half
diameter and two feet in length, while the lower portion
is
iron
inserted through a hole in the door of about
two inches
diameter, the bent metal portion being introduced
this colossal
this
key
till
being caught the bolt
opened
The
he has found a is
priest
now
feels
slot in a large
thrown up by an
effort
is
This
about half an inch square.
then a portion of the handle.
it
constructive
their terrible work.
has been
it
first
its
near Kioto.
The key which
our inspection
mere bent piece of
key in
Its
At
but upon closer observation
used, and neglect and decay are doing is
149
and
first
about with
wooden and
bolt
the.
;
door
(Fig. 49).
This temple
is
eight hundred
and eighteen years
most of the internal decorations which remain are as pure
old,
and
in style
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
50
as the
ornament found on the old
when
first
Nara, and are Indian in
building must have been of extraordinary beauty
The
character.
felts at
members of the roof
erected, for all the structural
are
elaborately inlaid with pearl, and a piece which has dropped from
the ceiling shows that the inlaying has
Be-
been of a most finished character.
tween the structural members the ceiling is
painted
with
flat
ornament, rich
design and beautiful in
stand on which a Dai-butz elaborately inlaid as
temple
is
were intended
= house).
do
;
as
is
This
^= peacock
an
It is
in-
teresting fact that in these great temples
work
the
i
it
Howo-do (howo
the
and peahen ;^,
if
rests
most minute inspection.
the
for
in
colour, while a
all
is
of the most honest and
Whether seen from
exquisite description.
a distance or near finished,
it
is
all
equally well
and even those parts of a temple
which are never seen are as carefully treated as those which are always visible.
Upon my
return to Kioto
an
I find
elaborate English dinner prepared at the
is
am
hotel where I
49.— Inside of Entrancedoor OF ISURIDONS, Ujl, NEAR Kioto. The end of the key
Fig.
but Shio-Rokui
door and feehng for the slot in the bolt. Leaning on the floor and the bottom bar of the door is a padlock its key being on
Governor of Kioto, and two other
the floor.
friends Ishida
the
"
a
title
large secretary
of the
interior
head of the board of commerce.
Mikado and Nagasaki. is
his
He
ministers, but will
Mr. Machida,
also a Ju-Goi (Ju
my
=
;
Goi
=
Kawase
is
department as well as the is
here in Kioto with the
leave in a
who opened
wise
officials
Japanese
and Sakata.
conferred by the Mikado, and Mr. "
am
Kawase Hideharu; Makimura Masanao, the
are also present, as well as
;
is
I
the guest of Ju-Goi
seen protruding through the
Ju-Goi
staying and that
day or two
for
for us the treasury at Nara,
fifth)
and
is
a large secretary
of the interior department, as well as head of the imperial museum.
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
151
Both of these gentlemen are under Mr. Okubo, the minister of the
who
interior,
is
a
Ju-Sanmi (Ju = wise Sanmi = third) and a while the two other gentlemen, as well as the ;
" first-class " officer
;
Governor of Kioto, are each Secretaries in
We
secretary.
commerce and
fourth-class
" officers.
Government departments
sub-large
secretary,
"
small
secretary,
ranked as large
are
secretary,
and
sub- small
have a pleasant evening and a long chat on the industries of Japan.
In the morning the chief manufacturers of Kioto meet at the
House of Commerce," where I am received by the Governor and Mr. Kawase. After some time spent in considering the works offered for my inspection by the manufacturers, T was welcomed This over, I examined the works of to an elaborate luncheon. "
several artists, certain kinds of lacquer ware, sachi cups formed of
orange
rinds,
and many
looms weaving figured
fabrics
and
;
silks, rich
in a building close
by
I
saw
damasks, and cloths of various
descriptions.
Here on the top of each native loom a boy is perched, who is the prototype of our "Jacquard apparatus," and who, gathering together threads, raises them so that the weaver, by passing the
Up
shuttle beneath them, gives figure to the fabric.
our fabrics that trolled
it
I
it
way
must be remembered,
is
"
draw boy."
in
who
thus con-
This method of
advance of the more primi-
of working each weft thread across the warp by dipping
under or passing
By
here see before me, and the lad
the pattern was called the
weaving, tive
the same method of giving pattern to
we employed
of Jacquard
to the time
it
over certain threads as necessary.
the agency of the
looms which the world
I
now
makes
;
"
inspect
draw boy
"
Japan
some of the most
and were
it
is
producing
in
the
artistic fabrics that
not that the Lyons weavers can
when once they have the pattern before them, and produce them at a much lower price than the Japanese can, those now being woven would be highly saleable in imitate
some
European
of these fabrics
countries.
There
is,
however, another drawback to these
beautiful fabrics of Japan becoming popular in Europe, most of them contain gold the thread with which it
for while is
woven
1
JAPAN ITS AR CHITE CTURE,
52
is
:
far
from durable, as
a strip of gilt paper, and not a string
is
it
This want of durability has created a prejudice against
of metal.
these Japanese fabrics which
it
will
take a
time to overcome.
little
we have
just
machinery producing
silk
Side by side with the primitive looms which noticed
the
see
I
finest
of
French
brocades, and the newest of card-stamping machines for supply-
newest of looms with
ing the jacquard of this curiously, the
its
our markets
highly
now be shown
while those produced in the native looms are
;
five o'clock I bid
but before doing
museum
so,
promise to meet the former at the Mikado's
at nine o'clock to-morrow morning.
booths and a large
hall, in
Commerce
To
specimen attached.
unknown
possible to
name
of the
me, as a stranger,
interest,
number of covered
are a
which specimens of the manufactures
of the district are arranged, with the
highest
Kawase and Mr. Makimura,
adieu to Mr.
Close by the House of
and
here
soon
I
Here
European commerce.
this
I
now common
in
bringing with
our markets
me
;
but
its
maker of each
display
is
discover
see for the
of the objects
first
time
This beautiful ware
a specimen of Japanese translucent enamel.
my
but
artistic.
At
is
;
woven by the new French machinery bear
silks
patterns of a bad European style, such as could not in
cards
introduction was due to
the specimen which
saw here displayed
I
with the other manufactures of Kioto.
To me
the idea of collecting together
the manufactures of
all
name
a district, and attaching to each specimen the
seems one which might well be adopted
in
of the maker,
England.
Surely
business might be increased by the foreign merchant seeing speci-
mens of
all
our manufactures, and learning where he could get
whatever he needed, without the long and laborious process of visiting all the
manufactories
might be provided ford,
in
in
a district.
A
hall
of this kind
Manchester, Birmingham, Sheffield, Brad-
Stoke -upon -Trent, and other large manufacturing towns;
while in
London
a central hall might be arranged for the display
of the chief manufactures of the country.
Here merchants and
shippers would see at a glance where the particular wares which
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
they sought could be obtained
and
;
153
neither the State nor the
if
MunicipaHty would bear the cost of the necessary buildings, a space would suffice to meet
trifling rental for
With the display of
the manufactures of Kioto
and from
for the
collective exhibition
That
does the district good
it
am much
I
gather an amount of information, which, but
pleased,
it I
necessary charges.
all
would take weeks to accumulate.
it
is
certain.
On
translucent enamels
some thousands of pounds of European money have been spent in Japan, which would not have gone there had I not seen alone,
the one specimen amidst the articles of Kioto manufacture.
There
is
another curious fact connected with the open
The people
in large letters.
are requested to produce excellent
works, as the position of a nation character of
its
In the evening
handicraftsmen.
its
noticed
I
side a Shinto temple, of
The next morning
go
beacon-pans, arranged out-
the feast-day
it is
museum
also there
is
;
and
was
I
told
an ancient one.
fire is
to the
Governor of Kioto
museum
to
meet Mr. Kawase receive
to
The
us.
not a place open to the public, but a royal palace
is
containing
a
large
collection
Mikado, and prepared visit.
I
in
fires
which
that this practice of burning
the
greatly dependent upon the
is
manufactures, and upon the nature of the work
produced by each of
but
air
Here are boards bearing addresses printed
part of this display.
for his
of
antiquities
belonging
inspection, as he
is
now
to
the
here on a
In interest the objects here collected are second only to
those preserved
at
Nara.
I
have thus the opportunity of
in-
specting and handling a second large collection of Japanese an-
such as even the natives themselves do not know.
tiquities, is
It
intended, however, to exhibit these treasures to the public at
some
future time,
and a building
is
now being prepared
for their
reception.
In this collection, nothing pleases
specimens of lacquer-work, as these
manufacture
in
various
curator of the collection as regards
ages, tells
me more
than the various
illustrate
the state of the
and bear authentic
me
that
dates.
The
the finest gold lacquer,
workmanship, was made during a period of two hundred
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
154
years, beginning about three centuries since artistic
work was done
lacquer -worker and
to
its
it
were
artist
making the box,
lacquer -worker
In olden times the
prior to this time.
the
separate tray, or
or
individuals
At
"touchy" and
About
however, the
artist
finish"
upon
side
such
it
which characterises
three hundred years ago,
and the lacquer-worker became one, and then
was produced work of the highest mechanical
Ranged
the
period the drawing was
this
but lacked that
clever,
the best work of later times.
—
bowl, and giving
beautiful surface, while the artist painted
decoration as might be required.
five
but that the most
;
by
hundred years
excellence.
side,
we have specimens
old,
which are of a peculiarly
of lacquer-work over artistic
and
interesting character, others four hundred, others three hundred,
and specimens made only immediately before the revolution
Those that are
1868.
five
hundred years
old, or
in
more, are chiefly
works with black grounds, and low -toned polychromatic orna-
ments
dull
in
colours
;
burnt
red,
and with a
"
sienna,
broken
"
raw sienna, and
After carefully considering these works for some time
Thus
that which
than one hundred years old)
I
find
it
between lacquer-work of certain
possible readily to distinguish
great periods.
green
sage
gold outline.
we may
is
call
modern (being
easily distinguishable from
less
that
belonging to the middle period (which ranged from one to three
hundred years
since), while
characteristics from that
made
which
—
is ;
separated by obvious
and even between that
and that of
is
a specimen of what
of producing this particular lacquer has
long been
the secret of
the
its
my
lacquer
manufacture
is
and
I
;
—
but the art
lost.
I
also
Japan, but that
now unknown.
return from Japan industries,
in
called vellum
is
a lacquer having the colour of parchment
hear that a violet lacquer was once produced
Since
hundred years
five
a manifest difference.
is
In this collection there lacquer
older
is
four hundred years back
since there
again
this
I
have given much thought to
have been enabled to send out
material which has again brought about the production of purple
lacquer
;
thus a lost art has been revived.
ART, Here are in
Fig. 50.
50 and
"
51).
monstrance
One
Buddhist Monstranxe.
" of
the
was born
in
Roman
Catholic Church
of these contains the tooth of a bishop,
This was presented
the son of a Chinese emperor, in the year a.d. 622. stable," as this prince
155
specimens of an object which closely resembles
fine
character the
(Figs.
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
a stable.
a temple in Japan by Prince Mamayado, The name Mamayado means "door of a
to
A shows the
side view of the upper part.
while in another are small metallic lumps found in the ashes of a
cremated
priest.
been wise there burnt, in
and
if
The will
be
superstitious believe that
many
the
man
has
such lumps found when his body
not that there will be but few.
some cases formed almost
if
entirely of gold,
The monstrance and
is
is is
of exquisite
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
156
design and workmanship (and of these gold objects there are fine
specimens
the
in
museum), and
have a symboHcal
parts
their
much may be
significance from which
learned
but of this
;
shall
I
treat hereafter.
Here
is
an ink slab resting on a massive stand of pale blue
glass which T
am
assured
is
of Japanese manufacture and
hundred
years
interesting
found
which
;
one
is
most
the
collection
is
small room, where dresses,
crown, a
formed of
but
of the
part
in a
rude
a
old
felt,
were
of top-boots
pair
and a few other
things,
by the
great
brought
General Taiko from Corea, when he re-conquered that country about three
hundred years
since, are collected.
Of
dresses there are in this col-
lection
about twelve, some of which
are formed
of
brocaded
silk,
while
made of embroidered maOne or two of these I should
others are terials.
certainly regard as Chinese, while one is
of a character which
I
have hitherto
regarded as purely Japanese, the fabric
being hard and appearing to consist of parts joined together.
on Buddhist Monstrance.
Fig. 51.
Whether
clouds.
not
and
know it
;
is
this i
latter dress '
and consists x.
is
The
large
pattern
and bold,
^ a r j chiefly of dragons •
these dresses were manufactured in Corea
andj
we do
but under any circumstances they are of great interest certain that
Japan received many of
its
manufactures
from Corea, while some Japanese are of opinion that the Coreans also furnished
boots
the Chinese with most of their
formed of
of figured
felt,
felt,
as
such as
I
gold threads woven into
and
this
gold consists of
I
have just
saw it,
gilt
said,
There are
arts.
and several squares
One of the dresses has many modern Japanese fabrics,
at Nara.
like
paper, while the pattern
is
of scrolls
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
and anthemions such as now form the
157
figure " of
"
many
native
fabrics.
From crapes,
this
collection
and with what
have to describe
my
the fact of
The objects I
this
seeing
I
went
I
to see the process of printing
saw was much interested
process hereafter,
but as
;
it.
curio shops in Kioto deal almost exclusively in
and Corean wares, but
less
a
for
said to be
is
an inlaid bronze vase of
sum than
But what astonishes
Chinese
they ask such prices that
Corean cup
small
dollars, while
Chinese manufacture no
demanded.
for these
A
could purchase nothing.
worth two hundred
shall
now mention
can only
I
I
hundred pounds
six
me most
the price of a
is
is
little
teapot of dark red earth, in which are small specks of yellow-ochre colour.
The specimen shown me has
may have
it
hundred
for four
a fractured handle, hence
shillings,
while
if
were perfect
it
could not be sold for less than four times this sum.
I it
Specimens
having the yellow specks somewhat larger are worth about six pounds each, the latter being an imitation of the former but the ;
secret of production has been
In the evening to a
or
"
temple garden, tea-ceremony
prepared
in
"
went by
I
in
—
known
to but
invitation of the
order to see what
is
man
one
in
Governor of Kioto
called the "tea-service"
the cha-no-yu, which the Governor has had
a building set apart for this purpose.
saw, however,
I
only that part of the service peculiar to the hours o'clock.
each case.
five
In connexion with every large temple there
house appropriated to the performance of
one can engage the house
for this
this
and
six
a small
ceremony, and any
A
purpose.
is
similar house
is
attached to every large residence or yashiki.
Here, as
I
saw
it,
and as
paid professor of etiquette
is
it
is
performed
the host
;
but
if
at
the temples, a
friends are invited
by a man of high rank, he himself performs the part which the professor now takes. Only four guests besides the master should be present.
The room
in
which the service
is
held
is
being covered by four and a half mats (each mat three). feet
The house
is
entered by a hole or
small,
its floor
by window opening, two is
six feet
square, which, although level with the floor of the room,
is
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
158
Properly enacted,
about sixteen inches above the outer ground. the service,
and
is
host
me, begins at seven
tells
one o'clock
till
the exactness with which everything
ladle,
in
the morning,
in the following night.
great peculiarity of this tea-drinking ceremony consists
The in
my
continued
or whatever
particular way, set
particular part
down
A
done.
is
spoon, cup,
hold
of
in
a
and touched
in
a
in a particular place,
and everything
;
is
handled, has to be taken
is
done with the same strange
precision.
What
I
saw was part of the ceremony of
and part of the ceremony of is
simply a lesson
"
" thin
thick tea-drinking
;"
tea-drinking,"
but the whole
those laws of politeness, which were formerly
in
so rigidly exacted in every mansion and on every state occasion,
and which are aristocracy.
kept up
largely
still
and no servant entered the house master kindling the short,
the houses
in
Originally the ceremony was of a
doing everything
which
in
for the guests
took place
it
making the
boiling the water,
fire,
of the old
secret character,
but in later years
;
—
the
and, in
tea,
it
has
become a mere ceremony of an extremely fashionable character. One or two things in this service struck me as especially strange.
Thus, both host and guests knelt from the time they
entered the building
the time they
till
the master had to go to a
little
left
it
;
and even when
back room to fetch water, cups,
or whatever he might require, he shuffled on his knees to the slide
which served as a door, and then, having opened through the opening rose to his feet
the guests.
he was well on the other
till
but this he must not do while
;
The
chief guest, moreover,
company, and no word
uttered save
is
host during the service, be
demands everything but the particular is
:
it
if
a bowl, or the teapot.
on
his
in the
presence of
the spokesman for the
by the chief guest or the
ever so long.
at
The
chief guest also
he
;
which each request has to be made
arranged by the code of etiquette.
shuffles
shuffled
when he
thus he asks for tea, and for refreshments
moment
chief guest also asks
is
it,
side,
may
At opportune moments
the
look at the tea-caddy, a spoon,
Receiving the necessary permission, he
knees to the place where the object demanded
ART, is,
takes
it,
bows
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
159
to the ground, then rising, touches
his forehead
forehead with the object received, and begins to examine
his
Looking
at the teapot, he asks if
then opening
pound
after
;
it
and smelling the
it
is silver,
it
it
;
costs
per
to the next guest
and
makes a remark to the host which should, same time a compliment and a pun.
it.
who made
what the tea
tea,
which inquiries he passes
then
if
possible, be at the
After each of the guests
has duly inspected the object, the chief guest shuffles again across the floor and
returns
it
to
used
and
;
possession of
maker
the
some
which a Japanese manifests
pride
little
tea-box
little
is
put
preserved
;
and
I
in
Europe.
a silk bag, and then in a box, and
in
have seen
the
in
But many of the things most
something remarkable.
is
then in another bag, and then
in
is
by a celebrated
tea jar, a spoon, or a cup
esteemed by the Japanese would be unappreciated
One
object
after-
same manner.
on these occasions that the rare things of the household
It is
are
Object
place.
its
brought, examined, and returned in the
in
little
another box,
order that
in
it
be
rough stone-ware jars encased
a similar manner.
The two hours which
I
spent in observing the ceremony cha-
no-yu, were passed in the host making, and our sipping 'certain
kinds of as soot,
mixed
tea.
is
One
decoction, as thick as gruel, and
formed of tea-leaves reduced to the
into this batter-like condition.
This
is
finest
as bitter
powder, and
served as a loving
cup, all drinking from the same vessel in this case, politeness demands that each guest offer the cup to his neighbour in such a manner that he shall naturally drink from a different part of its ;
edge. I
learnt afterwards from
private matters
Mr. Sakata that at these meetings
are often discussed and secret plots concocted,
and that most of the revolutions of Japan have been planned
at
these secret gatherings.
In the
way
of manufactures,
I
have seen
in
Kioto the making
of much pottery, bronze-work, lacquer, and cloisonne
have also seen the weaving of
fabrics, the
ov\
porcelain.
I
printing of crapes, the
working of embroidery, and many other industries
;
and
I
am now
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
i6o
insight
getting a considerable
Japanese achieve spare for
one town, we pack up and
Our road
we
is
over the
hills at
see several small potteries in
In half an hour
made.
good road
the
into
Having spent
results.
we
means by which the as
start for
much time
as
can
I
Otsu on Lake Biwa.
the back of the hotel, and here
which a kind of Awata ware
is
reach a point at which an already
being improved, and here we have to walk while our
is
we could
jinrikishas are carried, for although
and
ride with ease,
although horses and oxen are passing with their burdens, a notice " carriages
saying that
are not allowed to pass here
must be
"
obeyed.
We
are soon, however, on a normal road which, at the end of
and then commands a view of
four miles crosses an elevation
Lake Biwa Lake of Geneva. At
beautiful
all
—
a sheet of water which reminds
this season the
me
of the
mountains surrounding
it
are
snow-clad.
After a journey of seven and a half miles,
town of Otsu, the only manufacture of which
From
teapots.
this
place
we is,
reach the I
little
am
told, silver
of
some two
we make an excursion
miles to a temple, from where a charming view of the lake
obtained, and here
Lake Biwa
From
I
may mention
are counted
this temple,
by Japanese, of which
perched high on a
appears to be about three miles sphere
I
is
that eight celebrated views of
in width,
hill,
and
this this
is
one.
end of the lake the clear atmo-
in
can just see the snow-clad mountains at the other end.
Although we had intended at Otsu, the
weather
is
to take
up our abode
for the night
so fine and the air so bracing that
we
continue our journey to the town of Ishib, twenty-two miles from Kioto.
Soon
after
we resume our journey we reach
which every one seems to be occupied silk
cords as they attach to fans,
About
three miles farther on
where scarcely anything
A
bottle gourd
is
is
is
tie
in the
a village in
manufacture of such
around lacquer boxes,
etc.
named Kusatsu,
a small town
sold but bottle gourds.
simply the indurated skin of a
fruit allied to
our cucumber and melon, but having an hour-glass shape. vessels are generally called
pilgrims' bottles.
The
Such
usual colour
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART, of these gourds
a dark rich brown, but here are
is
with black
are yellow mottled
same manner, while some
Of
some which
mottled
others orange
;
are almost red.
i6i
the
in
these gourds
got
I
samples.
We
now
the evening
most pleasant
I
am
a crash, and is
broken
to
my
cause of
Our
re-enter our vehicles.
is
One
on the roadside.
A
pieces.
mishap
little
coolies
but suddenly there
;
run well, and is
my
side of
come out of the
the linch-pin has
:
whose
coolie
jinrikisha
is
broken heartily joins
make
I
;
Occupying
difficulties.
wish to write
I
paper on the chair when
is
and
upon a Japanese table (which
floor,
rice. it
pos-
seat,
while the
or putting the
upon,
sit
overcome the
I
one
this
on the
have nothing to
I
however,
at last,
;
little
but this unexpected furniture rather increases
my
paper on which
comfortable
not
a hearty meal of
furnished in European style, for
in part
is
one chair
than removes
a pretty
at
Liebig's extract of meat, boiled eggs, bread, jam,
This hotel
am
Having brought a few European luxuries from
hotel.
Kioto, and being as hungry as a hunter,
sesses
I
the poor
in the laugh.
Arrived at Ishib, we take up our abode
Japanese
As
only causes amusement, and
incident
little
jinrikisha
moment's investigation reveals the
wheel, and the w^heel has rolled yards in front of us.
hurt this
a jerk and
is
difficulty
far
by
from
sitting
a small tray on legs of about
is
four inches in length)
and writing on the wooden seat of the
European
I
which he
chair. tells
While
me
is
one of a hundred that he bought
He
fourpence farthing.
good
write Mr. Sakata indulges in a cigarette,
also informs
but not being a smoker
;
I
me
in
Kioto
for
that these cigarettes are
can form no opinion of their
merits.
March
—We
Kamiji-yama,
for
and is
7.
rise
at
in Ise, a
6.40, and
town
universities are situated
in
;
by 8.15 are on our road
in ^^•hich
indeed,
the great Shinto shrines
much
some way connected with Shinto
express
it,
of the province of Ise or,
as
we Europeans
Shintoism.
The morning
is fine,
beautiful, snow-clad
and
for
some distance
mountains being
M
visible
the road
on either
is
very
side.
In
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
i62
about "
we reach
miles
five
"
vine baskets
the
These are
are made.
about them.
objects as in
I
in
nothing of special
is
should rather have expected to find such
I
here see
where
baskets formed of the
little
shoots of the westeria creeper, but there interest
Minakuchi,
of
village
Ramsgate than
the shops of Margate and
those of a Japanese town.
Crossing a ridge of mountains, and descending by
we
zigzags into a beautiful valley,
many
steep
main road
soon leave the
(the
great Tokaido), and turn to the right to run along the promontory
The scenery now becomes
of Ise.
less
and
interesting
less
and across the bay of Owari, are high
in the distance before us,
ranges of mountains, while behind us are also snow-clad
By
1.30 P.M.
we have reached
Hundreds
direction of Kioto,
the road, hence a
hour
lose
an hour
changing
in
of soldiers are passing along the road in the
and the
are found, but the
hills.
the small town of Saka-no-shita,
where we have luncheon, and here we jinrikishas.
but
;
men little
oflficers all drive.
At
last fresh vehicles
only agree to take us four miles on
will
delay occurs, and another
later a further
is lost.
By 6
P.M.
we have reached Tsu or Anotsu, the come forty-four miles
of the province of Ise, having
During the
latter
part of our journey nothing
chief
town
in the day.
very particular
has happened save the coming out of a linch-pin of Mr. Ishida's
when he broke the
carriage,
jinrikisha
and
rolled
out,
— an
ex-
perience precisely similar to mine of yesterday.
A
cook was engaged
when
his
services
were
first
When
could not cook.
Kioto
at
for this
wanted
it
is
the very genius that
be found ready made here sisted of five boiled
the
best
journey meals.
;
eggs,
of food which yet the
As
for
I
we want, in
the sad news he
rice
and make beefsteaks."
for beefsteaks are
My
rarely to
luncheon to-day con-
and jam, and
this
is
about
expect to have during most of
glorious air
wine and
Japan.
some
me
one of the jinrikisha-men (an
intelligent-looking person) " could boil eggs
This
but last night
was discovered that he
Mr. Sakita gave
also brought the glad tidings that
tour,
makes me thoroughly enjoy
spirits, I
my my
have neither seen nor tasted
I
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART, them
engaged
is
of two
who
pushing up
The jinrikisha-man who can make
month.
for over a
steaks
pulled
go with us
to
me
beef-
To-day he was one
to Tokio.
twenty miles, then he ran twenty-four miles,
and looking
hills
163
and here he
after everything,
is
as
fresh as a daisy,
me
In the evening Sakata presented relic, in
The
metal handle and a curved blade.
in warfare,
rise
at seven
In the morning
town of
little
of Japan the best paper-leather ^ ^
—
oil)
so closely resembles
—
morocco and
as
F'g.
formed
is
of a thick fibrous paper and an oxidisable
52.~crestof a Japanese Prince.
As
made.
here manufactured this material (which
kinds of leather
In
where
Inaki,
is
•'
'^
certain
still
and are soon on our way.
two hours we reach the all
ladies
being thrown at the victim while
attached to the owner by a chain.
damascened
52, consists of
crest. Fig.
by
This was used
four of these knives.
we
with a most interesting
the shape of a large curious knife, with bent
calf
as to deceive a
European expert, while other specimens bear but a
faint
resem-
blance to a tanned skin. In Japan leather
sparingly used
is
;
but this paper-leather
most extensively employed where we should use the
The
made
stout solid quality
into the
our market
is
made
chiefly in
to that district to live
leather- like on leather-like
at Inaki rarely, if ever, finds its
The
European market.
one
on both
is
thin
and
is
is is
and only stout and
generally
generally plain.
At Matsusaka, which we next burned down by insurrectionary
many houses have been farmers, who object to the
reach,
taxation with which they are burdened, and
may
fibrous
That of Tokio, however,
sides.
it
is
feared that the)-
continue their work of destruction, for they have declared
that unless their taxes are lowered they will destroy every in
way
Tokio by Ise men who have gone
whereas that here made
stamped, while that of Inaki
is
hide.
paper-leather which comes into
but this
;
side,
real
town
the country.
In another hour
manufacture of which
we is
pass through a that of
common
large village, the
sole
Here we
rest
flutes.
1
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
64
for a
few minutes
hot water
and
;
been sprinkled, but so
added that
By
of the flavouring material has been
little
we have got
2.30
charming
to a
little
Futamigaura, where we have
most lovely houses that
beyond the
have ever
I
conception
even
of
a
one of the
in
Our room is clean Dutchman, has perforated seen.
of an exquisitely beautiful bay window.
have never before seen
I
on the sea-
village
tiffin
panels of great beauty over the sliding partitions, and
of which
are offered
cannot distinguish any special flavour.
I
called
coast,
we
here, as a substitute for tea,
which pulverised red cabbage and salted plum have
in
I
am
in a
is
possessed
room the
like
and the balconies, gardens,
;
and entire belongings of the hotel are as lovely as the room which we
While is
in
sit.
tiffin is
being prepared we walk to the sea-shore, which
Here
about three hundred yards distant.
the sea are two
in
rocks about two or three hundred yards from the coast, the one rising to the height of about fifty feet, the other about
twenty
These rocks are connected together by large straw
ropes, from
which Shinto have been
At
ones.
pendent
tufts are
so joined, certain
— new
and
;
ropes
for
hundreds of years they times
at
replacing the
seasons of the year the sun
two
exactly between these
rocks,
feet.
is
old
seen to rise
and under the Shinto bands
of straw.
When it,
the sun thus rises pilgrims
and even now, although
age,
I
see one
standing
in
or
this
is
come
in
numbers
not the proper time for pilgrim-
two Japanese, with hands pressed together,
devout adoration of the orb of day.
just opposite the rocks
which are hundreds of
a
is
little
coins (the coins are nearly frogs are purchased from offered to the rising sun.
of the sacred
to worship
rocks,
torii,
the shore
number of small a half-penny). The
earthen frogs and a all
tenth parts of
a priest I
On
or gateway, and a small dais on
get
who
lives
near at hand, and are
some of these
such as pilgrims buy
frogs, in
and drawings
remembrance
of
their journey to this sacred spot.
Here, under the Shinto symbol, sun, while in
we have
Kioto and Kobe pans of
fire
the worship of the
were being burned at
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART, Shinto churches
among
tenets
its
On
;
our
way
165
thus the fact that Shinto embraces
fire
worship
apparent.
is
we passed many booths
to the hotel
the sale of shells, shell necklets, etc.
erected for
These booths are situated
amidst pine-trees which reach from the near mountains almost to the sea.
we reached
After luncheon,
in
one hour the
But
seen in Japan.
all
I
and
this
have yet
I
the towns in Ise are very superior to any
have hitherto noticed,
that
and best
prettiest
town, as regards the style and size of the houses, that
— even
to those of
Tokio or Kioto,
appears to have more towns, and a greater
province
population, than most of the provinces of Japan.
This town, called (yet
it
Furuichi
(old
market), w^e
pass
through
has temples and shrines of great moment), and go on to
Kamiji-yama, a town
which the Holy of Holies of the Shinto
in
church, and the great Shinto university are situated.
Although as a town Kamiji-yama as Furuichi,
My
it is
escort
dissatisfied, as
But
houses.
is
not quite so interesting
a prosperous and flourishing place.
now select an hotel with which I am somewhat we have passed many much more beautiful tea-
my guide
tells
me
that those houses which
as hotels are really places set apart for the
dances peculiar to the town,
recompense
We
the
regarded
performance of certain
amusement seems
to
be a
for the fatigues of pilgrimage.
soon reach the entrance of a sacred grove where we are
met by a to the
—
I
priest
and two laymen who are
holy places
;
but
we
to be our conductors
are at once told that no one can
go
within the temple enclosure unless sent as a messenger from the
Mikado of
to
trees,
pray for his people. or rather
We
enter the magnificent grove
the broad well-kept
pathway which leads
through a small dense forest of immense cryptomerias. a tree which actually measures twelve feet six feet in circumference) right
is
six feet
this river a
way
is
at the other side
Thames
reminds
made, broad and with
Here
is
diameter (thirty-
from the ground.
a river two-thirds the width of the
and with a bank which
To
at
in
steps.
at
me
On
our
Cookham,
of Cliefden.
Here we are
1
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
66
by the
told
to wash,
priest
no one can approach the sacred
as
shrines unless he has here performed
We
his ablutions.
go to
the water, and after rinsing our hands are ordered to wash the
To do
mouth.
hand
is
to lade water from the river
five o'clock
the rays of the sun pass brightly through
;
The
the trees, and tip the distant hills with glory.
and
soft,
way
;
on two steps
closed
On
and the sky
is
We
blue and bright.
air
is
balmy
soon reach a gate-
simple yet beautiful, formed of pure clean pine-wood and
raised is
by the
This done, we go up the lovely avenue.
as a ladle.
It
we have
this,
by a
but while the gates are open, the opening
;
manner of
large white curtain cut in the
Shinto.
the steps are hundreds of small coins and papers in which
money
is
We
wrapped.
make our offering to made by most
larger than that
the temple, and as
we may look
the curtain aside in order that
behind, but
it
is
a
little
of the Japanese, the priest draws into the enclosure
see only closed pine-wood gates with strong brass
I
bindings.
We
now standing
are
greatest possible interest
in front of a ;
series of buildings of the
and few shrines
the world have en-
in
joyed an unbroken celebrity equal with that of the temple before
Every building
ground every twenty-one years Built eighteen
us.
has been absolutely razed to the
in this enclosure
more than eighteen
for
hundred and eighty-one years
since,
centuries.
they have been
completely destroyed and rebuilt and destroyed and rebuilt during this
period, but
building
is
every block
and every
in
pillar
the
present
the exact counterpart of those in the building erected
eighteen hundred and eighty-one years since
—
this destroying
and
rebuilding securing a perpetual youth to the shrine (Fig. 53).
The reflects
great symbol of Shinto
our image,
so,
is
a mirror
symbolically, Shinto
;
is
for,
just as a mirror
considered to reveal
our innermost actions, or to reveal our innermost heart.
I
am
told
that in the central buildings within the enclosure, at the entrance
of which in
we
stand,
order that
worshipped
is
preserved a mirror sent
man might
at this
down from heaven
therein see himself, and that the
great shrine
is
the
first
man
—
god
the Japanese
ART,
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
167
Adam. But the educated classes now think that this so-called man " was either a Chinese or a Mongolian. We now walk to the side of the temple enclosure and from
" first
Fig.
53.— The Sacred Shinto Shrine of Kamiji-ya.ma in
buildings,
and of the
The temple by
enclosed
the
within
being
height,
and
horizontal
(Fig, 54), but
to see from
Yonder,
mound
or shrines are
four
courts,
other,
the
bounded
fence, or wall,
of
ground get some idea of the nature of the railings, or walls, b}- which they are enclosed.
elevated
slightly
one outer
by a wooden
about ten
feet in
consisting
chiefl}-
planks of wood the others
my present
however,
is
fail
I
position.
a
high
of earth, and for this
immediately make. that the second fence alternate
Ise.
Here is
I
I
see
of a very open construction, consisting of
short and long circular uprights, with
members connecting them our ordinary wooden fence,
two horizontal
more
like
consisting of square uprights, with
two
(Fig. 55)
;
that the third
is
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
t68
horizontal
members
(Fig. 5 6)
while the fourth, and last consists of uprights and staves
;
to
which square -topped
55.— Second Fen'Ce at the Great Shinto Shrine.
slightly separated (Fig. 57).
are
nailed
somewhat narrowed, and thus
closely juxtaposed, the tops being
Fig.
staves
Third Fence at the Great Shinto Shrine.
Fig. 56.
These fences are
all
formed of clean
pine-wood, having neither paint nor lacquer upon them.
From our vantage ground we of which the centre one
is
largest,
can see
five
buildings
being arranged
in
;
three,
a row at the
back of the inner court, while the other two stand in front of the
and larger building, and
central
are connected
way.
,v
are
by a
The two entirely
sort of covered
latter buildings
separate
from
the
other three, the innermost of the
two being situated ary of the alike Fig. 57.— Fourth
or Inner Fence at the
Great Shinto Shrine.
This encloses the central court, at the end of which stands the huilding containing the mirror sent down from
the
inner
bound-
at the court.
All
have thatched roofs with chief
continued
manner
;
supporting
through
members
in a curious
while on the ridge rests
heaven.
a series of spindle -like
These
I
am
told indicate the rank of a Shinto temple.
bodies. It is in
the central building at the back of the court that the mirror sent
down from heaven
is
preserved.
This building, at a height of
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART, about
from
feet
five
ground,
the
169
surrounded by a covered
is
balcony, approached by a central staircase.
To
a large portion of the Japanese these buildings are the
and
most sacred
Shinto was the religion
most interesting of any
the
religion of old Japan,
and
the
in
world.
has always been the
it
now it is once again the declared of the country. To this shrine for nearly two millions have made pilgrimages and in this un-
of the Mikado, while
national religion
thousand years
;
interrupted succession of
glory there
its
something singularly
is
impressive.
Having
left
grove we walk through a bazaar
the sacred
consisting of booths arranged under overhanging trees, where sorts of trifles
to
my
Babel, where eloquence
in
their
lavishly
is
press their wares
all
manner.
Amongst
carving of the god
upon
us,
is
with sale.
none are rude or offensive purchases
small
other
visitor,
here offered for
Daikoku, so small that
husk of one grain of
it is
In another husk
rice.
gods Daikoku and Yebisu
are in a very
expended on every
buy what
to
sitting side
by
carried on
is
We
Japanese experience.
him
the view of inducing
But while
Here touting
are offered for sale.
new
to an extent
all
I
I
bought the two
When
side.
bought a
enclosed in the
seen through
a magnifying glass they are almost as perfect as a pair of the
gods an inch and a half After dinner
we
which Kamiji-yama
We
house. three of
its
height which
is
celebrated,
sides there for
is
here
also procured.
I
one of the dances
forth to see
here enter a large
from the room, centre,
in
sallied
and soon reached the dancing-
room almost square
the roof
from the centre of the room. strips of white, red, light blue,
is
it
The
much
calico frieze of the crest of the
crosses that end of the
and upon
this
we
lower than in the
divide this part, walls are
hung with
same width
it is
room where sit,
there
is
less,
vertical cloth,
margined above
as the coloured strips,
form of a cart-wheel.
are asked to
more or
dark blue, and green cotton
each strip being about ten inches wide, while
by a white
but around
;
a sort of passage, although not cut off
and columns which support
and bearing a
for
A
long carpet
no passage-like space,
while running throughout the
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE.
I70
length of the central portion of the room at the right and
two long carpets, on each of which
and
instruments
are
left
who
three girls
play
Lanterns hang from the ceiling of the
sing.
passage-like space, and candles on
commence
tall
As
there in the middle of the room.
the lanterns around
rest
candlesticks stand here and
the music and singing begin
to ascend, while the floor of this
passage-like part also rises to the height of about one foot above
former
its
the room,
This raised
level.
how
railing got there, or I
dais,
instantly bordered
is
do not know,
for
it
got
which surrounds three sides of
by a low
how
but
railing,
that
away when the dance was
over,
appeared both to come and to disappear
it
instantaneously.
we
Before each of us as
sit,
and placed on a
which symbolises that in
it is
is
cord of a particular sort and coloured and of the
slice gift
"
intended as a
The packet placed
ear fish."
;
and a
device,
in
tied with
is
piece of
little
a small
dried
front of us as a
but on each tray there
is
cakes shaped like the wheel-like crest which
little
The
decorates the frieze around the room.
same
gift
attached
is
is
device
little
here remark that
furnished with a
paper, to which
folded
contains the words of the song
also a pile of
We may
a present.
Japan, every object which
stand,
little
a packet tied round with red string and bearing the
little
bridge over which
bear
lanterns
we had
the
to pass to
reach this dancing-room has a large half-wheel as the balcony.
The
lanterns
the platform with
having been raised nearly to the its
marginal
rail
being
enter almost behind us to the right and to the
slowly and solemnly facing us.
till
The dancing
they meet consists
in
ceiling,
in position, the
the
left,
and
dancers
and march
centre of the aisle
almost exclusively of graceful
motions of the hands, the body only assuming a slight swing, while the feet origin,
and
is
move but
little if
at
all.
This dance
is
of ancient
not to be seen in any other town in the country.
After the dance has been continued for about
five
or seven
minutes, the dancing girls slowly march out as they entered, the
music is
over.
girls
leave,
the dais sinks, the lanterns descend
and
all
ART,
AND ART MANVFA CTURES.
CHAPTER Tidings of rebellion of wealth and
We
now
1
7
VII.
— Ise — Yokkaichi — Manufactures of Nagoya— Comparative estimates — Castle of Seto — Sidsuoka— Fujiyama— Return Yokohama. to
skill
that the province of
learn
Satsuma
in
is
open revolt
against the Government, while the neighbouring county of Hiego
has taken up arms with the view of expelling the hateful foreigner
from the country, and that hard fighting from Hiego said
with
perfectly
my
Both the gentlemen who form
districts.
;
and
I
remember
much warmth,
happy
"
"
the other, and no one
This opinion
is
is
in it
both
seems,
came we were
pe^'fccily), "
striving to get an
and
all
were
advantage over
happy."
that of one who, while
with but small pay, would of considerable
escort are,
foreigner
before the
is
going on
that a few days since Mr. Sakata
(emphasizing the word
now each
contented, while
is
now
a
Government
officer
have been a samurai or fighting
and whose
been
has
man
a
great
sufferer
through the destruction of the baronial system.
The
feelings
of
my we
issued since classes
position,
have just been embittered by an
escort left
father
have protested against the excessive taxation imposed
upon them, the Government have resolved the land,
of
all
edict,
Tokio, which states that as the agricultural
to reduce the taxes
and have consequently determined
Government
officials
by
on
to lower the salaries
one-third, so
as
to
render this
reduction of taxes possible.
While
I
am
sure
I
can trust both Ishida and Sakata, one
cannot help wondering what
may happen
the country seems ripe for rebellion
is
next.
certain
;
and
That much of I
confess that
1
I
JAPAN
72
ITS
:
AR CHITE CTURE, my
have some sympathy with
Japanese companions
their
in
we have gained
dishke to the intrusion of the foreigner, for while
in the way of art knowledge by the opening of Japan to and although we have given telegraphs and a hundred other
much us,
things in return,
useful
we have done much
make
to
a
happy
people unhappy, a satisfied people dissatisfied, and a contented people avaricious
;
while
the
monuments which
beautiful
are
everywhere going to decay would have been preserved and cared for
had not European ideas been spread throughout the country.
At
moment Japan
present
the
in
is
a trying position.
has overthrown a system which has worked while
time
It
well for centuries,
has not yet had time to reap the advantages which
it
accrue from the
will
people, unfortunately
for
new
state of things.
Besides
this,
in
the
themselves, have taken to luxuries of
which they knew nothing before the opening of the country to foreign visitors,
and that to such an extent that
some years past have been greatly
Thus the country
As an
is
being positively drained of
illustration of the
come before my own notice. Government service tells me that
has
it
its
wealth.
change which many have experienced
through the altered state of things,
what
their imports for
excess of their exports.
in
may mention
I
A
a case that
gentleman who
his salary
is
now
is
the
in
one-eighth of
would have been under the old feudal system, while
things have increased amazingly in price since the opening of the
country to the foreigner.
my
When
descending Mount Koya-zan
boots,
and adopt the Japanese straw shoes.
the value of these sandals which use,
I
I
This led
abandon
me
had constantly seen the
pair.
When
I
to ask coolies
— they
are very dear
sold for a halfpenny,"
;
evening
"
No
!
they are not cheap
can remember when eighty pairs were
and then the matter was put
These poor men as they
I
half-
expressed astonishment at the lowness
of the price one of the party exclaimed,
and
to
and the answer was that they cost eight-tenths of a
penny per
way.
was compelled
to
me
in this
get but threepence a day for dragging
us,
wear out two pairs of sandals between morning and
in so doing,
one-fourth of their entire income
is
expended
ART, in
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
purchasing the necessary protection for their
should regard
our income
it
as very serious
We
boots.
in
and nobles,
old samurai
Assuredly we
feet.
we had to spend a quarter of now understand the enormous the circumstances of some of the
if
can
change which has taken place
173
in
not only have their incomes been
for
money is so much lessened, money one-eighth of what it
materially reduced, but the value of that
men whose income
is
now
in
formerly was are practically not a twentieth part as rich as they
would have been under the old
morning we
In, the
at the opposite
state of things.
set out to see
end of the town.
another great Shinto shrine
It is in
many
respects like the one
which we saw yesterday. of enclosures and the
Both appear to have the same number same form of palings bounding the courts,
but the arrangement of the buildings this
to the outer court,
and from
sacred enclosures beyond.
But
trees.
we can
this
I
Like the other,
different.
is
surrounded by beautiful
also
is
We
admitted
are
see through to the
more
see nothing calling for special
notice.
Leaving Kamiji-yama, we retrace our steps along the great
promontory of
many
Ise,
and
in
houses have been
After a time are made,
we
two hours reach the town where so
by
destroyed
agricultural
insurgents.
pass through the village where flutes and whistles
and then another about a mile long, devoted entirely to
the manufacture of paper leathers.
My
request for permission to
was met by the rejoinder that
see the process of manufacture
it
would take fourteen months to see any one sheet of leather-paper made.
The
fact
is
that in these Japanese villages everything
is
on so
small a scale that the consecutive processes can rarely be seen at
the same time.
who
the potter glazes
it,
Division of labour "
throws
"
the
is
but
little
understood, and
clay generally turns
and not unfrequently decorates
it
;
it,
bakes
it,
and other manufac-
tures are conducted in a like way.
While
this
method of working renders the study of Japanese
industries difficult,
who makes
his
it
yet secures
many
advantages, for the potter
wares entirely with his own hands has a pride and
JAPAN
174
an
interest in them,
who
which no one who simply
through
"
threw
produced
stages
all its
I
he has watched
;
he has nursed
;
that he could to give to
character.
by the one man
entirely
of child that he loves
sort
"
little
There
development
and he has done
interest, the satisfaction
much
as
is
manifested by the maker in completing a
little
kind when
this
pride in Japan
cup, a lacquer box, if
the work
artists
contem-
a sheet of leather-paper, or even a pair of chop-sticks,
be but excellent, as there plating an
in
painting
historical
craftsman in Japan
is
may
;
one of our great
and by perfect work any handi-
attain to the celebrity enjoyed here
Landseer, a Turner, or an
Owen
place which
waterproof paper
and
still
more
excellent.
a small village in which
is
made, such as the peasants use
rain coats,
In the street
man
while a
reach
"
and such as furnish the
for wrappers,
aprons
"
of the jin-
Here also are made the mushroom-like hats of the coolies
rikisha.
one
is
we
by a
Jones, and the fame supplies a
stimulus for the production of work
The next
Each him a
beauty of form and perfection of
it
have viewed, wnth no
signing the completed work.
to
is
its
tenderly,
it
depicted on the countenance of a manufacturer of
capes,
the clay,
the biscuit, or decorated the ware, could have.
fired
piece of ware
all
ITS ARCHITECTURE.
:
we
carried
see some mounted travellers, two women and by one horse, the man squatting on its back,
—
woman was suspended
in
a sort of scale at each side.
Travellers here generally ride, while in
all
other parts that
I
have
visited they almost invariably walk.
Here than
in
in
seem prosperous.
Ise things
times three, stories in height.
having the gables I
The houses
They
are also differently constructed,
in all cases directed
have noticed
in
this
province
towards the
broadest parts,
two cases the
may
so express myself (Fig.
effect of the
5
street-lamps,
across at their
made 8)
;
but
of in
small
one or
lamps has been marred by a second
rough roof being placed over the weather.
feet
and with roofs most carefully
tiles, if I
street.
some grand
formed wholly of wood, with lanterns three
wooden
are larger
any other part of Japan, and are usually of two, and some-
first
to
protect
it
from the
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
We
see nothing
the town for which
way has been
more
we
to interest us
we reached Yokkaichi,
till
Our road
are making.
at
now paddy
some recent
left
owing
the
to
day we can only
have
On
sea.
mountains,
are snow-clad
but
fields,
time
been reclaimed from the our
the
for nearly all
over a sandy plain which, though
must
•75
dulness of the just
make
out
Fig. 59.— Banko Teapot.
the hills over the bay of Owari at the right.
We
arrive
at
Yokkaichi,
the
Banko potteries, at Fig. 58.— Lamp-post. P.M., having come rather over 6.35 " Our coolie who can make beefsteaks " forty miles in the day. has run with us the whole distance that we have travelled from seat
Kioto, and yet he appears in no
Yokkaichi
of
way
exhausted.
province
of
features of the country are lost, for
we
is
another province. special
in
the
The
Ise,
but here the special
are close on the borders of
factories here are
characteristic of the wares
made by
the
as usual small.
of this town
the pinching of the clay between the
and not by any process of
Banko wares
"
is
thumb and
throwing" on the wheel
The
that they are finger,
(Fig. 59).
are generally unglazed, and the earth of which
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
176
made
they are
most commonly of a
is
soft Portland-stone colour
;
yet objects of dull salmon-red, of white, and of dark brown, are occasionally produced.
After a long round of the potteries, with which
was much
I
we started for Owari. When three miles on the road we came to a pottery owned by a man whose father re-invented Banko ware, and in about three miles more we enter the rather large Here we see a town of Kuwana through a large bronze torii. Banko wares common but one make of potters who number interested,
;
This pumice stone
from Idsu.
sometimes
is
sometimes
Kuwana
perhaps
to
add
that
all
the
no way be comparable
in
slabs,
and in.
there are one or two leading potters
and a great many small ones, but probably
form of
in the
form of pots, such as the Japanese grow flowers
in the
In this town of
ought
pumice stone brought
specialty of vitreous painting on
makes a
make
pottery
largest size
in
same
the
wares.
here
I
would
with the smallest
in
Great Britain.
We
left
Kuwana by
boat, being
some delay
a river, and then after
rowed about
five
miles along
set off in jinrikishas for
Nagoya,
distant about seventeen miles from our landing-place.
Nagoya
in
Owari
important manufacturing
one of the
is
towns of Japan, and besides
its
manufactures
Here are made the low-toned
shops.
pilgrims carry their
has
many
prints
in
it
calico
luggage, and here also
little
is
of the cloisonne (or shippo) manufacture, both on porcelain with the interstices cabinets, iron -like
much bronze surface
the chief seat
metal, and on
with lacquer.
Earthenware
ware, that curious porcelain which has an
and a gold
metal -work, and that
filled
curio
which
soft
Damascened
resembling
pattern
-baked crackle-ware which
externally with chequered lacquer, are
made
here.
is
covered
Nagoya
also
stands in the centre of the great Owari pottery districts.
Near the thing
I
curio shops
is
a temple with a gate richer than any-
have hitherto seen (Figs. 60, 61).
Its
uprights and cross-
beams, as well as the panels, are carved with elaborate ornament
and even on the two varies.
sides of each structural
member
;
the pattern
ART, Before
had
I
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
risen
177
the next morning the curio dealers had
invaded the hotel, and spread their wares over the floors of each
unoccupied room. that
This
is
a
common
practice here
and
;
made, when
a percentage to
the
Panel Temple Details of Gateway to Temple
Enlarged view of ornament on central upright c,
of horizontal
;
b,
of lattice
;
member.
I
Nagoya.
men had been
I
found but
little
to
of interest,
received visits from the governor of Nagoya,
to dine with
in
of Carved
Gateway of
could not well help inspecting their things, yet
amidst their collections I
in
for
After these
forded.
poor such trouble,
given
the accommodation af-
Nagoya.
in
is
landlord
Fig. 61. ^Portion
Fig. 60.
believe
paid for the privilege of thus displaying goods, unless
little is
sales are
a.
I
him
in
the evening, and
who asked me
from Dr. Roretz,
whom
I
recognised as one of our party at the luncheon in Tokio given to the Austrian is
Princes
by the
secretaries of legation.
Dr, Roretz
physician to a large hospital established here for the cure of
He is the nephew of Austrian minister at Tokio. During my stay in Nagoya joined me in my excursions, and gave me much valuable aid. diseases
by European
treatment.
N
the
he
JAPAN: TTS ARCHITECTURE.
178
Having
Shippo company's works, and a
great
the
visited
some
pottery of
we went
interest,
to see bronze-makers, various
metal-workers, and one calico printer. In
Roritz
evening Dr.
the
takes
us
to
enormous
an
see
earthenware head of a Dai-butz, which stands on a waste piece of
made
ground near a temple.
This
join underneath the hair,
and another underneath the
is
There
in three parts.
is
a
chin, but the
central part measures five feet in height.
The
governor's dinner was given in a suburban hotel where
the
garden was illuminated by lanterns, and
the
dinner was.
the
latter, like
There
Besides
the
is
Roman
my
two Japanese
others
are
present
four
umbra, simply listening to what
Japan a
in
governor and
and
vice-governor
the
friends,
much
too
little
that
all
I
have been sent ostensibly simply recorded
my
my
for
doings
officer
said.
officers
I
who
some cases
protection have in
and when no Government
;
the
being present to
Those Government
say and do.
is
—
of the spy system, for
can scarcely go anywhere without some report
most sumptuous
officer
is
present Ishida's pocket-book does good service in their stead.
we
In the morning
Seto ture
— one
— where
we
mentioned
to the
some one
to
agreeable district lost
;
start
on an excursion to the
little
town of
of the chief seats of the Owari porcelain manufac-
met by
are
the
Last
night
I
governor of Nagoya that the system of having
record
all
my
acts
and movements was scarcely
so he promised that no
should accompany
no time
governor.
in letting us
me
Government
officer
from
his
to Seto, yet the governor of Seto
know
that he had been informed of our
coming by the governor of Nagoya.
This communication could
have been made only by a messenger being despatched before our leaving Nagoya
;
the governor of
Nagoya keeps
to the letter
of his promise, as he does not send any one with us to the pottery district,
but he takes care that some one shall do the spying.
Here we
are in the very midst of the blue-and-white porcelain
manufactures of Japan
;
but
in
Seto
many wares
besides those which especially characterise the district.
are
made
Among
these are Celadon on white porcelain ground, dark rich purple-blue,
ART, the
royal
Satsuma
earth.
like
The
AND ART MANUFACTURES. of
blue
and
Worcester,
undecorated
makes me
inspection of these potteries
difficulties
attend at the opening of every fresh kiln.
man produces To-day
I
who
Thus
all
are invited to
the wares which
are generally sold as soon as they are made.
found that some of the best potters
few pieces, and
those
difficulty, for
Nagoya
to be painted.
It
a
is
district
common
" wasters."
chiefly
much
another
one
of
more the
feel still
of the best
Seto had
in
many had
not even one specimen of their work to .show, while
but
vases
which beset the path of a student of Japanese manu-
factures, for the potters sell chiefly to dealers
a
179
There
Seto ware
is
practice to have wares which are
decorated
in
The
another.
made
then
question
also
is
taken to
in
arises
:
Are we to regard an elaborately painted vase which has been made in Seto and painted in Tokio as of Seto or Tokio manufacture ? Such questions as these constantly perplex the student of Japanese Keramics
;
and
wares from the potter and
we
in
as
the
sells
decorator
them
generally buys
as of his
England frequently mistake the
the
own manufacture,
locality in wliich the
wares
are made.
But men who are merely makers, and decorators who are merely decorators,
must
rather
be regarded as
money-makers, than as potters such I
may
here remark, that
whatever, though
no
A
position.
skilled
in
as the
merchants, or
Japanese esteem
:
and
Japan the merchant has no status
he be rich as
Money
Croesus.
alone buys
prince will spend hours in conversation with a
workman, and
will
receive
him
respectfully at his yashiki,
but the richest merchant would be beneath his notice.
Who
shall
say that the Japanese are imperfectly civilised
when they thus pay homage to wealth?
Is
to learning
and
skill,
not their civilisation, rather, higher than
Surely they here set an example to us which to follow
!
and prefer these ours?
we should do
well
Here we worship wealth, while we pass unnoticed the
handicraftsman, however great his knowledge or subtle his work yet too often the merchant employing the
;
handicraftsman has
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
i8o
secured
by
gains
his
acts of
which he ought to be ashamed,
and which can only result in the degradation of his nature. cannot help thinking that the Japanese are right
man who can make
the
charming
a
beautiful
of goods
seller
for while the
;
regarding
in
a lovely
a
cabinet,
as a being superior to the
fabric, or a perfect netsuki
mere buyer and
pot,
I
one devotes
his
mere money-making, the other ennobles matter
best energies to
by the impress of his mind, love, intelligence, and skill for unless the work results from intelligence, skill, and love, it cannot be ;
regarded as a noble production.
There
a vast difference between toil undergone for the sake
is
of mere money-making, and the production of the most perfect
works of which man the
great
No
capable.
is
mitid
of
Much
of the work done
while he
artist
thought of gain enters the
engaged upon
is
workman only thought has been how
despicable, because his
by the
British
mind
work.
his
is
positively
to
make
or body.
the
But the
most mone}' with the
least exertion of
loving, painstaking toil
which the Japanese bestow upon so many
of their productions
the
actually ennobling
is
workman
rises necessarily far
Here,
Seto are
in
made
and by such labour
;
above the mere moneyed man. the shapes for the doiso7ini on
all
porcelain manufacture, certain imitations of lustre
wares,
large
number
and many
other things
of goods for
for the export trade.
I
home consumption,
have to-day bought
sachi bottle, such as the peasantry
four rin and eight mo.
half,
its
quarter,
and
would
at
use,
its
;
new coinage
part of the old
is
Seto a
and
for
it
I
paid
thus they have the dollar with
hundredth
part, or cent
being worth about a half-penny of our money. this
many common
as well as
For some time past the Japanese have
adopted the American coinage its
;
Satsuma ware, buff
indeed, Seto produces a
;
— each
cent
But mixed with
thus elliptical 'coins worth
eight-tenths of a half-penny, and circular coins worth one-tenth of a half-penny, are this
country.
still
as
common
in
Japan as half-pence are
Formerly iron coins were
in
in
use of the value of
one-hundredth of the cent, although these are now withdrawn from circulation.
I
succeeded
in getting a
few pennysworth during
AR T, A AW ART MANUFA CTURES. my
journey
and
;
day quotations are given
to this
in these coins, just as
1
for
8
some goods
our Manchester manufacturers quote eighths
and sixteenths of a penny. In this old rin
;
much to
money
make one mo, and :
in
mo make
cent, ten
one
use during the baronial age coins of
smaller value than even these, but such coins seem entirely
There were coins called
have disappeared.
shi
make one
ten rin
but there were also
shi,
of which ten
there were also kotsu, of which ten
made one
thus there was a coin worth a half-penny, another worth the
tenth part of a half-penny, another worth the hundredth of a half-
The
penny, and another worth the thousandth of a half-penny. sachi bottle which
I
purchased to-day
will
be seen to have cost
something under a farthing.
On
we had nothing but
the following morning
delays.
It
was half-past nine before Mr. Ishida got back from the Govern-
ment House, and
I
then learn that there was some difficulty about
our getting to see the military
castle,
as
is
it
under the control of a
commander, and not of the governor of the town, who
had invited us to see
it.
Mr. Ishida has brought the bad tidings that an insurrection has
now broken
out in the north of Japan, and that the Imperial
troops, Vvhile gaining the
mastery
we have
province of Suruga
to pass through
Satsuma, have to face new
me most
But what concerns
troubles in other quarters. fact that the
in
it
is
in a
most unsettled
is
the
state, as
order to continue our projected
in
To-morrow we are to have exact news from the governor, but should we not be able to proceed, we shall have to return to Kioto (from which we are ninety miles distant by the nearest road), going thence to Kobe by railway, and on to Yokohama by sea. We may, however, catch a steamer which occasionally land journey.
calls at
a town only ten miles distant from here
that things are not so
On
bad as they are reported
our return to the hotel,
waiting
to
reached
its
we found
conduct us to the castle
;
a
but
;
I
can only hope
to be.
Government
officer
although we soon
massive gates, we had to put up with most tedious
delays before
we were allowed
to pass them.
1
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
82
At
we
last
are inside the walls,
rooms which have Uyeno,
when we
similar
to
the
are
shown
beautiful
into
two
temple of
Tokio, and which are said to be of Corean design.
in
There are here partitions
ceilings
above the movable
also,
slides
which form the
between the rooms, some magnificent wood carvings
Fig. 62.
— WooD-CAKViNG bv
Hidari Zingokd.
Preserved
in the Castle at
Nagoya.
of flowers and birds, which arc coloured in a subdued and delicate
manner
While these screens are pierced and carved
(Fig. 62).
on both
both faces are yet essentially different
sides,
parts are arranged with such side help, instead
consummate
skill,
and the
;
that those on one
These
of mar, the general effect of the other.
works are by one of the most celebrated wood-carvers that Japan ever had.
hundred
His name
\\as Hidari Zingoro,
years
since.
governor of the
castle,
and he
Through the kindness I
lived about three
of
the
military
have since been able to procure photo-
graphs of these magnificent works.
The immense towers castles that
I
have seen
than a Japanese look. palace
in
Dresden
;
of this in
reminds
It
perhaps
castle, like
Japan, have to
it
is
me
those of the other
me
also
a Chinese
of the
rather
Japanese
only the green roof that does
so,
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
immense towers
for here the coverings of the
size of the
towers
Of
are copper.
the
could have formed no idea from a distance
I
and they seem as strong as they could
183
be accommodated
Hundreds of
are great.
on each
floor,
openings the entire surrounding country
;
soldiers
and from the window is
Curious
surveyed.
wooden
charts, fixed at the various openings, are so
arranged that
the eye
may
any place
follow lines indicating the position of
for
miles round.
From what
have seen
I
in tlie last
that there are hindrances to an
countries
which Japan
remove.
It is
have paid
for
now
will,
few days
increased
for
its
own
sake, have
pretty clear that out of the
certain
objects four parties
begin to think
I
commerce with
foreign to
shortl}'
money which
have had
1
be feed.
to
The Japanese servant must have his percentage the Government the officer who accompanies us demands his share of the spoil gentleman who packs and forwards the goods, although paid for ;
;
must have something
his work,
things safely
;
and
be a
profit
fair
gards the English
them most
to a guild of
merchants such a sum as would
on the transaction.
Japan cannot hope
to I
Until
this
all
become a great mercantile
is
removed
As
nation.
can positively say that such a method
objectionable, and
ment of business. Another great
encourage him to pack the
the goods have been bought direct from the
if
maker he must pay
to
likely to cause
is
difficulty lies
to
a serious curtail-
the fact that
in
re-
is
all
things here
are on a small scale, and the time needed for visiting the numer-
ous
little
factories
country that
I
am
is
greater than any exporter can give.
No
aware of has ever become a great mercantile
nation until the manufacturer and the exporter have been brought together.
When
our broad-cloth and
towns, and here
sum.
To
in
stuff,
little
trifling
manufacturers brought their
and thus the merchant could by one
certain days (market days), see the
in
the larger
each cottager could hire a room for a
these piece halls the
few lengths of
made
our dress stuffs were
cottages, what were called Piece Halls were built
whole produce of the
visit,
on
district.
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
84
1
while the manufacturers ascertained the prices which goods were
Japanese would but establish,
If the
fetching.
positions, such
markets
the produce of
for
central
in certain
commerce
districts, their
would be largely extended. was 3.15
It
Mino
to the
P.M. before
we could
on our excursion
start to-day
Potteries, a five hours' journey.
was dark before
It
we reached our resting-place at Tazimi. The next morning we were off by 7.30 to the potteries, taking Ichi-no-kura, where the better class of Mino wares are made, first This village
in order.
Tazimi by foot-road jinrikisha road to
it,
is
about two and a half miles distant from
mountains
over the
which
said to be but
is
but as
;
little
there
is
we
longer,
a
settle
we have a hard day before us. It turns out that a mountain spur has to be rounded before we can reach Ichi-no-
to drive, for
kura, is
and an hour and a half
situated on
two
The
spent in reaching
sides of a valley
just as the potteries of Seto
Japan seem
is
to be situated
do
a
;
pottery district
mud
exteriors which rise
their
wares
first
its
public kilns.
of
inspected the potteries on the side of the
Mino alone hill
dividing
Here we found potters making blue
kinds, Japanese tea-cups
and nicely decorated.
connected with any pottery,
like those
of Banko, sachi cups
and other things, some being well
Here we
who
also found decorators, not
are paid for
any work that they
may do, and who often purchase plain wares to decorate and
On make
the other side of the valley are
some
excellent potters
sell.
who
blue and white wares of great delicacy, and dishes in the
form of bent Nelumbium leaves. tricity in its
In
estimated
fifty kilns.
and white wares, earthen teapots
many
The province
is
and
up the
the one kiln.
in
the extent of the manufactures
Ichi-no-kura from Tazimi.
finished
hills,
the potteries of
on sloping ground.
and many potters burn
by the number of has a hundred and
of
all
kilns in these pottery districts are of strange form,
;
We
extends up the
it
and indeed,
consist of a series of arches with hillside
where
This village
it.
shape
perforations
;
One man's
specialty
is
eccen-
but he produces a perforated ware which has
filled
with transparent glaze.
This potter
is
known
ART,
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
185
by the name of Hechibei, which being interpreted funny fellow." Another manufactures wares that look
in the district
means
"
rather like our
"
mingled together
mottled soap," being brown, gray, and white in a tortuous
and
striated manner.
After completing our inspection of the Ichi-no-kura potteries
we walked over the hill The day was gloriously
to
Tazimi
mile and a forest of
Ascending
half,
The
Tazimi.
little
interest
one of the dealers a man of great importance
and so
;
but we found
;
in
times gone by,
in
the Baronial system had acquired from the Daimio of
the province the sole right of selling
Mino
wares.
we reached Nagoya
Starting at 4. 15 on our return journey,
in
than four hours after having had a glorious drive.
less
The is
sides
all
potteries here produce nothing but
blue-and-white wares of
who under
and then
to the ridge
we followed the crest of the hill for about a looking down on a most charming view, as a very
left,
mountains extends to the horizon on
we reached
common
and a delightful walk we had.
yet there was a cool bracing air as
fine,
the frost last night was keen.
turning to the
;
report that Suruga, the province where
much woodwork
which we are now going,
a disturbed state
made, and
to
in
is
turns out to be untrue.
Next morning,
therefore,
we bade adieu
Nagoya, and follow-
to
ing the great Tokaido (or main road) for about ten miles, to
two small towns almost joined together, the
first
of these being
Here are made the crape
Narumi, the second Arimatsu.
and other fabrics, which have a texture resulting from the
up
"
of parts of the surface into
This manufacture produces time
this
effects
is
of
was a
flourishing for a
and most objectionable of
interesting in
if
It
"
tying
industry.
article to stuffs.
still
character,
any other way.
and
At one
But the European and cheaper
article
caused a
degenerate into the coarsest
Recently an
to revive the original manufacture, and,
success.
world
most
cheaper and
most delicate and delicious
scarves,
tufts.
which cannot be got
American demand
made
a
came
would be a calamity not only
such a manufacture as this were
I
to
effort
has been
believe, with
some
Japan but to the
lost.
Fabrics of this
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
86
1
Narumi-shibori, the word Narumi being the
character are called
town, and Shibori tied or knotted. In these two villages
A
Japanese towel, as
common
I
common Japanese
have already mentioned,
printed
is
fabrics here are only ten inches in width.
indeed
;
of
in width, all
In Japan there
nothing equivalent to our ironing and mangling processes, and
method of
the only is
a piece
is
and ten inches
calico about three feet in length
on which a pattern of quaint character
washing is
towels are also made.
flattening a
fabric
after
it
that of sticking the cloth to a board while yet
there allowing
it
to dry
;
and as the poor
in
has been washed full
of water and
England each possess
a clothes-line, so do the poor of Japan each possess drying boards.
woman's
If a
narrow
may
dress has to be
strips of
which
it
washed
is
one potter who has come here from Kioto, and
whose wares are remarkable more has
left his
We
left
had been
Okazaki
As
run.
my
if
for eccentricity than for beauty.
former business to his son. at 3.15,
and by 4.30 seven and a half miles
there remained yet twelve and a half between
and our destination
of reward
and
ripped into the
order that these strips
run of twent}'-five miles brought us to the town of Okazaki,
where there
us
in
be flattened on the drying boards.
A He
first
is
it
has been made,
I
offered the
men something
in
the wa}-
To
they would run well for the rest of the distance.
surprise the twelve and a half miles were completed thirty-five minutes,
in
one hour
although we had stopped on the road at
a village called H5z6ji-mura to see the gourds, to the preparation At Hozoji-mura we were of which the whole village is devoted.
asked as much as eight dollars (thirty-two
gourd holding about three half pints strength.
Two
such gourds
may
:
but
shillings) for a bottle its
value
lies
in
its
be knocked together with a vehe-
One of them is half an inch in thickness, and we are informed that when very old the rind of a bottle-gourd becomes thick, but that when the gourd is mence
that
young
its
is
skin
astonishing without breaking.
is
thin.
Mr. Sakata has a bottle-gourd which cost
thirty dollars, being large as well
as thick.
I
do not
like the
appearance of those sold here nearly so well as those which wc
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART, saw on our road
187
the Japanese "colour" their gourds
to Ise, but
smokers here "colour" pipes: and the young Japanese
as
proud of a richly coloured gourd as an English youth
is
is
as
of a well-
coloured "meerschaum."
We
have now reached Toyohashi,
or Sanshiw, forty-five miles from to Tokio.
It
and Tokio the
Nagoya, on the great highroad
the largest town, save Nagoya, between
is
Okazaki being the next
;
Mikawa
the province of
in
Kioto
largest.
Our road has been across a vallc)- most of the way, but for last five miles we have been near mountains. All the day
snow-clad peaks and long alpine ranges have been visible both on the right and the
but especially on the
left,
left
;
and owing
to the
we saw Fujiyama again for the on our wa}' from Yokohama to Kobe b)'
clearness of the atmosphere
time since we passed Since
we
it
started on our journey, neither
have ever worn their national costumes they wear
European
national dress, with the
dress,
Both, as
revolt,
and as
I
it.
said, are
Samurai wear
all
In the day
in the street.
the
evening put
on
their
have just disco\-cred the reason of
have before
I
in
sea.
Ishida nor Sakata
dressing-gown (borrowed generally from
a
hotelkeeper) over
this.
and
first
from a province now
their crests
in
on their robes, their
dress would reveal the fact of their being from a revolting province,
and they would be constantl)is
over
them
;
liable to arrest
for while their position in the
immunity from
imprisonment,
till
the
Government
much
insurrection service gives
would
trouble
be
involved in securing their freedom.
Having had
a
were on the road.
we rose The morning was chill.
good
night's rest,
at six,
At
and by seven
nine o'clock the
sun was struggling with a thin layer of cloud, but later in the day the heat became actually scorching.
bay nearly four miles eighteen inches.
in
At 9.30 we reached
a shallow
width, with a uniform depth of about
This we crossed
in a fliat-bottomed boat.
Over
more than a square mile of this bay bushes arranged in regular rows jut out from the water
which entangles article of diet.
itself
:
these are to catch a kind of seaweed
amongst them, and which
is
a valuable
1
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
88
Having crossed the bay, we
employment
the sole
drying
They spread
weed.
this
which we place
"
upon straws, like those on Along the streets, and on the propped, easel-fashion, a number of large it
cream-cheese."
edge of the bay are
square straw pads, not unlike our targets
target-like slabs
seaweed partly
At
this
on
by wooden skewers, and
exfoliates,
village
much
each,
the sun
the
till
for packing.
only two jinrikishas and two
get
As
this
all
the houses have
Orange-trees laden with
At
many
the next village
order a jinrikisha to be in
and
In the village
slow.
in
by Avell-trimmed hedges, some of which
seen everywhere, and beside shrines.
is
passing nearly
as thirty feet in height.
little
Along
little
on these
therefore go on, while Ishida follows
I
now
front gardens enclosed
may be
in
left
removed
is
it
of loose sand our progress
is
through which we are
lovely
The
make.
with the baggage on a kind of hand cart or truck.
foot,
the road
are as
when
we can
Mr. Sakata and
coolies.
in
being covered with seaweed, are pinned
straw mats
where
arrive at a little village,
of the inhabitants consists in collecting and
road the scenery
more
is
we
fruit
of the houses stand get an extra coolie
readiness for Mr. Ishida.
any that
tropical than
I
have
before seen in Japan, and strikingly resembles that of Java, while the houses are also very similar to those in that island.
Soon we come
to a
town of considerable importance, which
has a look of prosperity about in
it
that
construction the houses differ from I
I
Here the gable ends do not
Ise.
notice in the architecture during
all
my
have seen hitherto only front the
street,
others that
in
T6t5mi
;
before
This town
is
we have nothing but bother with our intervals we have to change
but although at very short
jinrikishas,
by 6.30 we have got over
mountain ahead, and
ever, a
in
or Yenshiw.
After leaving this town coolies
and
have seen.
travels varieties correspond-
ing to those seen in the different Swiss Cantons.
Hamamatsu
I
we
five
reach our resting-place.
There is, howmore must be traversed
fifty miles.
miles
Mr. Sakata and
I
set out to
walk, leaving Mr. Ishida to follow with the baggage by kago.
The
ascent
is
steeper than
any road that
I
remember
in
ART,
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
Darkness comes on,
Switzerland.
begins to
rain
189 fall,
and
we reach Kanaya
nine o'clock when, tired and hungry,
it
is
the
in
province of Totomi or Yenshiw.
Morning
men
rikisha
It
!
promise of a
rained hard
night, yet the
all
But delay
fine day.
and, finally, Sakata and
;
morning gave with the
after delay arose I
jin-
out on our journey,
set
leaving Ishida and the servant to do as well as they could.
The day
turns out gloriously
and we seem
to
Here the plum blossoms
into thorough spring weather.
Some
fine,
have got
are fully out.
of these are, strange to say,
We
pink and double.
are in the
midst of the mountains, and lovely indeed they appear on this glorious
Fujiyama
day.
is
before us
—
for
a time cloudcapped, and then clear
again
— but
cone
rises
its
and peerless
vast
high above
surround-
all
Fig.
ings.
By of
twelve
Okabe
in
chop-sticks,
we reached
63.— Portion of Table-mat, formkd OF Steims of the Brake Fern.
the town
Suruga, where mats (Fig.
63),
trays, fan -holders,
and other things are made from stems of the brake
fern.
Although the
were refractory
coolies
the
in
morning, they
by 1.30 we have reached the town of Here much woodwork is Sidsuoka, which is also in Suruga. made but only a few weeks since nearly one-third of the town
have certainly run
well, for
;
was destroyed by incendiary
agriculturists
;
now
is
it
largely
rebuilt.
Setting out to see the industries of the town,
man who makes inlaid.
I
;
Bethnal Green can beat
work, a
polish,
yet, the it
hinges, lock, or velvet, for
expenses of transit are such that
out of the English market.
next saw a manufacturer of bent bamboo
performed
his
visited a
portable folding-desks of English pattern, partly
bought one without
eightpence halfpenny
We
we
work with great
man who
skill,
trays,
who
then a maker of inlaid wood-
forms bird-cages of vegetable wires, a
man
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
I90
who
covers lacquer bread-baskets, and porcelain sachi-cups, with
basketwork
but
;
productions are covered with coarse work,
all his
and not with that
The
found on the thin porcelain. is
now produced was soon
English commercial
mon
things
in
He
character.
we
exquisitely fine plaiting which
This
and found
spirit,
large
reason
given.
it
imbibed the
to
make com-
few of more delicate
whether any one now living
common
could cover cups with the fine work
work
this coarser
has
pay better
numbers, than the
also doubts
why man
formerly-
Suruga
in
ten
years back.
Here we have another instance of the corrupting
influence of
European trade on the Japanese
Since
work has again been produced
ever, the fine old
The
industries.
made
bird-cages
in
;
visit,
how-
in this district.
Sidsuoka are noteworthy as works of
great beauty and tenderness. of vegetable origin
my
What we may term
yet, for rigidity
the wires are
and truth of form, they
vie
with any metal thread ever produced.
wooden
Plain
for offerings
made
Sidsuoka of
facture
Between
it
trays,
both circular and square, are here made
These the Japanese use
abundantly.
is
for domestic
purposes, and
to the gods.
an important town, engaged largely
inlaid
woodwork,
and Yokohama
no vehicle can pass
;
lies
but
it
is
in
the
unfortunately
manu-
situated.
a high mountain range, over which
and, as nearly
all
Japanese exports leave the
men Hakone mountains, or must be sent back at least as far if not all the way to Kobe, before they can be as Nagoya, shipped to Yokohama. The next morning we were astart early. A little frost was on port of Yedo, the manufactures must either be carried by
over the
—
—
the ground, but the sun soon gained power, and the heat
almost oppressive.
It is
that of a July day in England.
As we
left
across
We
in the
near distance on
above a horizontal layer of white clouds which stretched
it,
range of
is
passed under the shade of
richly-wooded mountains Fujiyama rose our
became
only the 19th of March, but the heat
while on the right lay a lovely bay, bounded by a low hills,
separating us from the great and sacred peak.
stop a short time at an hotel, the back of which hangs
AK r, AND AR T MANUFA CTURES. over the bay, and
commands
1
9
a lovely view of the great mountain.
As seen from the pretty little room in which we now are, Fujiyama can be surveyed only with feelings of inexpressible delight. Resuming our journey, we made our way round the mountain spur which separated us
immaculate cone burst of
mountain, when the
giant
Here we
which
are
and from which the vast mountain
and then increasing the
the
on our view.
strange, broad river-beds,
those
this country,
as
from
fully
summit
in its slope
common
rises, first
in
gentle
becoming more and more steep
;
But of the vastness of the
neared.
is
so
one
cross
slope,
even to the bottom of the snow -line, no accurate idea can formed, unless comparisons are carefully made.
appear as specks, extensive plantations as
Large
be
trees here
patches, cloud-
little
shadows no bigger than one's hand.
The
height of Fujiyama
sixteen thousand
have their bases
far
is
variously given as fourteen and as
Unlike the Swiss mountains, which
feet.
above the sea
level,
many
while
all
are seen only
from ground much elevated, the great Japanese mountain stretches its
base to the very ocean.
Monte Rosa
is
about
the sea level
hundred it
is
feet
;
is
seen, nestles in
above the
its I
in
its
know
but
is
it
above
feet
thousand seven
Chamouni, from which
a valley nearly three thousand five hundred
Thus, as seen from
sea.
height, but also to
snow -line, which
rises fifteen
level of the ocean,
higher than any European mountain. not only to
feet high,
about seven thousand
and while Mont Blanc above the
feet
thousand
fifteen
best seen from Zermat, which
invest
its
with a
it
its
But
base,
its
Fujiyama
sublimity
is
due
is
form, and the regularity of
beauty peculiarly
own.
its
of no other mountain so perfect in shape, so immaculate
appearance, and so majestic
Our road
in its
leads us under another high bank, and here
violets, dandelions, potentillas, the
bloom, for
in this low,
By 12.20 we have poor coolies fatigue, but
faints. is
grandeur.
warm
ground
ivy,
district spring
I
notice
and other plants
has thoroughly set
in
in.
run thirty-five miles, and here one of our
He
is,
I
am
subject to fainting
assured, in fits
no way overcome by
which might
seize
him
at
any
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
192
This Httle trouble over and a new coohe
period of the journey.
we
secured,
us
we have
appear ready to
We can
tiffin
1.30
we reach
a
little
and some of the men who have pulled
;
which we have
the forty miles
for
At
are soon on our road again.
town, where
this
morning
travelled,
start again.
soon reach the great Hakone pass, over which no vehicle
travel,
and
for
twenty miles we must either walk or be carried
Coolies are engaged to bear our luggage, and two kagos
in kagos.
are hired, so that
we may
ride
alternately
we
if
please.
path now rapidly ascends, and we get lovely peeps of
The
sea, bay,
Now the and mountain, with Fujiyama high above all. patches of snow are seen in the shad}' begins to get cooler
forest,
air
;
we have snow
hollows, then till,
as
we near
the top,
snow and
summit of the pass we descend and picturesqe
village
in
quantities, but partially melted, ice
abound.
Having gained the where a strange
into a little hollow,
borders a lake of two or three miles
in
bounded by mountains. The scene reminds me Loch Lomond, partly of Killarney, and partly of some but, as the lake of the lakes in Westmoreland and Cumberland at its distant end by Japan's greatest mountain, is bounded nothing in Great Britain, and nothing even on Lake Lucerne, is length, entirely
partly of
;
nearly so grand.
We
are soon at the hotel, which stands back from the road.
Here we have another evidence of the change which has come over this strange country during the last few years, for the gateway
through which we have entered the courtyard was opened only
Daimios and
hundred and sixty -eight, but now Japanese of ordinary rank, but
Our
hotel
declivity, its
is
is
it
evening
opened, not simply for
for foreigners.
situated on the left of the road,
and
in
a slight
back rooms commanding the view of the lake and
surrounding mountains, and of a lovely hotel.
for
their retainers until after the revolution of eighteen
From light,
little
its
garden adjoining the
we watch the lake glimmering in the The dark mountains stand out and still.
our rooms placid
against the glowing sky
high above the nearer
;
and almost
hills, rises
in the centre of the picture,
the vast white peak of Fujiyama.
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
We gaze
on the changing
hght as the reflected
effects of the fading
mountains disappear from the water darkness.
everything
till
193
lost in the
is
hard to tear ourselves from this enchanted scene,
It is
but the window-slides are returned to their places, and the outer
world
shut out from sight.
is
MarcJi 20.
beyond
beautiful
is
description.
me
blue of Italian skies, but to daily surpasses anything that
knew what
never I
find
fine
this could not pos-
and of snow-clad Fuji-
lake,
We talk about the
the sky which
have ever seen
I
weather really was
matchless
here see almost
I
in Italy
indeed,
;
I visited Japan.
till
I
Here
an atmosphere of the greatest purity, with a crispness so
and bracing, that
refreshing
enough
and never did
;
in constitution,
By the
morning than
lovely
and the view of the lovely
sibly be,
yama,
— A more
than
I
I feel
now
feel
I
as
if
better health, or
in
descend
is
inhale
more vigorous
do.
7.10 kagos are at the door, and
snow on the
never could
I
thick and sludgy
I
am
told to ride, as
mountain which we are about to
side of the
make an
I
:
effort
and succeed
in
partly packing myself in the horrible contrivance.
For six miles the
I
am
snow with a steady and
that the
even
Hakone
is
it,
trudge through
though they were carry-
firm step, as
ing a cage with a jackdaw in
Unalloyed enjoyment
men who
slowly carried by
rather than a burly Englishman.
out of question in a kago
Pass, for beauty
;
but
and grandeur, has few
Four miles on the road, we come people are almost of special kinds
rivals
to
a
little
town
;
in
the
The
woodwork and making baskets but a few of the fern-stem trays, such as we saw all
employed
in
Okabe, are also to be found here, as well as much inlaid
camphor-wood bottles,
in
the form of cabinets and boxes,
paper knives, and other things
in the hats
and baskets
large pinnate fern, in
feel
in Switzerland.
province of Sacami or Soshiw, called Yumoto-Kawabata.
in
I
(Fig. 64)
;
made
but
I
wooden
am most
sachi-
interested
of the plaited fronds of a
which are both ingenious
in
make and
beautiful
appearance.
Having passed another
village called
O
Yumoto, where exactly
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
194
same manufactures
the
and
are carried on
we
two or three hundred yards come
in
leave the great Tokaido,
Hakone
to the
springs.
we have a fashionable inland watering-place A new hotel of considerable size has a
Here, as at Arima,
with natural hot wells. series of
On
bath-rooms
us with a gift,
;
—
our leaving this little
the whole being clean and beautiful.
new
presents each of
hotel the landlord
packet tied with the folded paper which denotes a
and containing a thin wooden box, within which
sachi-cup bearing the
name
_
mon
in
houses is
seems,
it
to
in
Japan
the
com-
is
fashionable
vogue also
in
little
of giving
present
small
a
guests,
a
is
The custom
of the hotel.
tea-
and
;
at
it
Wies-
baden and other German watering-places, where a fan
is
the
name
upon Fig.
64.— Basket formed of the Fronds of a Fern.
I
often
given
with
the
hotel
of
it.
now
find that a
new
a being a Midrib.
road has just been completed from these hot springs, along which a jinrikisha can travel,
and that one of these comfortable carriages can be got Seated
in this vehicle,
I
feel as
though
I
at the hotel.
had been transferred from
purgatory to paradise.
From the village to which the kagos had been engaged Yokohama is distant about forty miles but the coolie who has brought me from the wells agrees to run the rest of the distance, and by 2.30 we are all in jinrikishas and ready to start. In the evening we reach Yokohama, and I take up my old ;
quarters at the
Grand Hotel.
For the next few days arranging
my
I
remained at Yokohama, writing
purchases, looking over
my
myself more thoroughly acquainted with certain
On
the morning after
my
arrival
I
letters,
note-book, and making
had a welcome
manufactures. visit
Saumarez, who had been the genial companion of the
from Mr.
first
part of
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
my
On
journey.
195
one of the days spent at Yokohama we had a
steady downpour of rain
from morning to night, and part of
another day was also wet
but
wet season
On March I
by the
left
days, calling
25, having
done
train for Tokio,
my
upon
matters which
The day
;
we must now look all
Yokohama,
that was needed in
where
remained
I
for
and inquiring
old friends
two or three one or two
into
do not yet understand.
I
following
my
arrival
I
spend
Dining with Mr. Saumarez
of Shiba.
for rain, for the
approaching.
is
in
studying the
the evening,
in
I
.shrines
met Mr.
who has got back safely from holiday when the rebellion broke out.
Sato, the great Japanese scholar,
Satsuma, where he was on a
The next day I spent in arranging in the glass-cases of the museum the objects which I brought out from England. Mr. Mounsey introduced me to Mr. Ninagawa Noritane, an antiquarian of great learning, who is publishing an archaeological work on the
He
pottery of Japan,
first
shows us some rude pottery from the
early tombs, which he regards as old,
two thousand
hundred years
five
then a piece of green ware nine hundred years old, which he
says was the
brown
jars,
first
that these were
"
first
fifteenth century.
made seven hundred
A
a pattern scratched
He
which has
pot,
The
years since. us, in
tells
Japan
first
in
the
rough, black Corean earthenware, which has
upon
it,
he pronounced to be
fifteen
hundred
also tells us that a portion of a large, rude its
little
tea ceremony," he told us
blue- and -white ware was made, so he
years old.
Bringing out some
glazed ware of Japan.
such as are used at the
Corean
border covered with lacquer-work, was
one thousand one hundred and
fifty
years since
;
made
that an orange-
red lacquer tea -cup, which looks almost new, and a piece of avanturine lacquer, have been in existence nine hundred years ;
and that a piece of plain gold lacquer, which has flowers drawn
upon
it
in fine
black outline,
He now shows feathers,
in
us a
oxidised silver
is
twelfth century work.
cabinet bearing
and gold
the South Kensington Museum). whose favourite pastime was hawking
(like
:
pattern
formed of
a box which
may
be
was made
for a prince
a fashionable
amusement
It
.seen in
a
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
196
with Japanese nobles and courtiers about three hundred years since.
All the Japanese wares which are decorated with hawks'
feathers were
made
for this
The
prince or his friends.
crests of
this family consist of hawk's feathers variously arranged
;
some
bearing a very close resemblance to the three feathers of the Prince of Wales.
In the evening
I
was introduced
to Mr. Matsugata, the vice-
minister of finance and the president of the agricultural board, a
pleasant gentleman, shrewd and intelligent.
renewed the acquaintance now formed
in
Two Paris, as
years later
I
Mr. Matsu-
gata was sent by the Japanese as their commissioner at the International Exhibition of 1878, where this I
also
I
was acting
as a juror.
After
had the pleasure of showing him some of the most
important manufactures of England.
I
AND ART AIANUFACTURES.
ART,
CHAPTER A
Shinto festival
197
VIII.
— Nikko—The great Sanctuary—Arrival
Tokio
at
—
Japanese reports and police supervision.
March
28.
— At
we started for Nikko with Mr, Saumwhen some distance on the road, to see a
7 A.M.
arez, turning aside,
shrine which throws considerable Hght on the nature of Shinto.
About noon we crossed their singular robes,
enclosed
This,
bier.
a river,
came upon some
and bearing on
we were
copy of the one preserved
told,
their shoulders
with
a kind of
contained a sacred mirror
the great shrine
in
priests
:
a
Kamiji-yama
at
in Ise,
At
we reached
the next village which
was being
and following an immense in India.
On
Shinto festival
a great
Thousands of people were laughing and shouting
held.
this car
car,
something
like that of
Jaghanath
a platform surrounded by a low railing,
is
while in the centre rises a mast about thirty or forty feet in height,
from the top of which
fly
the cut papers which
Shinto religion, while around white cloth
is
its
On
suspended from a hoop.
musicians making rude music with gongs and actor,
whose gestures would not be tolerated
staff of this actor
He
is
unmistakably
dress in the tent of which
numerous ropes attached to
We
the fifes,
in
platform
are
and a masked
England.
The
phallic.
—
man and
a woman, changing his we have spoken and the car is dragged men and boys, who delight in pulling at the
appears alternately as a
by hundreds of
symbolise the
lower portion a tent of red and
;
it.
are here brought face
to face with
what has long since
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
198
disappeared from the greater portion of the civiHsed earth the dragging of the car and the lewd religious service
which
is
symboHsm
moment
here regarded as of great
yet
;
are part of a
and
;
before the car the priests solemnly bear the sacred ark, which
—
emblem of Shinto made by the people to
contains that strange itself is
an offering
now taking
it
seems
It
that, since
the gods, and they are
foreigners have been permitted to enter
:
symbols have been reduced
processions themselves are
To
car
to the temple.
many
the country, such ceremonies have been shorn of characteristics
The
the mirror.
now
interest, for
number, while the
of but rare occurrence.
me, the accidental meeting with
matter of great
in
of their
it
this procession
me
enables
has been a
to understand
many
Proceeding on
things that have hitherto been incomprehensible.
our journey, we spent the night at Koganai.
By
8.30 A,M.
we
are again on our way, and at 3 P.M. arrive
emblem flies. diminutive temple supported on a pedestal. Around it
at a small phallic shrine, over which the Shinto is
a
many in
stones varying in height from ten inches to two
diameter from two inches to
cut, the
newer are more simple
five
:
feet,
It
are
and
the older stones are well
At
in character.
5.30
we reach
Nikko, having run for forty miles through an avenue of coniferous trees.
For the
last
ten miles the avenue has
magnificent cryptomerias a hundred and
with overhanging branches locked together
Nikko
is
in
down
a rocky
river,
on the sides of a tree-covered
hill,
shrines as glorious in colour as the
all
and
It
dell.
and a stream of
street.
Across the
are the great shrines
most important and the most beautiful of
—
height,
wooded
defile,
delicious water flowing through the central
in
a vast vault.
a small town situated in a richly
has a mountain river leaping
been formed of
fifty feet
—
the
the shrines of Japan
Alhambra
in
the days of
its
splendour, and yet with a thousand times the interest of that beautiful
building.
Here we have
birds,
flowers, water,
clouds,
carved in a manner that could not be surpassed.
Following the road beyond the hotel, we soon reached the
mountain
river,
over which are two bridges, the lower open and
ART,
The
the upper closed.
locked gates at
Fig.
in a
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
its
closed bridge
entrance.
is
painted red,
199
and has
These gates are opened only once
65.— Pl.\n of the Shrines of Nikko, after a Native Chart bought on the spot.
year
(in
August,
age to Nikko.
I
believe) at the time of the great pilgrim-
Turning to the
the river for a quarter of a mile,
left,
and following the bend of
we come
to a phallic
shrine of
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
200
But the Government has now passed an edict ordering the destruction of these emblenms which for centuries have and throughout the country all such shrines here found a home Continuing our course by the river for half are being dismantled.
vast proportions.
;
a mile, and re-crossing the water,
we came of
figures
life
some
to
in
size,
scores of stone
sitting postures,
which are said to be the disciples of
'if
m wt
we
behind
hill
see a Buddhist grave-
yard, and near the water's edge a stone,
over which rises a canopy supported on
In a small
columns.
stone
four
.,H3lH
Ascending the
Buddha.
these figures,
dentation incense
at times burnt
is
in-
for
;
on the face of an overhanging rock at the opposite side of the stream a Saninscription
scrit
is
of these characters
lSmP^^
a glorious walk closed
the
we
;
After
returned, as night
early to
start
and temples so all
Japan.
cele-
To do
but, instead of continuing our course
turn to the right and ascend the
hill
temples of Nikko are built (Fig. 65).
left
as
we
did last
by the water, we soon
on which the shrines and
An
opening
at our right
soon displayed a short flight of steps, on the top of which square there
stone
flat is
;
simple
enclosure, surrounded
a gate.
Both the
by
railing
but they are mere copies
wood
construction.
so,
follow the main street, cross the river,
and then turn to the night
worshipped.
morning we
shrines
brated throughout Bronze Column or SoRiN-TO AT Nikko.
Fig. 66.
is
we
to our hotel.
in,
In the see
and the author
cut,
Within
is
a
a strong stone railing, in which
and the gate are of massive in
the
harder material
this enclosure
is
of a
a large bronze
column supported by four buttress-like members (Fig. 66).
In
the central column are stored copies of the Buddhist scriptures;
and while the four supporting posts and the central column are here fixed, the whole structure
is
but a modification of the rotary
i
ART,
AND ART MANUFACTURES,
contrivance which holds copies of the scriptures, and the pious
cause to revolve as a religious duty,
= tower).
wheel, to
The
titles
—
the sorin-to (so
= all,
rin
=
of the sacred books contained in
structure are written on the
this
upper parts
column
the
of
in
gold characters.
Continuing our walk up the soon reach a beautiful
w^e
hill,
pagoda
(Fig.
the
stitute
and various
6'j')
which
buildings,
together
con-
sanctuary
great
of
Nikko.
These stand
in
an en-
closure
surrounded
by
walls,
which
are
as
many
beautiful
These
buildings.
like
Japan, are roofed, and
in
their lower portion
while
the
as
walls,
of stone,
is
between
intervening
the
stone and the roof are uprights
connected
by
tie
-
beauty of the walls carved
the
lies in
which
panels,
The
beams.
the
fill
spaces between the uprights and the
Birds,
tie -pieces.
clouds, water,
flowers,
and animals are
here cut with a boldness which the
finest
of
European carvers
could scarcely equal.
I
doubt,
Fig. 67.—
Pagoda at Nikko.
we have in Europe any artists who could arrange such compositions with
indeed,
whether
half the vigour exhibited in these panels (Fig. 69).
The temple
enclosure
side of a
hill,
which
it
divided into a series of courts, one
is
within, or beyond the other
;
and
as the shrine
is
situated on the
gradually ascends, each succeeding court
higher than the one preceding
it
;
and the main building, being
the last and most sacred enclosure,
is
on the highest ground.
is
in
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
202
Here, on our
the stable in which a sacred horse was
left, is
formerly kept, a building which is
strikes
me
as of great interest,
chiefly of plain unvarnished timber.
formed
carved and coloured with consummate tion of these enrichments
door of the
finest
on our
left,
and the
coloured carving and a bold lattice
black lacquer contrast with the plain wooden In this enclosure, and
structure in the most delicious manner. still
has a few panels
while the distribu-
skill,
as judicious as the carving
is
The
colouring are clever.
It
and
are a series of buildings,
object to boast of; and,
if
situated in
any one of which
is
an
any part of Europe, thousands
would make long journeys to see it. There is the water tank The standing under a canopy, which is a mass of beautiful work. roof over
it
rests
on twelve monolith columns, the tops of which,
as well as parts of the horizontal tie-members, are encased in bronze
sockets, diapered with fine patterns,
Here and little
bits
Above
there,
and bearing the Shogun's arms.
extending beyond the bronze encasements, are
of polychromatic
most
ornament
carefully
disposed.
the horizontal member, and supported by a series of curious,
yet characteristic brackets,
is
a wonderful, massive, sweeping roof,
with rounded gables, borne on beams half enveloped
in
gilt
metal
figured with rich repoitsse ornament.
Above roof,
is
member and below the glorious sweeping hammered metal-work, building can boast. Here we have English which no the horizontal
a mass of carving, painting, and
the like of
water, almost lashed into
tempest, with water-fowl riding on the
waves, and flowers treated with exquisite tenderness, while
all is
subordinated to a true architectural position.
But
in
dealing with a shrine like that of Nikko, words are
altogether inadequate
:
even the best photographs give but an
imperfect idea of buildings which
and half to form.
Without the
owe
half their beauty to colour,
aid of either,
myself with a few woodcuts, which are as
photographs of Nikko now before fully-coloured drawings,
the reader any result in failure.
fit
I
feel that
me
my
and having far
to satisfy
behind the great
as photographs are behind
attempt at conveying to
conception of the beauty of these shrines must
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART, Next
the water- tank, and a
to
building of great beauty
;
but were
beyond
little I
it,
another
is
attempt descriptions of
to
my
the various buildings here congregated
203
book would swell
to
unwieldy bulk.
now
In the court
entered are several other buildings, and a
Most of these latter are about six feet in height and of the usual pagoda form, while all around are vast coniferous trees crowded together, so as to form an almost impenetrable mass of green. On the right, however, of
series of lanterns,
the court
in
portion
portion
we must not
pass without notice.
formed of triangular logs arranged
is
and resembling
zontally,
Nara
stone and in bronze.
in
a building which
is
The lower
both
in
hori-
construction the old building at
its
Above
the
thus formed and below the great overhanging roof
we
which the Mikado's treasures are preserved.
have an amount of work
in the
highest degree beautiful.
Dealing with the gable end, which faces us as we walk up outer court,
we have above
on which runs a
"
the V-shaped logs a horizontal member,
Greek key pattern
rise five circular uprights, crossed
on which again occurs the thus formed are
filled
this
"
From
" in all its purity.
this
by another horizontal member,
Greek key," while two of the panels
with lattice -work
and two with painted
decoration.
we have
Passing upwards,
tween the columns, and a
and projecting beam. ridge
of the
roof,
elephants at play.
be described,
—
while nearly
series of brackets supporting a horizontal
Here
which
rises a king-post,
and beside which stand,
in
carries
the
relief,
two
full
There are other members here w^hich cannot
carved pendants, metal
all
richest colour
a diaper pattern in the spaces be-
ties,
grand-headed
nails,
the parts are covered with diaper -work of the
and cleverest construction.
Following the pathway, we now pass through a magnificent torii,
the uprights
members
of which are
are of bronze, on which
of stone, while the is
horizontal
repeated ten times the crest of
the Shogun.
This
which
torii
rest
has
on a
its
vertical
plinth
or
columns encased base,
and are
in
bronze sockets,
perfectly
Greek
in
2
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
04
Greek
character, the usual
which spreads from the
which we
ornament enriching the moulding
column
the
we ascend twenty
torii,
At one
leaf
the
to
and enter the second
steps
court, in
some magnificent
have a series of buildings and
side
Passing under
base.
trees.
the belfry, at the other the music-house, together
is
with other small buildings, while distributed over the court are brackets, a
huge candelabrum, and a monster bronze lantern, these all of European (probably Dutch) manufacture.
being
latter
of the buildings which bound this court, and face us
On some as
we
enter
of these panels on the bird, or
with the
hon
—which
consists of the paeony
left
may
consists of a grand treatment of
another of the kiku flower, the plant of which the
fir-tree,
Mikado's domestic crest
supposed to
and
feed,
treated with masterly
Leaving
on which the hon
formed, and
is
others of various flowers
and
birds,
is
all
skill.
this court,
which
extending to the right and
is
left
a long transverse strip of ground
of the central path,
we ascend
a
of thirteen steps to a gateway in which are two colossal
flight
figures, the
one at the right and the other at the
gatehouse
This
of
is
considerable
while a large gallery surrounds
roof,
first
and the sacred
be regarded as the Japanese phoenix
Another
three young.
its
The
are carved panels of great magnificence.
it,
the roof are supported on a
elaboration
gallery
the
roof
;
but both the gallery and
complex system of brackets, such
as
of detail
this
in
gatehouse
is
absolutely
There must be thousands of brackets supporting
indescribable.
the
it
68).
and has a massive
to be understood.
must be seen
The
height,
left (Fig.
alone,
while as
many
are
Here we have dragons
in
employed relief
full
in
sustaining
by the
score,
kylins in almost every attitude, carved flowers, groups of figures, clouds,
diaper
water,
wrought by the metal
;
-
chisel,
patterns,
and
ornamental
compositions
drawn by the brush, or hammered up
while the whole constitutes a mass, beautiful in
tions, pleasant
in
its
" quantities," correct
very world of colour- harmony. architectural
work that
I
This
is
in
its
the
its
in
propor-
structure,
and a
most marvellous
have ever seen, and days might well
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART, be spent
in
considering
The
it.
illustration (Fig.
attempt at expressing the contour and detail of seen from the court which
we
are
now about
205
69)
this
is
a rude
gateway as
to enter.
Passing through this gateway \ve come upon a large court
which surrounds, on three
This enclosure
itself is situated.
court, in is
is
a gateway (Fig. 69),
adjoining
it
at
feet
is
horizontal
beautiful than the
The base
of the wall rise
by horizontal members thicker than the
uprights,
of about
twelve
feet
The
pass.
first
about sixteen inches above the wall, and
this,
which
These
distance
member
the next horizontal
;
and of about the same width
member
at a distance of
a regular roof-structure covered with It will
more
have just passed.
which
apart.
the
inches broad
above
wall, in the centre of
possible, almost
if
w^e
and through which the uprights
fifteen
separated from the innermost
consists of massive blocks of stone, from
are connected
member
enclosure in which the temple
which the temple stands, by a
one through which
uprights
sides, that
;
horizontal
some
is itself is
about
five
then comes another
about sixteen inches
then
;
tiles.
be seen that we have immediately above the stone base
of this wall a series of elongated panels about sixteen
inches in
depth, then above these a series of panels of about five feet in
depth, then another series of the
same depth
as those below, all
of which are covered by a substantial tiled roof
The lower range
of narrow panels consists entirely of carved
representations of water and of water-fowl
;
thus on the
left
of the
entrance to the innermost court the panel consists of three ducks flying over water.
The next
passing flight of small birds
;
consists of water
next of ducks and water, and so with the of the gateway
we have
small birds and water on.
Above
these
come
rest
;
storks standing in w^ater
;
and cloud, with a
the next of geese and water
;
the
while to the right ;
next a
flight
of
then a flight of ducks over water, and so
the horizontal connecting beams, which are
diapered with an hexagonal pattern, then the large panels inter-
vening between the two horizontal beams.
These are framed with
black lacquer margins, having rich metal corner plates, and these
framed panels
fill
the large spaces left between the uprights and
Fig. 6g.
Gateway at the Entranxe of the Inner Court of the Shrine
of Nikko.
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
2o8
The
the horizontal members.
panels themselves consist of pierced-
work and richly-painted floral compositions. Now we come to the second horizontal members, which are again diapered with a hexagonal pattern
but
;
should be noticed that this pattern laps
it
over on to the upper and the lower surface of this horizontal beam.
Above filled
this
comes the second
series of
narrow panels, which are
with flowers and land-birds.
In the whole of these panels the subjects are treated with great tenderness
carving which
yet there
;
a crispness and decision about the
is
most masterly, while both carving and diaper-
is
work are aglow with colours mingled
in
the most harmonious
manner. This court
surrounded by
is
the
yet there are
;
work
"
used as a
in a
The Greek key
not Athenian.
is
and these are decorated
manner that reminds me of Greek decorative details which at once show that
with great simplicity, and
work
cloisters,
string-course
"
pattern
is,
however,
on the walls as the Greeks used
I
it.
Five steps lead to the gateway which forms an opening through this beautiful wall is
in aspect
live
its
its
;
we have
—
plants
possibly describe a
work that
brackets are tufts of chrysanthemum flowers, while above
the
;
first
members superposed one above
giving us a very procession of gods filled
the
the next a
;
with charming arrangements of water-
the next (a tie-beam) profusely decorated with ornament,
and bound
roof,
I
outer columns entwine dragons which seem
a series of horizontal
number of panels
above
how can
of detail, rich in colour, and most beautiful
architraves are covered with carved peach-trees
its
;
but full
blossom, the branches extending from the uprights over the
in full
other,
Round
?
almost to
lintel
;
same time
at the
all
at
its
ends
in
elaborately treated metal sockets, and
the other decorations, yet underneath the curious arched
are figures
and animals and
trees
and water
all
grouped
together with a perfect understanding of the laws which govern the distribution of ornament.
Ascending the
we reach
five steps,
and passing through
the innermost court
pointing up
the
hill
—
this
a parallelogram with
where stands the temple
itself:
gateway, its
—
length a
long
ART,
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
building of simple construction, but with carved
209
panels of the
richest character.
The temple
is
entered from a balcony surrounding
sides consist largely of well-formed,
its
and massive,
Above
hinged at the top, and opening outwards.
we
panels divided
squares,
like
;
and
lattice panels
these window-
Internally, the temple has a ceiling-
find rich carving.
into
it
that
of Uyeno, with a deeply coved cornice lines
consisting
of
vertical
but the panels are
;
filled
with ornamental devices of appropriate
character
resembling
those of Shiba. I
am getting weary of beauty,
and can understand what Shake-
when he said, "Sweet music makes me sad;" meant
speare
surely
for
there
is
an
affinity
between beauty of form, beauty Small Gateway at Nikko.
Fig. 70.
of colour, and beauty of sound. I
now
feel that
of colour are beautiful, for
sweet forms and sweet colours and sweet harmonies
making me I
feel
that
sad.
am
I
also
weary of writing of the
any words that
I
can use must
fail
to
convey any adequate idea of the conscientiousness of the work, the harmoniousness of the colours,
loveliness of the compositions, the
and the beauty of the surroundings here before adjectives which
I
have
tried to
of conveying to the reader what
—
feel
am
me
and yet the
;
heap one upon another, I
—an
architect
when contemplating these matchless
in
the hope
and ornamentist
shrines
must appear,
I
afraid, altogether unreasonable.
We
now
leave the temple, and,
making our
quaint white gate (Fig. 70) proceed up the not less beautiful, shrine.
Here we
exit through a
hill to
find a strange
a smaller, but
anomaly, for
the cut paper of Shinto dangles in a building radiant with colour
and
rich in ornaments.
Shinto enjoins the most perfect work, but employs neither P
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
2IO
Buddhism symbolises by carving and colour the power of the Buddhists' god over all created
colour nor carving in
its
temples
;
while
and the loving protection which
things,
The very Buddhism the tender perception of
essence
hands.
is
—
Buddhist, and
it
But the
fact
this shrine in
all
Shintoism of,
that lives enjoys at his is
simplicity,
and care
of
that lives.
for, all
which the Shinto emblem waves was
only since the revolution that
is
and
it
has been set
apart for Shinto worship.
Connected with
temple are two rooms the columns of
this
which are covered with gold with coloured decoration,
in the
form
of folded drapery, at the top of each shaft (very similar to that in
The golden columns, together with horizontal 82 and 87). members, divide the wall into panels, which have a margin of dark On this diaper-work falls a black green diapered with gold. Figs.
lacquer frame pencilled with gold scrolls, while within the frame
carving in unpolished
When
wood
of a vulture with a rabbit in
looked at this carving
I first
I
thought that
is
grasp.
its
consisted
it
of one piece of wood, in colour resembling American walnut
but
now
I
see that the carved parts are of one wood,
ground of another
;
but the two are so similar
in
simply present two shades of one general hue. panels
these
then smaller panels,
The
ornaments. has
in
its
are
members
horizontal
colour that they
The
wall consists
ceiling
is
For a dining-room or library
Nikko
;
and
I
room
in effect
me
can
who can
an opportunity of producing
in this country.
for the
purposes of Bud-
dhist worship, have been ceded to Shinto since the
Mikado
I
than this beautiful
only hope that some millionaire
This entire group of buildings, built
the
;
centre a carved group of flowers or ornaments in the
appreciate the beautiful will give a similar
diapered
divided into coffers, and every coffer
imagine nothing more quiet or richer at
richly
differs.
which are coloured carvings or painted
in
natural colour of the wood.
room
;
and the
of a series of such panels, only in each one the subject
Above
a
restoration of
They contrast strangely, I need simple wood structures which constitute the
to temporal power.
scarcely say, with the
shrines of that strange faith.
There
is,
however, a smaller group
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
by which
remains
211
of temples
close
Buddhists
and the buildings here congregated are as beautiful
in
;
and as
their decoration,
still
rich in
the hands
in
of
the
their details, as those of the
larger series already described, while their situation
is
the better
of the two.
With much
regret
day and return to our
The manufactures
I
leave these beautiful shrines in the fading
hotel.
Nikk6 are
of
are here hollowed out as trays
;
few.
Sections of tree stems
and are lacquered internally with
a mottled lacquer, while the outside remains in
its
natural state.
Trays are also made of a pliable bark, and sections of strange stems are prepared as kettle stands, very highly finished.
We
resolved, although
was
it
late,
our road towards Tokio before night.
get a few miles
to
But no sooner had we
our journey than snow began to
started on
The snow soon gave
bitterly cold.
we were compelled
to
The next
fall
and
little
night at ten o'clock
it
became
place to drenching rain, and
spend the night at the
Utsunomiya, having made very
on
little
town of
distance.
we reached Tokio, having run The w^eather has been fine
eighty-three miles in the one day.
but bitterly cold
and the wind has blown a hurricane, overthrow-
;
ing even large trees.
One
thing only that
special note,
and that
is
This sign was hung out old inns
;
but
its
I
saw on the return journey
an apothecary's sign in the
roadway
character was most
member
were carved sign
in a
at the top,
worthy of
town of
Satte.
like those in front of
marked and
was of the form of the old gallows, but the horizontal
in the
is
tall
interesting.
our It
upright shaft, the
and the bracket connecting the two
most perfect manner
:
indeed the carving on this
was almost as elaborate and as clever as some of the work
we had seen in Nikko. The next day was spent at Yokohama in making my homeward journey, and on the day following
that
for
preparations I
was enter-
tained at a banquet which the ministers kindly prepared for at
the
Hama
Shdgun).
me
Goten (strand palace, or summer palace of the
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE, Going the next day I
took out
all
to the
museum,
found the things which
I
nicely arranged in glass cases, similar to those at
the South Kensington
Museum, and here
I
ministers,
General
(who
met a number of the Sano,
Mr. Sameshima
became
afterwards
Japanese minister
many
Mr.
including Saigo,
in
Paris),
the
and
others.
After inspecting the objects the
in
museum, we drove
summer old
(fishing)
Shogun
palace
(Fig. 71),
to the
of the
where an
elaborate luncheon was prepared in
the purest French style.
Nay,
not only was the cooking purely
French, but on the table were
costume-crackers and other bonbons, including those
contrivances
which
enormous contain
a
full-sized dress.
End of Palace in the Hamagoten Gardens, Tokio. This Palace was formerly residence of a Daimio, then it became the the summer Palace of the Empress, and now
Fig. 71.
it
is
used
for the entertainment of illustrious
straneers.
Having bidden adieu to my friends, I started by the five o'clock train for Yokohama; Mr. Saumarez and one or two At others accompanying me. seven
o'clock
Mr.
Sano,
Mr.
Ishida, and Mr. Sakata came to At 9.30 Mr. Sano, Mr. Shoida, and Mr. Ishida while Mr. Saumarez and Mr. Sakata came on board to see me
Shoida
(of the
Tokio Museum), Mr.
dine with me. left,
off;
my
and to
away from
astonishment General Saigo found time to
the war
office,
slip
although the Satsuma rebellion was at
come and wish me a safe journey and again to bid I am now on the steamship Malacca, and before morning dawns I shall be on my way to China. Thus ends my
its
height, to
me
farewell.
journeyings in Japan, during which
one thousand seven hundred
miles.
I
have travelled a
little
over
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART, The Japan.
following
is
But
let
first
a
list
English (the Japanese foot
and not twelve,
into ten,
of the distances that
me mention is
the
6 Shiakus
.
....
o
o o
in Settsu .
to
back
18
7
18
Koya-zan
.
to
23 13 12 17
.
.
Hashimoto-mura
Kobe Kobe
to
to
to
Kobe
24
to
Osaka
o
Hiogo and back Tenno-ji in Osaka
Tenno-ji to Kioto
Carry foriuard
13
.
Yokkaichi
YokkaichitoNagoya
.
Owari
in
to Seto
.
.
Tazimi to Nagoya
Nagoya to Mikawa Totomi
Toyohashi
to
Kanaya
in
Shidsuoka
in
to
Shidsuoka to Hakone
in
34 Hakone to Yokohama 20 Yokohama to Kamakara o
Yokohama
o
Tokio
o
Nikko
to
12
Tokio
to
Yokohama
366
16
to
in
.... ....
13
1
.
Nai-ku
Yamada
to
to Tokio Nikko Tokio
10
.
Yamada
Suruga
.
to
(interior temple)
Kanaya
16
Koya-zan to Hashimoto-mura
Osaka
o
Okunoin and
.
.
in Ise
Futami-ga-ura
Toyohashi I
.
Koya-zan
to
Tsu
and back to Tazimi in Mino 14 TazimitoIchi-no-kurainMino and back 12
24
.
....
back
Kioto to Ishibe
Nagoya o Nagoya
Ota-mura and
.
Wakayama back
I
and back
Wakayama
divided
Ri
Nai-ku to o
Arima to Kobe Kobe to Nara in Yamato Nara to Kioto in Yamashiro Kioto to Osaka in Settsu Osaka to Wakayama in Kii Wakayama to Kuroye-mura
foot
i
Ri.
o Tsu to Futami-ga-ura 14
and back
in Kii
I
Ishib to
Santa to Shibe-yamain Settsu Santa to Arima
Ken. Chio.
Kioto to Uji in Yamato and
o
-
Sumoto to K5be Kobe to Santa in Settsu
it is
Brought forward
hama Yokohama to Kobe in Settsu 145 Kobe to Sumoto in Awaji 14 Sumoto to Iga mura and back
i
I
Yoko-
to
as ours, only
Chio
....
Musashi
in
travelled in
about two and a half miles.)
is
Ri
Tokio
= ^ =
36 Chio Ri
same
I
shiaku equals
i
parts).
60 Kens (i
that
213
.
.
.
.
Idsu
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
214
A Japanese
blue
CHAPTER IX. book — Object my — Exportation of
I
HAVE now
my
described
of ginger-
visit
Manufacture of carpets,
etc.
experiences while passing through
a strange and interesting country
but while
;
place to place
I little thought that all that be published to the world but so it is.
I
travelled
said or did
I
from
was
to
After the lapse of
:
some months I received in London, a copy of a sort of blue book which had been printed and circulated throughout the manufacturing
districts
throw
my
on
light
portions
of Japan
journey
think
I
it
of this curious document.
same time a
letter
record seems to
as this
well to give translations of
received about the
also
I
English from poor Mr. Okubo,
in
brutally assassinated after
This
and
:
my
letter runs as follows "
who was
so
return to England. :
Interior Department, Tokio, Japan, " ibst of id month i \th year Meiji.
" Dr. Dresser. " Sir sent to
— In January
our
of last
Museum, and
I
loth year Meiji, you have brought the articles
am much
obliged
trouble to arrange them.
After your returning
have been
all
exhibited
to
the people,
and
I
you have taken the
that
home
last April, the
have notified
all
articles
through
the country your valuable informations, regarding to the important points of industry, which you have given to the officer visit to several industrial
could
make
all
industrial
establishments.
men
to
It
who attended you during your
must be
for
your kindness that
and I can assure you that in the future time they will progress and bring great interest upon the commerce. heretofore,
"
During your
visit
I
understand the points which were obscure
you have requested our
Museum
to
make
make
a
the models
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
215
now they have been
of ornamental ceiling of several temples at Tokio, and finished.
"Although they are very last service,
of
my
present
I
them
trifling
to you,
you
and not enough
to
compensate your
accept them as the token
will please
highest regard.
" With compliment, "
Okubo Toshimichi,
" Minister of Interior Departnie7itP
thus appears that Mr, Ishida and
It
structed to note
all I
Mr. Sakata were
in-
did and said, and to furnish a report of
my
doings to the Government
exact
sum expended
:
and so minute
this report that the
is
the purchase of various objects
in
and the amount of certain subscriptions which
I
is
noted,
gave to temples
named.
The
report
first
"
The purpose
explains
Thus
ing the country. for
it
is
who said
am and my
I
motives for
visit-
:
which Dr. Dresser came
to the
East was
to inspect the
productions of Japan and China, and to find out their prime cost
;
moreover,
he wishes to collect paintings and drawings, patterns on woven and dyed goods, and pictures of decorative colourings and sculptures on the temples
and other interior,
fine buildings in the interior of
Japan.
Hence,
he collected porcelain and Japanned wares
old patterns,
in
in his travels in the
which were preserved
woven goods both old and new, decorations of temples and other
fine buildings.
" In his
task
of collecting old
and new patterns and colourings. Dr.
Dresser gave special attention to the ancient works of Greece and
Europe, and
in
Rome
in
Asia he did not even omit the interior of India, sending agents
He has now accomplished, after much labour where he could not go himself. and great perseverance, the design of many years, setting apart a sum of 1
80,000 yen of
satisfied with
his
own money
for this
arduous undertaking.
Japan, where he obtained
many
old and
new
He was
especially
patterns and articles
of the highest interest.
" Having an extensive knowledge and fine taste in matters relating to the fine arts. Dr.
Dresser was extensively consulted as a very good authority by
various companies engaged in manufacturing porcelain wares, bronze articles,
The sums which he etc., about their patterns and colourings. way of remuneration from these companies suffice to pay his The costs of his Oriental travels were also borne by various com-
woven goods, received by expenses.
panies, so that he
felt
himself bound to find out something important by
which these companies might be benefited
in their various industry."
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
2i6
This East
the Japanese notion of the object of
is
and while there
:
many
as "
position
a good deal of truth in
is
new
altogether
facts
is
the various statements and
my
am
I
laughable, but
need not go through
I
and which are
say which are true
represented
Among
seventy different subjects. "
in
my
which
in
not,
readers can almost judge as to this themselves.
In this report
"
to the
Art adviser" to some of our leading manufacturers
has been misunderstood
as
visit
also contains
it, it
The manner
me.
to
my
The
as
giving
these are
on
information
:
Exportation of Ginger.
quantity of ginger used in
London
is
very great indeed, being used
bread of higher quaHty, sponge-cakes, sweetmeats,
etc.,
and
also as medicine.
The people of the city are very fond of it, and it has now, like tea and coffee, become almost indispensable. Now ginger does not grow in England, but is imported every year from the West Indies. As the quantity of ginger grown in
Japan
very large,
is
important staple. tight,
and not
This
if its
liable to
be
founded arose
explained that
and that
it
in
manner.
fresh from the ground,
Japan, and was informed that
was a valuable
article of
it
commerce
I
in
beef,
asked
did.
if
then
I
Europe,
might probably be advantageously included
it
and
Japanese meal, with one course of which
at a
grew abundantly
well
slices,
shredded ginger was served as we serve horse-radish with
and noticing that the ginger was it
would soon form an
conversation on which this paragraph
in the following
Being present (fish)
it
ought to be cut into thin
illustration of the general character
The
nature of this report. is
it
spoilt."
an admirable
is
exportation were begun
For exportation
in
the
exports of the country.
Being asked the uses to which ginger I
said that
it
was used
is
put in Great Britain,
in medicine, as a flavouring in confectionery,
and that a certain kind of cake,
called ginger-bread, in the
making
of which this article was employed, was enjoyed by our children.
Now we come
can quite understand
to be
"
bread
made
have been selected as rhizome, or
why
how
our term
of ginger;" but
illustrations
the city of
"
ginger-bread
why sponge-cakes
"
has
should
of the use of this pungent
London should have
preference over
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
other places as the seat of
The
special consumption,
its
been suggested by a knowledge of the
!
the Americans
fact that
apples in order to dry them.
Now
for
my "
"
description of the
Manufacture of Carpets
The manufacture
of carpets generally
London, England manufactured
is
each manufactory makes
;
"
The
London.
like
that of velvet, only the in
one kind, and the quantity
the warp
treble in velvet, so
is
in
from treble to quintuple, according to the fineness of
is
The
the pattern and texture. is
As
very large indeed.
carpet weaving warp
the stuff
is
in
There are four kinds now manufactured
threads and wires are longer.
all
cannot say
notion of the cutting of ginger into thin slices must have
slice
is
I
217
quintuple warp
is
used for very
and
fine pattern,
very thick. finest style is called the
'
Walton.'
In this
method the wire put
provided with a sharp knife-edge at one end, so that
taking
in
it
up
it
in
cuts
the threads put lengthwise, being like the velvet.
"
The
next
is
the
'
True Axminster,' and the method
manufacture of the highest quality
in the
in
Sakai Ken.
is
pursued
like that
In this method each
thread of the warp consists of threads of proper length of various colours tied to each other, so as to
form the figure required, woofs being put
in gradually.
But as the process takes a long time, only those of best quality and high price are manufactured. "
The
third style
is
the Templeton Patent Axminster, so called from the
In this the patterns are, like that of the wall paper, repeated over
inventor.
and over
Several breadths
again.
may
be put together so as to form a
continuous figure, according to the size of the room.
The
simple and good.
price
is
about
five
This method
is
very
dollars (twenty shillings) for a
square yard. "
The
differs
fourth
is
the Tapestry carpet.
The method
from the above three.
speedy.
This method
is
very simple, and
of dying the warp and woof
is
very
Before they are put on the weaving machine the threads are placed
in the order in
which they are
which colours are put threads on the
first
in
to
be woven, and put round a large cylinder on
proper pattern.
As
the cylinders roll in contact the
cylinder are dyed in proper colours.
which the method, which
is
This
is
the point in
very quick and convenient, differs from the
first
three."
This
is
put forward as
factures of England.^ 1
my
First, the
description of the carpet seat of this industry
is
manusaid to
For a description of the carpet manufactures of England, see the section on by the author.
subject in British Manufacturing Industries,
this
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
2i8
be London, where, until Mr. Morris erected his few handlooms
on Chiswick Mall a short time
The
years existed.
and the kinds of carpets produced jumble indeed
no carpet loom has
since,
many
for
description of the processes of manufacture, in
Great Britain,
is
a strange
!
Next comes a paragraph
entitled
The Carpets and Furnitures of European Manufactures
"
ARE unfit for A JAPANESE HOUSE.
my
" During
sojourn in Japan I observed the carpets, porcelain, and other European manufacture, in every house everywhere. All these articles are made for the use of the people of the lower class in England, and Moreover, European are never used in the houses of the middle class.
articles all of
merchants, finding that they can get the largest profit on these cheap
send inferior goods
Japan.
to
many
very sorry to see
made
in
own
their
many
articles,
perfect houses
excellent characteristics
Moreover, Japan
inferior articles.
Carpets are
country.
am
and deprived of
of the Japanese style spoilt
by the presence of these
I
is
a very productive
Osaka, Sakai, and some other places
and
:
and noted porcelain wares and furnitures are manufactured here. Therefore, if the houses are furnished and decorated with their home-manufactured articles, the admiration and wonder of Europeans who may enter these fine
houses
be
will
much more
deeply excited.
The people
unreasonably prejudiced in favour of the foreign
of
all
nations are
and care
articles,
home productions. This feeling seems ingrained in the brain it may be justly said that the foreign merchants get profits
little
of people.
for
And
only by availing
themselves of this feeling."
This
made
last
paragraph has arisen out of certain remarks which
I
respecting the furniture seen in the houses of one or two
Japanese
ministers,
for,
worthy gentlemen
undoubtedly, these
had been considerably imposed upon by foreign
European description,
articles
in
and such
their
make
dences of the lower middle classes in
other articles of
Next we
" I
for, I
are favoured with
way
their
into the resi-
England.
But how a
observe the carpets, porcelains, and
European manufacture
where," can be accounted
most
houses are of the very commonest
as scarcely
statement to the effect that
traders, as
am my
in
every house, every-
at a loss to
know.
opinion on the
AR T, AND AR T MANUFA CTURES. "
Manufacture of Hardware
" Very good hardwares are
London such machine-made
made
2
Osaka and Sakai Ken.
in
Osaka and Sakai Ken,
in
1
Now, in manu-
pieces of domestic furniture as have been
and polished, are not regarded with favour. At present handmade wares, not highly finished, with hammer marks shown, are becoming generally popular. This is one reason why it is important that factured in Europe, and are smooth
Osaka and Sakai should export
many
wants of the London
articles likely to suit the
But the wares which can answer
people.
to these
wants are of course not of
kinds and as every house in that city has fireplaces, stove, with the accompanying tongs and pokers, these tools should be made by hands without ;
using machinery, by the Japanese method
show hammer marks
as to in
London.
Again,
if
;
it
is
—
the hardwares fixed on the doors in the temples of
Osaka, Kioto, and Nara, be imitated, with
same
the
may
furniture sent from Japan, yet, as they will
of Japanese manufacture
The composition It
I
will
apparent, and in
There
London.
is
no doubt
attempt for a time to imitate the
work
at a
be sure to be more
of this paragraph
in
is
much
greater cost, articles
demand."
more
easily accounted
arose out of a conversation respecting hardware, in which
mentioned that persons of
black
hammer marks
colour, they will be greatly in request in
that although manufacturers in that city
for.
simply, without ornaments, and so
certain that they will be generally esteemed
hammered
fire-irons
taste in
artistic
to the
England preferred
highly polished productions of
Sheffield.
The next paragraph the report, as
it
that
we
sets forth, in a
select
way,
the most important in
is
my
appeal on behalf of the
temples and ancient monuments of Japan.
It is
"About the old Temples of Kasuga and Todaiji "
Yamoto
is
headed in Nara, Yamoto.
the most noted province of Kinai (five provinces about Kioto).
In Nara, especially, as being the seat of the ancient capitals, there are
many may be
still
to
and works of art from which the splendour of ancient European antiquarians in treating of long imagined.
be seen
buildings
times
clearly
past ages always proceed on evidence furnished
by what remains
in
ancient
towns, such as temples and other buildings, and are very careful to preserve the ruins as long as possible. relics
Now, Nara,
over one thousand years old,
the conditions of ancient times.
is
It is
as a place
full
of old ruins and
all who study Government should
of highest importance to desirable that the
and preserve carefully an ancient place like Nara. The dance of Mikanks (a sort of priestess) at Kasuga Temple is worthy of praise as preserv-
protect
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
220 ing
much
and
Among
of the old simplicity.
of Shozo-in not a single article interest,
is
to
the old articles in the treasure-store
be seen that
and which may not help us
is
not of the highest value
to realise the conditions of old
times
How happy I was and the splendour and excellence of ancient workmanship. In all to have the opportunity of seeing all these old and valuable articles !
my
shall
life I
never have another such joy."
Now we come
knowledge respecting the manner
may
shows some
to a paragraph that
want of
little
which custom-house duties
in
be altered.
That the Import Duty on the Saki (Japanese Spirituous
"
Liquor) ought to be Diminished. " Since the opening of Japan a certain
London
into
quantities.
England.
;
but as the price there
is
amount of
saki has been imported
very high
it
not sold in large
is
The high price is due to the heavy import duty charged in Now, the rule of the custom-house in England is to impose a very
heavy tax on the
only light duties on the others.
distilled spirit of alcohol, but
the custom-house officers look upon the saki as obtained by distillation
Now,
it but I have now examined personally method of brewing Japanese saki, and found out the mistake of the English Having some influence at the custom-house, I will custom-house officers. speak to the officers about it but the quickest and the best way of having this altered is for the Home Department to write to the English ambassador explaining this matter, and have it countersigned by him and sent to the The Government will then give proper orders to the English Government. custom-house officers to alter their present course and then the export of saki
and therefore impose a heavy duty on
;
the
;
;
will easily
"
be increased.
The author
says
part of the United
:
'
The middle and lower
quality in a high degree, as that
America.'
classes of
States like "volatile Hquors." it
sure to meet with
is
Dr. Dresser, struck by this
Americans
fact,
it
to Tiffany Store in
Tiffany Store has advertised already that
my
long before it
is
is
in
commercial
I
knew
Japan) a colourless beer, and not a
spirit,
certainly choice in
visit to
its
way.
Saki
produced by fermentation only, and not by
a fermented duty.
New York
cannot be too highly admired."
This extract
as
in
has received
it
Japanese saki from Dr. Dresser, whose sharpness and judgment affairs
this
much demand
has entered into contracts for the
export of the Japanese saki, intending to send City, to try its sale.
in every
Japanese saki has
As
the quality
fluid.
for
It is therefore
Americans
" in
liking
(as
distillation of
not chargeable with the spirit
" volatile liquors,"
a high degree," and
is
my making
and saki having
a contract for the
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
export of this exhilarating
York, I
fluid
this
report did
learn that
I
important business arrangement.
this
New
to the great silversmith of
can only say that only from
I
had achieved
221
certainly
I
had the honour of being intrusted by Messrs. Tiffany and Co. with the choice of any objects that
might think calculated to
I
aid in the development of their silversmith business interesting to
me
to
know
and most
that, after a careful
and
;
is
it
intelligent
consideration of these objects, Messrs. Tiffany and Co. produced
new works which secured to the firm the " grand Paris exhibition. Whether amongst the things one or two bottles
omega of my
the alpha and the
is
with saki or not
filled
I
prix
" at
the last
sent there were
cannot say
dealings in
;
but this alcoholic
this
beverage.
The
business astuteness with which
I
am
borne out by a small section of the report, sented as expressing "
That
my
profitable not to gain
it is
"
"
opinion on
credited
which
in
is,
I
perhaps,
am
repre-
Perseverance of Mind," and
much
interest
on
articles of sale."
Perseverance of Mind.
" Innumerable are the persons in every country who, either as individuals or in companies, undertake to produce any articles in a large scale for extensive
and who
sale,
fail at
the outset of their career owing to the deficiency of profit
to balance the expenditure.
The cause may be explained
as follows
:
— Such
persons stop short too soon through fear of losing not only the capital but also of incurring fresh losses from the deficiency of profit to balance the outlay
needed
to
keep up the business.
never stop so soon.
They if it
They look
Intelligent persons, however, in
management
after the
are careful to see whether unnecessary hands are employed at work, and,
be
so, to
have these extra hands got rid
production of articles required
may be
succeed
producing good
in
Again, the materials for the
of.
too expensive, and in this case they
have them bought cheaper by some means.
may
such case
of their undertakings.
articles
After
many
years' experience they
and gradually enlarging
their sale.
This success entirely depends on the endurance and energy of the persons concerned.
The
interests of all the traders in English
manufactures suffered
from these causes when the methods of modern manufactures were duced.
When
low price of
cheese was
five cents
first
manufactured
per pound.
expenses of production.
But
sold at twenty cents per pound.
its
It is
in
America
it
first
was sold
introat the
evident that this will not pay for the
is now so much improved that The cheese manufactured in Europe is
quality
it
is
sold
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
222
at sixty-two cents per
England increases year
of
many "
to
That
what
amount of American cheese imported
This success
what they
is
the result of the efforts
I
have heard of
and
it
call
commission of Toi-ya (an establishment
the
it,
the commission
is
ten per cent on the value of the
At present
exacted by toi-ya.
is
being too costly,
price
its
is
in
profit lies in
largely increasing the
China
this
commission
amount
The
is
a
on national
secret of carrying
producing cheap
of exportation.
is
The Japanese production
increased in proportion, and the consequence
diminution in the amount of exports.
manufactures at a
According
kinds for sale are deposited and distributed).
only one-sixteenth part on the value of the articles.
in
is
profitable not to gain much Interest on Articles of Sale.
it is
articles of all
articles,
the
after year.
years in America."
" There
where
Hence
pound.
to
articles at small profits,
and
in
There was one trading company
dealt in carpets, but few were purchased on account of the
England which
The high price was charged to balance the expenses of the The company was going to dissolve when one member urged
dearness of price. establishment.
He
another course. without any
profit,
reformed the rules of the company, and sold carpets
but lessened the size of carpet by only three longitudinal
With the profit thus The lowering of the price brought an and the company not only exists still, but prospers. increase of customers The postage of England also differed proportionally with the distances. The
lines
when compared with the company worked
arising the
carpets hitherto made. on.
;
postage for the most remote parts of the country was fixed at one the people
felt it
inconvenient to pay so much.
shilling,
and
Thereupon the Government
changed the established regulations of postage, and determined that the postage within the English dominion, distant or near, should be a penny. that occasion there this
change, would find
change the people doubled.
On
was one who protested that the Government, by making itself
felt its
involved in unexpected expenses
;
but after the
convenience, and the number of postage stamps was
The revenue of the post-office increased manyfold. From these clearly that cheapness insures an increase of it may be seen Nor can it be doubted in trade generally that the interest of the
two instances profits.
trader lies in selling his commodities cheap and in large quantities."
These wonderfully erudite disquisitions on the principles that govern the success of companies will fully account for the flattering remark contained
Now we
my
have
at the
end of the preceding paragraph.
a series of
paragraphs which profess to set forth
opinion of the various potters' wares and manufactures seen
during our journeyings.
One
finishes with this passage
:
ART,
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
223
" In London ladies and old ladies take great fancy to tea-cups and such
Those above the middle
things.
therefore, such trays
manufactured
class indulge in purchasing silver trays
;
Japan as having gold and silver inlaid, and which are not easily defaced, might become the rage of old patronesses. Beside this, iron frame of fan, inlaid with gold and silver, might suit the
demand
of genteel class."
I will
my
trouble
curious document. in
it
concerns us
readers with only one
This
all,
I
On the Happiness "
I
more extract from
this
give because the information contained
inasmuch as
happiness can be secured. "
in
reveals the
it
means by
w^hich
It is entitled
of the People of the Interior Parts of Japan.
for many months, and and everywhere they seem to be humble vocation, and show no signs of poverty. Accord-
have travelled about the interior parts of Japan
observed that the people's disposition contented with their ing to what
I
have heard they
is
quiet,
own
live in their
houses, and
it
is
very rare to
men and women beyond the age of twenty unmarried. This deserves much praise, for marriage is the most important affair of one's life and one who succeeds in perfecting the union is sure to derive happiness. Therefore, I find
;
should say that when the Japanese people are compared with Europeans, their
happiness far exceeds that of the
latter.
middle class have no houses of their own cannot marry, even when they attain to
;
In England, the people below the and more than the half of this class old age. They work hard, yet they
cannot escape poverty, or even meet their daily wants.
In the eyes of such
people a country like Japan might well seem a land of happiness.
But
for
and making them a vast resource, the English are well But for encouraging so happy a people as the Japanese to improve adapted. their industries, some special modes of direction must be devised." developing
It
all
arts,
must always be borne
in
mind,
from one language to another, that
in
dealing with translations
difficulties
may
arise
through
the idiomatic form that expression takes in the different languages,
and that the translation of technical terms impossible.
is
sometimes almost
This would be especially the case where our manu-
factures were described, as a country like Japan,
without machinery, would not have our technical terms.
ceeded is
in
in its
which
is
almost
language equivalents of
But supposing the Japanese translator suc-
conveying to his countrymen the meaning intended,
it
almost certain that the translation re-translated into English
would be so changed as
to
be almost unintelligible.
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
224
must say that
I
found
I
my
good
could judge, an excellent interpreter
;
Sakata, so far as
friend
and when
make
nature of our manufacturing processes he always seemed to the person to is
whom
I
I
explained the
I
talked understand what was meant.
But
it
one thing to explain a new process of weaving to a weaver, or a
new process of printing to a printer, and a very different thing make a person who knows nothing of a process understand
to its
nature.
Sakata had but
little
knowledge of manufacturing processes,
and both he and Ishida laboured under they could but seldom have recorded
some time
till
so.
But as
this
report
it
after
my
remarks and explanations
was evidently not intended that occurred
I
difficulty of
should
my
know
that
making an exact
was greatly increased.
Sakata, sometime after he had heard
them
disadvantage that
they were given, even had they wished to do
was being prepared, the
of what
record
this great
Besides
this,
explanations, translated
to Ishida, who, in the absence of the
drawings that
little
generally accompanied such explanations, would probably
fail
to
understand what was meant.
This
will
account for some of the eccentricities of this report.
Such a mistake as
as that
which describes
"
bread of high quality
made from ginger we can understand,
for our
bread" would be most misleading to a foreigner.
term
"
;
but
rendering should fairly represent the Japanese document, that
its
and to
publication
injure
my
is
likely to
reputation
;
Ginger-
We must
every excuse for a document such as the present
"
make
if
this
I
fear
mislead the Japanese seriously,
for in
such explanations as that of
the carpet manufactures, any one having the most rudimentary
knowledge of the processes by which carpets are made, could only think that
I
to instruct them.
was trying
to deceive the
Japanese rather than
PART
II.
CHAPTER It has been said that "architecture
I.
is
the material expression of
the wants, faculties, and the sentiments of the age in which
and that
created,"
" style
architecture
in
is
it
is
the peculiar form that
expression takes under the influence of climate and materials at
command."
It
has also been asserted that
causes which act most the climate,
after
which a nation
is
is
powerfully on
"
the influence of the
genius of the Arts,
the
the manners, religion, and the changes
subject in
its
political state
to
during the course of
ages."
All
must out
who have
feel
in
studied the architecture of various
the truth of these statements.
a most striking manner
architecture
marked by great
for
;
countries
In Japan they are borne
here
we have
a
form of
individuality of expression, manifest-
ing to a striking degree the nature of the material of which structures are built, tions
under which
and owing
it
exists,
its
special
and the
its
features to the condi-
religions with
which
it
is
associated.
Before tecture,
we can understand
and of the
arts
the true nature of Japanese archi-
which have sprung from
be said of the religion of the country
from a study of the religion nature of
many
will
;
it,
something must
and the knowledge gained
enable us to comprehend the
ornaments, as well as the reason of
architectural features.
Q
many
striking
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
2 26
—
Japan two religions ^the Buddhist and the The former was the rehgion of the now dethroned Shinto. As the Shogun was the Shogun, and the latter of the Mikado. temporal ruler, and appeared in public, the religion which he There are
in
professed had magnificent shrines and temples of great beauty.
But as the Mikado up to the year 1868 was kept the religion of which he was chief was
Shinto temples were few
when
in seclusion,
to pass outside the walls of his simple palace,
and never allowed
somewhat
number and small
in
The
neglected.
in their proportions
compared with the magnificent shrines devoted to the service
of the
Shogun 's
faith.
The Shinto worship, and
much
is
religion
undoubtedly a very early form of
is
Europeans have been
of most primitive character.
puzzled with
its
misunderstood them
;
some
tenets,
and have
yet
cannot help thinking that
I
the mystery with which they surround
in
it
is
cases altogether
entirely of
much of their own
creating.
This religion was called by the Japanese
which means,
— way,
or doctrine of the
Chinese form of the same generally adopted
in
has
Shinto
centuries
is
gods
Kami-no-michi,
—
The
theology.
Shinto, and this expression has been
Japan
But
the national religion.
for
become modified
through
contact
for
with
Buddhism, and but few temples now exist which have preserved its
ancient purity.
In
his
excellent
work on Japan,^
Japanese mythology the universe
is
Grififis
the descendant and representative of the gods
and earth (Japan) to
hence
;
us
tells
that
Japan, while the Mikado
who
in is
created heaven
it is
the imperative duty of
all
tell
us of the nature
Shinto,
Japanese
obey him.
He says "
then goes on to
.
of
and
:
The
chief characteristics of Shinto are worship of ancestors
deification of emperors, heroes,
forces of Nature.
It
and
employs no
idols,
symbols are the mirror and the gohei, ^
The Mikado's Empire, by
W.
and the
scholars, also adoration of the personified
images, or effigies in
—
strips of
E. Griffis.
its
worship.
Its
notched white paper depend-
Harper Bros.,
New
York,
ART, wand
ing from a
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
of wood.
It
227
teaches no doctrine of the immortahty of the
soul. ''
The
native term for
man
the INIikado's heir-apparent was
hito (hght-bearer)
is
—
'light inheritor.'
;
and the ancient
title
of
Fire and light (the sun)
have, from the earliest times, been objects of worship.
'•The leading principles of Shinto
and
ancestors, It
life.
He must
priest
bind a
by
rites
and ceremonies
and the ground dedicated
for
the water being ladled from the trough and poured over the hands,
washing
may
to a religious festival
Outside every Shinto temple are large troughs
salt.
officiating.
paper over his mouth so that his breath
strip of ;
deeds of
for bodily purifica-
must bathe and put on clean garments before
pollute the offering purified
are, imitation of the illustrious
prove themselves worthy of such descent by purity of
abhors uncleanness, and has
The
tion.
effort to
not
is first
washing,
and
this
enjoined before the offering of prayer.
is
" In olden times the emperors and priests performed ablutions for the people.
Later on, twice a year, at the festivals of purification, paper figures
symbolising the people were thrown into the river as an allegorical representation of the cleansing of the nation
Mikado deputed
" Later the
from the sins of the past year. the minister of religion at Kioto to perform
the symbolical form for the people of the whole country. " Thanksgiving, supplication,
penance and
praise,
are
all
represented
in
the prayers to the gods.
" Usually in prayer the hands are clapped twice, the head or the knees
bowed, and the petition made over a gong, so as to " is
in
The kami, silence.
people.
call
The worshipper
silence.
in
enter the temple, but stands before
it,
first
often does not
pulling a rope, which dangles
down
the attention of the Deity.
or gods, hear the prayers before they are uttered, and prayer
The Mikado
daily offers
prayers of special efficacy for his
Offerings are laid with great ceremony, by priests in white robes,
—
and vegetables, fish and venison at night they become Game and fowl are offered as an act of worship, but their lives are not sacrificed. They are hung up by the legs before the temple for some time and are then set free. Being now sacred they are exempt from harm. This practice of offering fowls now appears to have before the gods
as fruit
;
the property of the priests.
ceased.
"Before each temple stood a
torii
or bird rest" (Fig. 39).
" This
was formed
of two upright tree-trunks, on the top of which rested horizontally another tree
with projecting ends this
;
underneath
this
was another smaller horizontal beam
daybreak.
on
In later times, as the practice of offering fowls has been discontinued,
the use of the torii has
painted or coppered torii is
its
As a Shinto erection, it was The Buddhists, however, piece, made it of stone or bronze.
been almost forgotten.
always of plain wood and consisted of right
The
;
perched the fowls offered up to the gods as chanticleers to give notice of
posts, curved
a purely Japanese work.
its
top
lines.
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
228
" All the miyas, or Shinto temples, were rigidly simple
pure wood
— thatched
and no
were allowed to adorn
(defile)
— constructed
metal, nor
paint, lacquer, gilding,
of
ornament
them.
" Within the temple, only the Gohei
— or
of notched white paper,
strips
In a closet of purest wood is a case of and the daily offerings are visible. wood containing the 'august spirit substance' or 'god seed.' This spirit substance is usually a mirror, which in some temples is exposed to view. " The priests are of various ranks, some receiving titles from the emperor, They dress the higher are court nobles and are strictly government officials. as other people do, some wearing white robes, however, when officiating, or court They marry, rear families, and do not shave the head. dress when at court. " Virgin priestesses also minister at the shrines.
Many
"
regarding
scholars doubt whether Shinto
is
a genuine product of Japan,
as closely allied to the ancient religion of
it
Many
before Confucius.
China which existed
of the Japanese myths are almost exactly like those
of China. " Motoori
—the
great
modern
revivalist of Shinto, teaches that
morals were
invented by the Chinese because they were an immoral people, but in Japan there was no necessity for any system of morals, as every Japanese acted
own
rightly if he only consulted his to
obey the Mikado
The duty
heart.
in all things without question
Chinese, who presume to With the Japanese, government and
like the
of a good Japanese
is
only immoral people,
is
it
;
discuss the character of their sovereigns. religion are the
This explanation of Shinto and
its
same
thing."
usages throws but Httle
light on the true character of the religion, and there are one or two little
particulars in
and even
Even
which
wrong, for we frequently find metal
it is
metal, used
gilt
in
connexion with Shinto buildings.
the great temples in Ise have certain of their parts encased
in gilt
metal sockets.
Satow says
—
"
There
is
good evidence that Shinto resembles
the ancient religion of China very closely.
.
.
The sword and
.
the dragon, the thyrsus staff and ivy, the staff of Esculapius, and
snakes most probably had the same religious significance as the
Japanese gohei, and as Siebold has remarked, union of the two elements
The Rev. of the
S. R.
term a
it
symbolised the
— male and female."
Brown says
religion, but
—
"
Shinto
is
in
no proper sense
has rather the look of an original
Japanese invention," while Sir Harry Parkes agrees with Satow in
thinking that
it
reached Japan from the continent of Asia.
Sir
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART, Harry says
—"The
229
practice of putting sticks with shavings or paper
attached in order to attract the attention of the spirits
among Yezo
certain hill tribes of India, as well as
(the northern island of
Japan)
observable
is
among
the Ainos of
the Hindoos, Burmese, and
:
Chinese, have converted these sticks into flags or streamers." I
had many conversations with Japanese of the Shinto
me
respecting their religion, and they invariably told for help
were never offered to their gods
;
and that
it
that prayers
was a
religion
At
intended, primarily, to keep alive the sense of gratitude.
—whether god waste ground — they
who was
maker
of war, or the
deified as the
of a harbour, or the reclaimer
of
thanks to the deified individual
who had
the
a warrior as
shrines dedicated to their great benefactors
Ojin the emperor,
faith
offered
benefited the country.
But upon being told that the immortality of the soul was not admitted by the believers
time in thanking an individual extinct,
and who could
homage
offered.
was nice
alive
whom
my
Summed
up,
'
I
I
was informed that
the sense of gratitude, and that
who
Shinto consists of
—
they wasted
they regarded as altogether
question,
pleasant to offer thanks even to one
and phallic worship,
why
no way understand the nature of the
In reply to
keep
to
in
inquired
in Shinto, I
three of
fire
on the I2th of January, the village near Forres.
called the 'Douro.
'
— On
festival of
On a headland On the evening
was
it
could not hear. worship,^ hero worship,
mankind.
the early worships of
cut the following paragraph from a recent issue of one of our daily papers
" Relics of Fire Worship.
:
the last day of the year, old style, which
'The Clavie
'
it
falls
takes place at Burghead, a fishing
in that village stands
an old
Roman
of January 12th a large tar-barrel
altar, locally
is set
on
fire
and
by one of the fishermen round the town, while the assembled folks shout an holloa. The man with the If the man who carries the barrel falls, it is an evil omen. lighted barrel having gone with it round the town, carries it up to the top of the hill, and places it on the Douro. More fuel is immediately added. The sparks as they fly carried
upwards are supposed
be witches and
to
evil
spirits
leaving the
town
;
the people,
and curse them as they disappear in vacancy. When the burning tarbarrel falls in pieces, the fishwives rush in and endeavour to get a lighted bit of wood from its remains with this light the fire on the cottage hearth is at once kindled, and it is therefore, shout at
;
considered lucky to keep in this flame all the rest of the year. Clavie spirits
is
collected
and put
in bits
coming into the house.
up the chimney,
The Douro
{i.e.
the
Roman
thick layer of tar from the fires that are annually lighted is
a very ancient
Roman
The
charcoal of the
to prevent the witches
upon
altar) it.
is
and
Close to the Douro
well, and, close to the well, several rude but curious
sculptures can be seen let into a garden wall."
evil
covered with a
Roman
2
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
30
On
nights Shinto temples are
feast
seem
to constitute an
surrounded by
important element
in
which
fires
the festival
;
and
Futamigaura we found pilgrims assembled to worship the sun,
between
seen
as
two
by a straw band
rocks connected
from which the Shinto symbols are pendent. have the worship of
fire
and of the sun
—
the latter being the
Hero
everywhere manifest, and temples are erected to the
is
great of
The
time.
all
mystery of the origin of few years will
manifestation of phallic worship life,
very conspicuous.
is
outward symbols of
all
—
But
element of Shinto
this
Government have ordered
We
the
faith are,
their demolition.
have seen that the great emblem of the Shinto religion
At
a mirror.
Ise a mirror
is
the principal Shinto temples at Kamiji-yama in
preserved in the most sacred of the buildings
is
the mirror having been brought
Amaterasii to Ninigi
;
the road to
;
down from heaven and given by
while imitations of this mirror occur in
the different Shinto churches.
we saw on
a
in
be destroyed, striking and marvellous though they yet
for the
we
Here, then,
great source of heat, and the giver of heat to the world.
worship
at
rising
Nikko
It will
also be
remembered that
priests carrying to a great festival an
ark containing the mirror.
The mirror
is
said to symbolise the
and thoughts should be open and
visible
manner ;
in
which actions
for as the mirror reveals
our image, so our acts and thoughts ought to be capable of being revealed without our being ashamed.
This
principle
is
rigidly carried
out
in
the construction of
every Shinto temple.
Every part of the
edifice,
whether seen or unseen, manifests
an amount of honest workmanship which perfect
;
and
in
in its finish
no part of the building can we
is
simply
find slovenly work,
however small or perfectly concealed the part may
be. Here we embodiment in spirit of Whatsoever thy hand findeth
have the very essence of Shinto, and an that passage in our to do, all life.
do
it
society,
with
and
own
all is
Scriptures
thy might." carried out
:
"
In Japan the principle permeates
by the work performed
in
daily
AR T, AND ART MANUFA CTURES. In Japan Shinto
brought home to the people, be they of
is
For centuries the Mikado has
or be they Buddhists.
faith
this
23
been regarded as the god incarnate of the Shinto Church, and as a
human eye
being altogether too sacred for
house there
is
a
Mikado would sit come to be associated
with their gods. ;
from the principal
less cut off
niche has
this
made
more or
On
and the end almost enclosed.
floor,
this
should he ever visit the house
dais the
raised
and
space,
little
room, with a raised
In every
to rest upon.
New
and on
Year's
Day
found a mass of dough,
I
a vase, containing a flower which
is
in the
Usually
each of these sacred enclosures.
in
;
Japanese mind
niche that household offerings are
It is in this
form of a cake, offered
in the
offered to the gods,
and a
censer, stand on the dais.
Were
the
Mikado
to visit the house, the person
serving his
food would not see him, but would pass the viands through the
opening at the bottom of the side
There
is
this
partition.
strange mingling of Shinto with the
Japanese people, whatever be their
faith
;
life
of the
and even the Mikado,
although the head of the Shinto church, offers prayers for the nation on certain occasions at a Buddhist shrine.
This
little altar-like
constructed according to
which characterises
all
we
enclosure which rule,
and
in
Shinto altars
that finish
it
;
find in every is
house
is
demanded
thus this royal enclosure
gives a sort of keynote with which the whole house
must be
in
harmony.
To
me,
productions. it
in
appears that we have here the cause, to a great
the
of
extent,
it
which
excellence
This
little altar
The
seasons of prosperit}-.
arranged
in this sacred niche.
Offerings are
flowers so
have learnt from their early childhood to
No
one can have
as well as
most which are
a
box which
is
carved
made on
cherished are
this
sample they
revere.
failed to notice that all
good Japanese works,
inferior, are as well finished in the parts
that are unseen as in the parts that are seen.
me
much
Japanese
Thus the Japanese have constantly
them a sample of excellent work, and
before
most
characterises
gets loved.
all
over, yet the
I
have here before
best
work
is
on the
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
232
Here
bottom.
as carefully
is
drawn
a tray, on the under surface of which as the figures
on the upper surface
a pot which has a pattern on the bottom parts usually seen,
not more
if
exceptional instances
;
it is
are,
however, somewhat
not usual to find ornament
on the bottom of a Japanese work, we yet observe that the of the parts hidden
The
finish
equal to that of the parts exposed.
is
decoration on the bottom of an object would seem to
origin to the fact that
its
is
as beautiful as that on the
These
so.
but while
a spray
is
and here
;
agreeable surprise, and to the feeling,
gentlemen, that whatever
common
worn or whatever
is
owe
persons receive pleasure from an
all
is
to
Japanese
all
used shall look
simple and unpretending, and yet be worthy of most minute ex-
A
amination. minister to
—
kindly gave
a mere rude hedge-stick to
Yeno
walking-stick which Mr.
England
;
me
—
the late Japanese
appears at
first
sight to be
but upon close examination
being half buried
in the bark,
and some running along the
some crawling out of the
Wooden
surface.
seen
is
it
have most exquisitely cut metal insects creeping over
it,
—some holes,
little
netsukies, or large
button-like ornaments, hanging from the girdle are preferred to
those of ivory, because they are more quiet in colour and less obtrusive.
the
But as gentlemen prefer the more
wooden carvings
subdued
effects
are generally better than those in ivory.
writing-boxes on the same principle
more lovely decoration
we
generally find a
inside the lid than on the top.
In
much
But
it is
the excellence of the work, whether seen or unseen, that springs
from the principles of Shinto, and not the surprises of which we "
now
speak. Shinto, so far as
I
could learn, has but
causes adoration of the sun
love for nature.
It
the sun that the
warmth
growth and
life.
be sustained
in
little effect in
is
and
it is
from
derived which stimulates plants
Also, without
the world.
;
producing
its
But
genial rays
it is
for that strange love of all created
to
no animal
life
to
could
Buddhism we must look
things which characterises the
in such a marked manner Through the labours of Professor Max Miiller and others we have become more or less acquainted with the nature of Buddhism.
Japanese
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART, I
will
233
content myself, therefore, with remarking that Buddhism
Japan consists of a number of
some of which
sects (about a
hundred and
in
fifty),
arc almost wholly spiritual, while others are utterly
idolatrous.
A
Buddhist
The
of created things.
not harm
it
and
;
not destroy an insect or injure the smallest
will
I
child will play with the butterfly, but will
have seen
on children's hands.
butterflies alight
Birds are not afraid of man, for they have long since learnt to confide in a people that never hurt safe
them
and wild-fowl are as
;
on the moat of Tokio Castle, although they are
of a large
city, as
they could be
if
in the centre
removed altogether from the
abodes of man.
To me insects,
the love which the Japanese seem to have for birds,
and
flowers,
Japan a harmony between man I
There seems
most charming.
is
had never before seen
to
they love
all
flowers, the
—
in
yet there are peculiarities respecting
;
While
Japanese affections which we ought not to pass unnoticed.
to look up,
be
and the lower creatures such as
Japanese prefer those to which they have
as the flowers
of trees
;
and
uncommon
not
it is
to
find in their illustrations poets kneeling under trees and looking
up adoringly favourite,
and
at for
The almond -tree
blossoms.
the
them
it
especial beauty
has
pliment ladies by speaking of their is
also a favourite tree
with pleasant picnics
;
;
but this
for,
as
is
"
almond
;
we have make
seen,
The cherry
eyes."
associated in the
excursions which the Japanese
mind of many
some of the happiest
are to cherry-covered hills
where families congregate to enjoy a pleasant da}\ is
the flower of spring.
The
a special
is
thus they com-
sacred bean
The almond
(Nelumbium)
is
the
The chrysanthemum is the flower of autumn. We have just seen that the almond typifies beauty, and we may Buddha sits upon the flower, add that the Nelumbium is sacred. flower of summer.
and the Buddhist prays that he may have a come. tion to
The chrysanthemum
is
imperial,
lily in
the world to
and bears the same
Japan that the rose does to England.
It is also
rela-
the chief
of the seven favourite flowers of the country.
Such associations are common
to
man
in all parts of
the world,
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
234
and they must not be confounded with that love of nature which
owes
origin to the rehgion of
its
The two
great facts
of Japanese art are these,
now
—
Buddha.
before us which concern our study
home
Shinto, which has influenced the
of every Japanese for a long series of centuries, has stimulated the people to the most conscientious work created a love for
many
account for
we begin
Before
at
and Buddhism has will
of those qualities which characterise Japanese
works, be they temples, objects of
must look
;
These two influences
natural objects.
all
utility,
or ornaments.
Japanese architecture
to consider
itself
we
one or two of those circumstances which have always
modified the architecture of a nation, as the climate, the materials at
command
for the
erection of edifices, and the wants which
have consequently to be met by the production of a building.
Although Japan has a considerable
rainfall,
the rain
is
almost
exclusively confined to one season of the year (about six weeks,
between the end of April and the early part of June), and
wet period This
is
is
this
followed by a continuance of hot weather.
a general statement, but the climate
the same throughout the whole of Japan.
is
by no means
In the central portion
some winter days, while the heat is great in summer but the long and severe frosts of the north are unknown at the Satsuma end of the country. cold
is
intense on ;
The Japanese
seek shelter from the rain, and they desire houses
They
which give shade from the sun. which allow of the
freest
circulation of
people, and can stand cold, and in the is
practically an
outdoor
life.
At
also air.
buildings
require
They
are a hardy
warmer season
lead
what
period of the year, and
this
indeed through most of the winter days, the window-like surroundings of their houses are removed,
when
all
that remains
is
a roof
supported on uprights.
But although a Japanese house shelter from rain
by other
is
a building intended to afford
and sun, the nature of the building
is
influenced
causes.
Japan
is
a land of earthquakes.
And
this brings us to
one of
the most singular facts connected with the structure of Japanese
ART, buildings
;
—
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
235
a method adopted with the special view of insuring
safety during these periods of the earth's vibration.
Japanese houses and temples are put together simple manner, each work being complete in
it
upon foundations, or fixed
built
on round-topped stones of such a height as
rest
in
is
ground on which
to the
stands upon a series of legs, and these legs usually
It
rests.
and
in a solid
and having an
Thus a Japanese house
altogether independent existence.
no way
itself,
during the
will,
rainy season, support the timber uprights above any water that
may
upon the ground.
lie
obvious that while an object fixed to the earth might,
It is
become
rocked, be broken off from the ground or
destroyed, that that which
would simply
loose
is
down again after the cause of its stance, we may cause a chair or a very short time
in a
jured
of pressure on the upper part (especially
would be
am
likely to injure or destroy
but
be unin-
if
the top was it
it.
aware that much damage has occurred through some of
the severe earthquakes
Yedo
across
it,
in-
any upheaving of a portion of the ground on which
heavy), or
I
For
jolting will
settle
whereas, were the legs fixed, the application of a small
;
amount rests,
and
vibration had ceased.
table to rock by become stationary and
will
it
and
strained
oscillate
if
struction of property
Japanese
felt in
within the
memory
and
cities
loss of
life.
I
;
and one that passed
men caused
of living
am
great de-
confident that such
calamities as these are due simply to the fact that the Japanese
place
roofs
tile
shaken
loose,
upon
their houses, for these
sparks led to the use of
dred years since. Japan.
can readily be
and are heavy and dangerous.
The Japanese, as I have suffer much from fire, and it
in
tiles
Thatch
said is
in
an early part of
this
book,
probable that the dread of falling instead of thatch about five hun-
tiles
Yet thatched buildings are even now common in
Japan
formed of straw, certain fibrous
is
materials, or layers of the inner bark of a kind of cone-bearing tree.
Some
looks well, but in
It
warm weather
of the prettiest roofs that
of what
1
misfht describe as
I
little
is
have seen
wooden
highly combustible. in
tiles.
Japan are formed
Now
there are
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
2 36
many
substances
will render
bustible
;
known
to chemists, as
have already
I
which
said,
wood almost wholly incom-
both vegetable fibres and
hence wooden roofs treated with such substances might
be advantageously used, and thus the one objection which at present exists to a Japanese building, as a thing intended to resist the
shock of an earthquake, would be removed. ing to
know
It
would be
whether injury resulted to the inmates of
interest-
any thatched
buildings during recent earthquakes.
In an account of the destruction of Chios by earthquake given in the
Standard of April
i
2th
the correspondent says
last,
" Climbing over the hills which surrounded the town, one looks
:
down upon
a confused heap of ruins, where httle more than a week ago stood one of the
most prosperous
cities
Out of three thousand houses which
of Asiatic Turkey.
were standing there, not a hundred are now habitable. "
I
descended a long, narrow
street leading to
most populous quarters of the
city.
heaps of debris from ten
fifteen
to
In doing so
I
Marina, through the once
had
to
climb over successive
high, lying between tottering walls
feet
rent into most fantastic shapes.
" Some of the houses had been lifted bodily off their foundations. Others were crushed into shapeless heaps, with here and there a single wall or minaret left
standing above the chaos. " Right and left of the direction
I
took were narrow streets, which are
now
Here and there I caught sight of a row of houses with window panes, doors, and balconies comparatively uninjured, whilst behind this deceptive framework the roof and every story had
so entirely blocked as to be undistinguishable.
been torn from the front * "
The
walls.
*
*
bazaar, which
is
*^
wooden, suffered
gradually being reopened.
They
little,
-X
and the markets are now
are comparatively well stocked, owing to
provisions constantly pouring in from other parts of the island."
Here we have an instance of the value of wooden buildings a land subject to earthquakes
;
and certainly there
danger of being injured from a shock
and the roof in its place.
is
of a material which
is
Yet the Europeans
if
light
in
is
the building
is
little
of
wood
and can be held securely
Tokio are encouraging the
Japanese to build European houses with stones and bricks the
Government
that the
offices are
new Mikado's
of these materials, while
palace be
in
but
also
it
is
of European
;
and
proposed character.
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
To me nothing architectural
237
could be more absurd than this departure from
custom which has had the sanction of ages
;
and the
probably be a return to
result of this incongruous innovation will
the native style of building after the occurrence
some
of
dire
calamity. It
but
may
be argued that Japanese castles are built of stone
;
must be remembered that these are formed of vast blocks
it
so arranged, one on the other, that each wall
is
of pyramidal
shape, slanting from the base to the apex in the old
tied together with timbers of great size fair to
Egyptian
These walls are also supported from within, and are
manner.
;
indeed
it
would almost be
say that the castle towers are wooden buildings of immense
strength faced with slanting walls which consist of stones,
stone being in It
some cases more than twenty
would obviously be impossible
—each
feet in length.
to build ordinary houses of
vast masses of stone, or to give to their walls that thickness and
them to any degree safe against shocks But the new buildings erected in Tokio have
slope which would render
of earthquake.
neither of these safeguards against injury in their erection a risk is
A
notable
;
hence
to
many have
appears that
instance of the Japanese understanding of the
manner of giving
conditions under which they exist occurs in the security
it
run which seems most unwise.
Pagodas are often of great height, yet
pagodas.
existed for seven hundred years, and have withstood
successfully the
many
vibrations of the ground, which
must have
had they been erections of
inevitably achieved their overthrow
stone or brick.
When
I first
ascended a pagoda
of timber employed in
its
I
was struck with the amount
construction
;
and
I
could not help
feeling that the material here wasted was even absurdly excessive.
But
what offended
enormous
log of
ascended from
its
my
wood,
feelings in
base to
timber was nearly two feet
most was the presence of an
the centre of the structure, which its
in
apex.
At
the top this mass of
diameter, and lower
down
a log
equally large was bolted to each of the four sides of this central
mass.
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
238
was so surprised with
I
attention of
my
this
waste of timber that
good friend Sakata to the matter
To my
denounced the use of the centre block.
me
told
central
must be strong
that the structure
my
In
mass.
ignorance
I
;
I
called the
and especially
astonishment he
to support the vast
replied that the centre part
was not supported by the sides, but upon reaching the top I found this monstrous central mass suspended, like the clapper of a bell
;
and when
could, by lying on the ground, see
had descended I was an inch of space intervening between
I
that there
earth which formed
The pagoda
is
Christian church retain
its
;
to
for
:
centre of gravity
is
it
and the
pagoda.
a Buddhist temple what a spire
and by
its
clever construction
it
is
is
to a
enabled to
even during the continuance of earth-
vertical position
quake shocks
I
the floor of the
by the swinging of
this
vast
pendulum the
kept within the base.
now understood
the reason for that lavish use of timber which
and I see that there I had so rashly pronounced to be useless is a method in Japanese construction which is worthy of high ;
appreciation.
In the absence of any other instance the employment
of this scientific
method
of keeping the
pagoda upright shows how
carefully the Japanese have thought out the requirements to be met.
In a work like the present, which treats of architecture some-
what incidentally and with the view of throwing light rather upon the decorative arts which have arisen out of it than of examining the structural methods employed, I cannot afford to enter minutely into Japanese construction.
All
I
can do in the present work
is
to offer a few illustrations of the principles which govern their methods of construction and of certain effects produced.
The drawing which
is
Nishi-hongwan-ji at Kioto
given (Fig. 41)
may
be taken as an example.
end consists of three pillars or uprights square, tied together
carved panels. tie
the
The
cornice,
—one
circular
central of the three horizontal
Above
is flat,
is
Each
and two
Between these are
by horizontal members.
the uprights together uprights.
of the east gate of
members
that
and protrudes considerably beyond
a system of
brackets which act as a
and by which a heavy thatched roof
is
sustained.
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART.
A
glance at
beautiful
our sketch (Fig. 41) will
manner
which
in
this
work
stones which
form the bases of
the columns,
and on which the
shafts
loosely rest,
The
apparent. will
with
once show the
at
The
framed together.
once
at
gate as a whole as a
work con-
due
regard
be noticed
structed
are
is
:39
to
strength as well as beauty.
In this
amount
gateway there
of complication
upper
bracketwork
render
it
somewhat
is
in
which
an the
may
Fig. 72.
A
Compound Bracket.
A, Sections of horizontal members carried by the brackets.
indistinct to
those not conversant with this method of building to illustrations
72,
73,
and 74, the principle
;
but by reference
\\hich guided
the
architect will be better understood.
In speaking of structure reference ought to be
Fig. 73.
bridges of Japan.
made
to the
Entrance-gate of the Uemple of Dai-butz, Kioto.
These, some have said, prove that the Japanese
have no true understanding of the principles of construction.
To me
it
seems
that
we might
as
well
deny the existence
of structural knowledge in England, because in certain parts of
240
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE, ETC.
the country
we
find planks
spanning
rivers,
and other
ill
contrived
arrangements for the crossing of brooks, as deny to the Japanese a knowledge which they possess to a remarkable degree, because
we
find in their bridges instances of false construction.
Japanese bridges are of in character, others are of a
Fig. 74.— Bracketing
many
kinds:
— some are most primitive
complex nature
;
some show an
while
supporting Roof of Temple-gate, Chionijin, Kioto.
understanding of true structural
qualities.
Figs. 75, y6, "jy, 78,
and 79 give native drawings of some common bridges of the country.
The most simple for the
bridge
—
if
bridge
passage of rivers where there
is
it
but
may be little
called
traffic
—used
consists
of two trunks of trees placed side by side, and having one ex-
tremity fixed at one side of the
river,
while the other, which reaches
within jumping distance of the opposite side,
is
held in
its
position
by a rope fastened to a peg at some little distance up the stream. But from this they advance through every conceivable (Fig. 80). degree of complexity.
There are bridges formed of are bridges
made
piles of fagots (Fig. 75).
There
of straight bamboos, resting on supports in the
river so that the bridge
is flat
(Fig. yG).
There are others similarly
Native Bridges, from Blocks drawn and engraved
in
Japan
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
242
formed, only with the centre raised so that the bridge somewhat
There
resembles an inverted V. of stout planks, which
rest
while
;
in
water
—
;
Bridge.
there are others consisting of semicircular
a bridge with
flows.
— Simple
Kioto we find what
Fig.
bridge,"
Japan formed
There are bridges supported by a complicated
trees.
system of bracketing arches
also a bridge in
on the decapitated branching tops of
Fig. 8o.
two large
is
8i.
two
— Arched
is
called
the " spectacle
Bridge.
circular openings through
which the
But what has caused Europeans to regard the
ART,
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
Japanese as devoid of a knowledge of structure
some of the bridges which have the arch form
is
243 the fact that
are yet propped
by
supports (Figs. JJ, 'jZ, 79, and 81). As these supports come in contact with the under surface of the arch, such bridges reveal no
understanding of structural
qualities.
So
far as I
have seen, these
curved, and yet supported, bridges are invariably formed of
hence they
differ
wood
;
widely from arched structures formed of stone.
Yet if Japan contains many illustrations of false structure, these do not prove that Japan does not possess men who have perfect understanding of true structural principles.
The Japanese have never been
engineers, but
great
have, undoubtedly, been great architects.
they
Architecture involves
a knowledge of structure, but engineering does not necessarily involve any knowledge of the beautiful, as
our dismay so that
it
in
will
A man
England.
we
so often discover to
may be able to construct an edifice may be altogether unable to
stand securely, but he
No
erect a beautiful building.
one could look upon either the great
temples of Shiba or of Nikko without feeling that the architect of these glorious buildings understood perfectly the principles both
of construction and of beauty.
One of
great peculiarity of Japanese construction
bracketing which
carries to a
it
so
often
remarkable extent
in
employs —
some
cases;
is
the system
a system which
and which
it
it
almost
invariably uses for the support of the overhanging roofs of richly
decorated temples.
An
elaborate
system
of
bracketing
frequently
between the roof and the uprights, and acts as a (see Figs.
41 and 70).
In some cases this system
extent which seems altogether extravagant.
(In
sort is
intervenes of cornice
carried to an Figs.
68 and
74 we have the most complicated arrangements of brackets that In many cases we have brackets emI saw while in Japan.) bedded in the wall where plaster intervenes between the timbers, as in Figs. 46 and 73, and in internal work they are almost as
common some
as on the exterior of buildings.
difficulty in
As
the reader
may have
understanding the nature of these brackets, we
have given a separate view of one, in which two of the horizontal
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
244
members
shown
carried are
while others would rest
section,
in
on the uppermost supports (Fig. 72). This bracketing
some
while in
cases
carried to an extent that
Early English architecture
construction
is
Westminster
more
qualities,
relation to
in
than any building that
false
we
excessive
is
Henry the Seventh's chapel
:
when considered
is,
others
But while our
almost absurd.
the Later Florid or Decorated work much that
find in
and
;
in
simple and constructively correct,
is
and worthy only of condemnation at
of
both useful and ornamental,
is
it
and charac-
distinctive
feature of the Japanese systems
teristic
it is
most
certainly the
is
I
structural
its
saw during
my
travels in Japan.
Internally the construction of buildings varies much. cases
we have
structure
is
employed. "
resembling our upright
from
we
in
When
the
King-post
"
structure
often used
is
more
a
is
In
or less
they
as
rise,
as
single,
is
Fig.
in
Fig. J},,
in
In
47.
open
but instead of one
;
while in
some
open, something
generally find two standing on the horizontal
which
member
others
while
ceilings,
other
some
cases
instances
beam this it
is
almost invariably arranged, as
in
dispensed with altogether.
When we
find a ceiling
it is
Uyeno
the temples of Shiba,
(Figs.
7 and
1
i
8),
and Nikko, into
squares of from eighteen to twenty inches in diameter, and has a
somewhat decorated of which these
In this case each coffer
coffered character. ;
is
cases
or
may
be divided into a series of small
not more than one inch square (Fig,
we
by perforated
hammered metal
In those instances in
casings
which each coffer
small squares the ceiling
is
coving, traversed vertically
is
coffers,
(Figs.
each
In both of
8).
the crossings of the framed
find
or
i
may be
structure tied
17
and
18).
divided into a series of
connected with the walls by a large
by
raised bars similar to those which
divide the coffers into squares (Fig. 18).
The Japanese we have tioned
just
are
inventions.
of
affirm that
spoken, and
Corean
Thus
we
all
have
such covings as that just men-
all
origin
such ceilings as those of which
;
and
another
that
they are not native
instance
of
the
strange
ART,
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
influence which Corea appears to have exercised
245
upon the
arts of
Japan.
To me
it
ings should
seemed strange that these simple and beautiful
owe
Fig. 82.—
for
I
their origin to
Column and Tie-Beams from the
saw nothing
in
is
any way resembling them
referring
almost led to believe
many
that the
;
Chion-in, Kioto.
of China or any other part of Asia that
one
ceil-
any portion of Continental Asia
I
in
have
the temples visited.
Japanese are
right
Yet in
of both their arts and those of the Chinese to the
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
246
Coreans,
and that
manufactures
of
a
many
doubted that
this
has at some time had arts and
nation
most
character.
artistic
employed by the Japanese, owe such temples as that of
their origin
H5wo-do
in Uji
art.
82 gives a portion of internal structure, where a decorated
which strength
is
given by a vertically placed timber.
-Plan of part of the Open Roof
Fir.
to Central Asia, for
column bears a horizontal beam placed
circular
cannot be
it
could only have been
decorated by one having experience of Indian Fig.
But
of the arts of Japan, as well as the ornaments
in
flat-wise,
and
Over the top of
the Gatehouse of the Temple Tofuku-zi.
the column rises a system of brackets supporting horizontal bers
;
to
mem-
but a timber which would rest on the advancing bracket A,
Fig. 82, has tration,
been removed, as
it
would hide that shown
and by which the uppermost horizontal member
Fig-
'^3
in
is
our
illus-
supported.
gives us a plan (as seen from below) of a portion of
open-roof structure where the brackets spreading from the tops of the columns
may
be observed, as well as the timbers which rest
upon them.
When we
consider Japanese buildings as structures adapted to
ART,
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
247
withstand the earthquake, the character of the windows, which are
hght wooden frames covered only with paper, should not be overlooked (Figs. 37 and 84). It will be apparent to all that the use of glass
would be accompanied
IDDDDDDDDDDDDD
DnnnnnnnnnDDnnnn
DnnnnnnnnnnDDnnn nnnnnnnnnnnnnnn "^
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
248 In Fig.
44
it
will
be noticed, as
I
have already pointed out, that
the bases of the columns are of stone, and that
upon these stone
bases rest loosely the vertical
columns which form the main supports of the gateway. will
be seen
also
It
the
that
portions of the columns rest-
ing on these bases are incased
bronze sockets, on which
in
ornaments are raised by hammering. horizontal
The ends members
the
of
are also
incased in a similar manner,
same
as will be seen in the Fig.
illustration. Fig. 85.—
Indian Lattice Window formed of PIERCED Stone.
the
gives
43
same horizontal members
as the cut last referred to, as
well as the whole of the pierced
but
and carved panel which we see
in part in Fig. 44.
In some few instances metal-work effect,
added
is
and not with the view of serving any
for the
useful
sake of mere
On
purpose.
the corners of the frame in which the carving occurs (Fig. 43)
have metal bindings which are useful
;
whereas
in
we
the centre of
each side an ornamental metallic plac occurs which only serves a decorative purpose.
As
a
rule,
however, the metal bindings are
used with the view of protecting the cross-grain ends of wood from
decay through contact with water.
Another method employed throughout the whole of Japan with the view of saving
wood from decay
roofs in order to protect the
that of using
is
end grain from moisture.
I
little
have
seen individual posts roofed, as well as palings around enclosed
Indeed, everything
land.
is
roofed in Japan
;
and
in
some
the complicated roofing of boardings, railings, posts, lamps, as curious as
A
it is
interesting.
word may now be
liarities
cases etc., is
said
on the methods of building.
occur most frequently in their walls
;
Pecu-
for these, unlike their
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
houses, are often formed in
hewn
of
part
or
249
rag -stone,
while
the upper portion consists of a kind of lath and plaster-work, of tiles
placed horizontally with mortar between, or of various other
materials
but
;
cases the wall
in all
from the weather.
protected
carefully roofed,
is
Figs.
and thus
35,
45, and 86 give typical wall formations.
One
has a boulder-stone base and stone
whereas
corners,
bases formed of of
rectangular
" rag."
two
the
other
hewn
stone,
corners
(and
teristic
arrangement),
this
the
is
one of
wooden
have
latter
have
the
other
the
blocks,
These
—
most charac-
and
have
five
horizontal lines running throughout their entire
Whenever
length.
occur the wall
these
lines
of dull yellow colour
is
(yellow -ochre) and
the lines are white.
This arrangement of lines indicates, as
have before the
temple
I
said, that the high priest of
near
a
is
of the
relation
Mikado. It
are
will
more
be
noticed that these walls
Fig.
—End Uji,
of Wall at Kiku NEAR Kioto.
or less conical in shape, being
broader at the base than already pointed struction of a
out that
building, or
system of building
is
at
the upper portion
wherever
stone
is
;
used
but we have in
the
con-
any material other than wood, this and that by it alone the disas-
employed
;
trous effects of earthquake shocks can
covering the water-tank at Shiba
is
be averted.
The canopy
supported on monolith granite
columns, but these slant inwards at the top (see Fig. 16). In the case of large temples and elaborate shrines, as those of
Nikko and Shiba, we
often find wall within wall, each enclosing a
The innermost
of these walls surrounds the central and most
court.
important of the temple buildings.
These inner walls are generally
differently constructed from those
which form the outermost enclo-
sure of the temple buildings, and are in
some
cases very beautiful.
2
JAPAN
so
ITS ARCHITECTURE,
:
I
Here we generally find a solid stone base, from which rise wooden members held together by horizontal ties. These
vertical
latter are so disposed, that
panel, while in the centre
above and below we get a long narrow
we have
a space of
much
In
larger size.
such a wall as this the horizontal tie-pieces are frequently decorated and the panels
filled in
with carved-work, the whole being
A
coloured and roofed over (Fig. 69).
which
here speak
I
particular carving
panel similar to those of
figured on page
is
182
between two rooms, from both of which carved on
somewhat
both
this occurs
exists
it
it is
this
situated
can be seen.
though on each surface the
sides,
cases the bases of walls are
we have no mere
It is
pattern
is
"
pointed
;"
but whenever
facing of the line of mortar which
between the stones with a harder and more durable material,
but the formation
mortar of some kind of semicircular, or semi-
in
and protruding to a consider-
eliptic ridge three inches in diameter,
able distance from the surface of the stone. "
62); but
difYerent.
some
In
(Fig.
from the castle of Nagoya, where
is
pointing
"
the effect produced
We
now come
to
is,
my
eye,
This curious method of
many Japanese
gives a strange aspect to
more strange than
walls
but
;
beautiful.
to the consideration of Japanese architecture,
or beautiful building
;
for architecture
is
not mere building, but
the art of raising edifices which are beautiful as well as useful.
But before going into origin
and history
ment of Japanese said concerning
;
its
aesthetic qualities
we should glance
at its
yet the data necessary for tracing the developarchitecture are so imperfect that
little
can be
it.
Although the temples of
Ise have been rebuilt at the end of
every third term of seven years, every plank and every post to be found in their construction
and of the same
size,
the time of
temple
I
of precisely the
We
was
have here, then, evidence
method of building was known
Rome's ancient greatness
may
now
same shape,
as those of the original structure which
erected nineteen centuries since. that the present
is
to the Japanese at
and while speaking of
this
say that the circular pieces of wood, which rest
in a
;
horizontal series on the cresting of each roof, can be demonstrated
ART, to
owe
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
their origin
to
251
bundles of thatch, which were
circular
strapped over longitudinally placed reeds to form with them the cresting of the roof (Fig.
The next
5 3).
which
building, as to date, with
am
I
acquainted
that used for the reception of the Mikado's treasures at Nara,
was
more than
built
a thousand years since
upon
the buildings of Ise, stands
;
and while
legs resting loosely
is
It
this, like
on stones,
its
formed of horizontally-placed triangular blocks of wood,
sides are
with their points outwards, arranged like the timbers of the log buildings in Russia (Fig. 30). I
am
unable to trace the history of Japanese building during
next three centuries
the
Buddhist shrines from
advance
;
seven
seems
in architecture
until
for,
to to
the
hundred
five
years
have taken place
great
of the
erection
no
since,
in the country.
But the development of Buddhism, and the patronage which
it
received from the Shogun, gave a marvellous impetus to archi-
and
tecture,
it
now
entered upon a florid and highly decorated
period.
Chinese buildings appear to owe their origin to a tent or a
The
junk.
tent obviously consisted
of a horizontal pole, over
which a fabric was thrown, supported at
The temples ner
;
ends by crossed
sticks.
of Ise show the crossed supports in a marked
but there
is
here none of that swaying
which would indicate the tent acterises
its
Chinese edifices
horizontal pole
is
;
origin,
yet in
down
of the
manroof
and which especially char-
many Japanese
buildings the
most marked, while the crossed supports have
entirely disappeared.
In the water-tank of Shiba (Fig. 16)
over of the roof as represent the
fall
that gatehouse of
In
some
we have an
illustration
and here we have that curious bendingwe approach the gable end which would
of this state of things
;
of drapery,
—
a peculiarity equally noticeable on
Nikko which we
figure
on page 209.
cases the architecture of a nation has been derived
from primitive buildings which are not of the tent character. This
is
the case with those edifices which the Egyptians raised
from two to three thousand years back at Dendera, Edfou, Thebes,
2
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
52
and other
places,
of papirii, withes,
and
where we
find the
columns consisting of bundles
and other plants bound together with cords or
lotii,
some
in
cases partially enveloped in a cloth wrapper
on which hieroglyphs are painted.
Although these columns are formed of apparent as
we had
if
stone, their origin
as
is
the original bundles of plants before us
;
thus the bundles of reeds or of flowers which were used to form the walls of the primitive Egyptian dwelling
became the prototype of
those massive columns which exist to this day on the banks of the Nile.
While the
origin of
Egyptian architecture
is
thus apparent,
it
must not be supposed that the stone columns of Egyptian temples were mere copies
permanent material of the objects which
in
formed their prototype have
been
all
members, and
for
;
subordinated in
they are works to
either
positions
their
on
many
members
some
were, in
;
makes
it
clear that
edifices at least,
adorned
one
as
case,
columns are
for the capitals of their
cases decorated with
In
architectural
days or generally with drapery, decorated papers,
feast
and the skins of animals them.
as
structural part of a building.
consideration of Japanese architecture
certain structural
which the parts
which the plants have been so idealised as to
become consistent ornaments of a
A
in
imitations of
that
in
the
these
in
draped around
temple of Chion-in
at
Kioto, a knotted cord, terminating in pendent tassels, appears to
show
that
drapery was originally tied around the column
this
(see Fig. 82).
Immediately above rests
upon
folding
it,
is
this
column, and enveloping the beam which
paper folded
in
an angular manner,
day
in
Japan
common
to this
which the paper-bound beam either represented as
which water (Fig. 87) the
decoration
;
flows.
swimming
;
a method of
while on the tie-piece on
we have
the head of a monster,
in the water, or as the source
In another column
from
from the same temple
head of a monster forms the upper portion of
and
in
in a curious
its
both instances the columns themselves are
entirely decorated with
breaking
rests
—
water, the crested
waves of which are
and conventional manner.
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART, It is difficult to
members
understand
why
we connect be
;
for a
idea, unless
with the water-spout, which may-
it
common
this
the columns and horizontal
of a building should be decorated with waves
column of water seems an absurd be
253
by typhoons.
in a district visited
such columns
its origin,
If
may have some
^f^^
mythical association, in the minds of the Japanese, with a strange natural phenomenon which they
While
dread.
such
I
the case,
is
Buddhistic
art
have no reason for saying that
must be remembered that all tends to remind the worshipper it
of the power of the Buddhist's god created things
;
and that
works as man should
it
over
all
images forth such adore,
love,
Fig. %'^ gives us the base of a
or
dread.
column decorated
with water ornamentally treated.
Strange as
it
is
that a
decorated with water, scroll "
used
column should be
we yet
the " wave-
find
by the Egyptians, and then by
the Greeks, on various parts of their buildings.
Certain
zigzag
arrangements
of
lines,
which
symbolised water, were also used on the walls Column from THE Chion-in, Ki-
Fig. 87.
and on the
tombs
ceilings
of Egyptian temples and
oto. ;
thus the use of water in strange and
unexpected positions
is
With the
not peculiar to the Japanese.
Japanese the ventional,
rendering
however,
is
than
less
con-
with
the
Egyptians and Grecians.
The
edifice
which covers the water-
tank of the temple of Shiba (Fig. 16) has monolith columns, the upper parts of which are decorated with coloured
conventional
drapery, in
of those of Chion-in at the differ
temples of Shiba
the
manner Yet
Kioto.
and
Chion-in
widely from each other, and are separated geographically
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
2 54
by a distance of more than three hundred miles. In the days when they were erected, it must have been very difficult to get from place to place
by imitation drapery in
neither case do
building
for at
;
we
yet
;
And, strange
both buildings.
in
we
of the columns
find this decoration
columns thus treated
find
Shiba the decoration
to say,
the main
in
seen on the columns of
is
the water-tank, and at Chion-in on the pillars in the gatehouse.
At
we have
Kioto, as
with water
in
:
column are decorated
seen, the shafts of the
Tokio the
shafts are bare stone.
Here, as in the case of the Egyptian columns, vulgar imitation of drapery
subordinated
to
but idealised work,
;
architectural
fitness,
On
While there
is little
tent, there
is
in
is
imitative renderings
much which
in
any way derived
is
there-
directly
tends to show that the Japanese
Yet these Japanese
art works, inexpressibly superior to the
are, as
detail
structural
Japanese buildings, whether ancient or
temples were suggested by Chinese buildings. temples
which
in this peculiar decoration.
modern, to convince us that they were
from the
which
in
the score of conventionality there
nothing incongruous
fore
in
by any mere
qualities are not interfered with
of folded tissues.
and
we have no
Chinese
models from which they were derived.
We
have seen that Chinese buildings owe
particular form of tent or to the junk.
the nature of Arabian architecture,
of an Arabian house are plaster,
geous their
and
little
colour, of square
tissues.
we should
to
fabrics,
more than representations
their prototype in the reed
houses of the country
Japanese architecture
;
in
rooms
in stone,
and flat-topped tents formed of gor-
such
of their primitive dwellings.
a
to
inquire into
find that the
While yet nomads, the Arabs used
looms rich
If,
their origin
Were we
as they used
The temples
in
to
produce
in
the construction
of ancient
Egypt had
dwellings which were the primitive
hence,
we should
look for the origin of
the early abodes of the Japanese people.
with the view of discovering the nature of the original
we consider the structures still raised by the Aino inhabitants of the northern island (called Yesso), we see that the Aino temples are of the rudest character. A few slender up-
dwellings of Japan,
I
ART, on which
rights,
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
rest horizontal
timbers of but small dimensions,
There are no
give support to a simple thatched roof.
The
building.
from the works of uncivilised
it
sides to the
In short, nothing which
timbers are unplaned.
would distinguish
^55
man
can be
seen in any part of an Aino structure (Fig. 89).
Such reason
an Aino temple of the present day
is
and there
;
is
every
believe that the Ainos were the original inhabitants
to
The temples which
of Japan.
these half-civilised yet kindly
now
people
raise
are surely
mere copies of those which for
many
been
centuries they have
in the habit of erecting.
But
temple has
Aino
simple
the
all
leading
the
characteristics of a Japanese
building of the present day. of
consists
It
which
uprights,
on
somewhat mass-
rests a
Fig. 89.
An Aino
Temi'le.
ive roof.
We
have already noticed that the sides of a Japanese house
and that the building
are generally removable,
a
floor,
and a roof
as his floor
;
Primitive
among
Europe, makes no floor for
Aino buildings are
advancing
civilisation
necessary adjunct
from
damp
We
to
its
race, the gipsies,
which
the various civilised peoples of
primitive dwelling.
floorless
would
consists of uprights,
has always used the ground
and that strange nomadic
has so long been found
ner, the
man
lead
In like man-
but the mere needs of an
;
to
the
construction
any building designed
to
of this
give protection
as well as rain.
have, then, the prototype of the whole Japanese system
of building, in the rude temples of the Ainos.
But as time has
gone on, advances have been made, and influences have been brought to bear upon the primitive methods of building. the in
Roman Britain,
invasion and the
Norman conquest
so the Chinese, the
Coreans, and
Just as
influenced building certain
Buddhist
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
256 missionaries
from Central Asia carried to Japan new styles of
architecture
which
we
architecture which is
that
to
rise
though
florid
find in the great shrines of
Normans came and
the
influenced later works
whereas
;
in
beautiful
There
Nikko.
however, between the two cases.
this difference,
Romans and
gave
In Britain the
noble edifices which
built
Japan the influence could
in
most cases only have been derived from drawings received from the Asiatic continent and from the teachings of missionaries. -
A
must not be overlooked
feature which
of Japanese architecture
and the manner
in
turesque
effects.
"
of the roof
It
the value of the gable in producing pic-
was found
England and
period, both in
pitch
which gables are dealt with.
know
All architects
the nature and
is
the consideration
in "
in in
most houses during the mediaeval most countries of Europe
doubt whether any nation has used better effect, than the Japanese.
it
with more
Indeed,
I
skill,
;
but
I
or with
have some sketches of
Japan which are peculiarly picturesque through
their wealth
of
gables (Fig. 48).
The
pitch of the roof in Japan, though not high, suffices to
give perfect protection from the weather.
which we
still
While the high
roofs
Nuremberg, Troyes, many of the Rhenish
see in
towns, and
on some of our own old buildings, are eminently
picturesque,
I
lower pitch
;
doubt whether they are as beautiful as those of
and certainly they occupy much space
in
which only
poor rooms can be arranged.
The
gable of
Nishi-hongwan-ji
idea of the pitch of a Japanese roof;
gables somewhat higher, in
which
is
here shown.
detail of roof
Japanese reference
to
which those
relation
Figs. 91
will
gables
will
90)
give a fair
but some buildings have to their
width, than
that
and 92 give another gable and
be of interest to the student.
are
of
(Fig.
generally
broken
Nishi-hongwan-ji
by ornaments,
(Fig.
90)
will
Kanaman
show the
scroll
at
of the shrine at Nikko (Fig. 68),
of the water-tank at Shiba (Fig. (Fig. 58), will
as
show.
That of the entrance gate of the great temple of Dai-butz Kioto, of the gate
I
1
6),
and that of the
street
lamp
ornaments which occur under most
I
ART,
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
of these gables, especially those which
and the similar ornaments lower down
Fig. 90.
these ornaments
are
fit
(see
257
the
upper angle,
Figs.
90 and 93);
in
Gable end of Nishi-hongwan-ji.
purely of Chinese origin.
Before passing
from a consideration of architecture to ornament, we should notice
Fig. gi.— Roof.
the forms of the tombs found in the cemeteries, for these have a character which renders
them worthy of S
special notice.
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
258
38 gives the tombstone most commonly met with
Pig.
40
Fig.
monument
represents the
Corean conquest.
Each
is
both
in
form and
)-efer
to India, China,
the
in character.
In order to understand the nature of this structure
Fig. 92.
while
commemorate
erected to
similar,
;
we must
Portion of Roof.
and Tibet, where we commonly
find objects
similar to this in connection with ecclesiastical edifices.
The form used on
the continent of Asia
we
where the lower square stone represents the
give in Fig. 40,
earth, the circular
stone water, the triangle fire,
the crescent air or
wind, and the spear-head ether or heaven. tells
Inman
us that in Egyptian
mythology the pyramid, Fig. 93.
—a
Ornament from Gable end of temple recently destroyed.
It
Bio-do-in
was carved
at Uji
in the
year
a Phallic sign, plays an
important
part.
1046 A.U.
longs to Siva
It
= the
be-
sun
= fire =
life. By one complex symbol, very common on ancient Hindoo monuments, the universe was thus represented. Notice the upward gradation first we have the earth, then water and :
these two constitute this globe.
;
Then comes
the creator
=
God,
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART, whose emblem
—
representative of
flame all
— mounts upwards.
life
upon the
He
globe,
is
259
the author and
and he
connected
is
by the crescent moon with heaven. The spear-head is an emblem life and of the doctrine that perfect wisdom is to be found only in the combination of the male and of the divine source of
female principles in nature.
The manner
which the Japanese monument has become apparent from our illustrations but its origin is
modified
is
obvious.
It is
in
;
given here simply to illustrate the fact that certain
forms of an architectural character have a significance not to be
The
overlooked.
crescent
moon
introduced as a symbol
is
but
;
the symbol has reached Japan from the continent of Asia. it
is
well
to
remember, when speaking of
this
monument,
Yet that
was inscribed with both the sun and the crescent moon, and that this symbol was thus used by the originally, the
Japanese
flag
The more
Japanese at an early time. gun's
tomb
is
ent from that of any other
With the view
of
tion of a building
We temples
and
ornament
now
it
1
to
the
with
deal
At
to buildings.
Japan.
in
to
see
members
em-
decorations of Japanese which govern the application of
necessary shall
we
ornament should always be used
fact that
its
;
and that
position, that each part shall
of prominence
degree
and
that
all
the
combine to form a harmonious whole.
Enrichment of an architectural ;
the
the
enrichment of members structurally necessary
the
how
the outset of these considerations
should be so subordinated to
extent
saw
readers
gives the tools which the carpenter
principles
must recognise the for the
have
I
our
craft.
have ;
that
perform their work, we give illustrations (Figs.
Fig. 10
95 to 100).
tomb
enabling
and other workmen engaged on the erec-
plasterers, carpenters,
ploys in his
general form of a Sho-
given in Fig. 94, the form being altogether differ-
edifice
may
be carried to any
provided that the constructive members are always duly
emphasised, and the whole of the parts combine to produce a
grand and complete concord
unduly conspicuous
it
is
;
but
illegitimate
if
ornament renders any part
and can only be condemned.
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
26o
While some of the great temples of Japan are elaborately I do not remember one instance in which structure is
decorated,
by enrichment and in all cases the leading structural members are rendered prominent by colour or treatment. If we take either the gateway (Fig. 41) on page 143 or that figured on page 207 we shall see that the structural members have falsified
;
Fig. 94.
—A
ShOgun's Tomb.
and that due importance, while the parts are richly ornamented the members structurally necessary are those which ornament has ;
must not be forgotten that these works are as and that gold, elaborately coloured as the Alhambra at Grenada
enriched.
But
it
;
white, red, blue,
and many other
emphasise their different colour,
colours,
How
parts.
in
can
I,
their intensity,
all
without the aid of
convey to the reader any adequate idea of the nature of
such works, and of the manner in which dinated to their true positions
?
As
well
all
the parts are subor-
might
I
try to explain
I
ART,
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
who was born deaf
to one
the nature and beauty of
261
the richness of musical harmonies, as
Nikko without the
aid of colour.
should be noticed that
much of the ornament on the and more exposed members of a Japanese building is It
work, while
painted
which is
leading flat
or
that
more protected
is
carved as well as col-
Sometimes, how-
oured.
ever, the carved
work
re-
mains uncoloured, while
in
other cases, as on certain
columns
at
Nikko, we have
wood
dark
basso-relievo
ornaments protruding from
wood of
lighter colour.
It
not unfrequently happens that
this
work, which
is
carved and uncoloured, associated
with
is
coloured
In some parts Nikko buildings we
members. of the
have most welcome
produced
Of
in this
effects
manner.
the nature of those
carvings
which
form
the
Fig. 95.
Plasterers at Work.
After a native drawing.
panels in the various walls,
gateways, and buildings, both at Nikko and Shiba,
when writing of
my
visit to
these shrines.
I
have spoken,
For the most
part,
they consist of groups of plants, birds, water, clouds, animals, and, in
a few cases, of figures.
skill,
the
All are wrought with consummate
and are generally actually pierced, the
entire substance of
wood out of which they are formed being cut through. The manner of the cutting is both bold and crisp. In
cases
it
all
manifests a perfect understanding of grouping, of the laws
of composition, and
of the distribution
every panel has some poetic significance.
of parts
;
while nearly
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
262
One
of the special features of Japanese decoration
use of diaper patterns on horizontal
the
courses."
We
is
seen in
members and
" string
never enrich beams and joists by small, repeating,
I
Fig. 96.
Plasterer and Sto.\e-I\Iason at Wukk.
geometrical patterns, but the Japanese do. I
seen a diaper pattern so placed on a
by the
angle, or so that one, two, or
did not exactly
The and
fit
Afier a native drawing.
Yet
beam
no case have
in
that
was broken
it
more repeats of the pattern
on each side of the timber
figured.
diaper patterns thus employed are both varied in design
beautiful in character
as their form,
I
;
and, considering their colour as well
should have been strangely puzzled to say what
country had produced them prior to guessed their origin
I
my
should have said
visit
to Japan.
— they must
Had
I
be our own
Middle Age work. I
remember on one occasion the late Mr. Owen Jones assertnumber of gentlemen that the Japanese had no
ing before a
ornament,
strictly so called,
and that
their decorations consisted
wholly of conventional representations of natural forms
;
while the
ART,
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
:63
Chinese had ornament which was both national and good statement to which said
then took exception.
I
What would
—
he have
could he have seen the numerous specimens of pure and
Fig. 97.
characteristic
Carpenters at Work.
ornament which
should be
;
and
known
it
is
now show
strange that while this
respecting
ornament
a system of
could
Few
?
countries
or more carefully considered ornament
have more characteristic than Japan
I
After a native drawing.
it
in
is
Europe even to
the case so this hour.
little
It is
carefully considered, with parts well distri-
buted, points duly emphasised,
full
It includes
of careful thought.
diaper patterns, powderings, scroll-work, and symmetrical composi-
102 and 103).
It
of form and refinement of
line,
tions (Figs.
of classic
work
;
art.
In power
it
may yet
be behind the Greek
it
has
many
in purity
of the best qualities
equals the best of our
own
mediaeval
while in tenderness of expression, beauty of composition,
and careful thought,
it
is
even superior.
The
colour
is
equal to
that of the finest illuminated manuscripts of the Middle Ages.
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
264
In treating of Japanese architecture, sider the very important question of
Figs. 98, 99.— Carpenters
relation to Japanese building
at Work.
is
I
should have liked to con-
PROPORTION.
Everything
in
After native drawings.
determined by rule
but the ex-
;
planation of these rules would require more space than can be afforded
present
To
:
of the
work
a
in
which
on
Japanese work,
the
some idea
give
plan
like
the
may men-
I
tion that all mats, such as are
used for floor coverings, are in size six feet I
by three
;
and
have before mentioned that
although
the floors
rooms appear
to
of their
be covered
by matting, the Japanese use only thick padded mats of this
size
as their floor cover-
ings. Fig. 100.
HIS
— CARPENTER,
WHO IS FATIGUED WITH Work, resting on the Top of his
Shed.
After a native drawing.
This being the case, obvious that are,
some multiple of a yard
;
but
as
all
both
in
all
their
it
is
rooms
length and width,
rooms appear
to
be of
ART,
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
one height, the relation
between
265
and the height
the area
is
variable.
In the
Fig. ioi.
building of important Japanese houses there
— Carpenters' Tools,
with a brush cotton-wool;
Saws;
16, 17,
in
one arm
7, 8,
Files;
;
9,
i,
3, 4,
its
Chisels
;
5,
Plane
;
;
6,
T-Square and Plummet;
Forms of Axe;
etiquette regulating
Square and Measure
18,
Hammer.
2,
Compass formed
of
bamboo
an
is
stems,
Line, which runs out over blackened 10, 11, 12,
Mallets;
13,
Awl;
14, 15,
After a native drawing.
construction
;
and the teacher of manners
determines the plan of the mansion.
As
I
have named the teacher of etiquette,
under the old feudal system he was an for after a
youth had
fessor for general
etiquette of the
left
college he
instruction
in
officer of
I
may
say that
some importance
was apprenticed to
this
manners, and especially
ceremony of tea-drinking
—
in
;
pro-
the
the Cha-no-yu (see
The etiquette of Japan is most elaborate, and the page 157). volume setting forth the rules to be followed by a man of position
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
266
There
contains more than a thousand pages.
is
an etiquette
re-
specting the building of the house, respecting the reception of both friends
and strangers, and respecting everything pertaining to one's
Fig. I02.— Diaper
conduct under
all
kiri rules are laid
Patterns and Powderings.
circumstances.
Even
to the
committing of hara-
down, and the principles of etiquette determine,
to a great extent, the character of a
Japanese house.
Figs.
104
and 105 give the manner in which an ornament and a torii are showing that all architectural objects are constructed
" set out,"
according to I failed
rule.
to discover that the
governed by rule
in
columns of Japanese temples are
the relation of diameter
always found their proportions pleasant tion
;
I
to height
;
yet
I
also found the propor-
which one part of a temple bore to another almost invariably
agreeable.
It
has been said that the proportion of one to two
is
ART,
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
not so beautiful as that of one to three, and that this again so pleasant as three to this
:
the
more
difficult
five.
it is
to detect the relation
not is
of part to part
is.
Fig. 103.— Patterns of
I
is
Indeed, the law of proportion
the more beautiful the proportion
Tn Japanese temples
267
Japanese Fabrics.
always observed
this subtle relation ot
part to part, and the consequent beauty of the temples as regards their quantities
;
and
I
think that any fixed proportion between
the diameter and the height of the column could not be invari-
ably maintained, Japanese temples being seen under such different
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
268
conditions as to
make
a hard
and
rule of this kind imprac-
fast
ticable.
Many
of the temples are situated on eminences, and are seen
Fig. 104.
Showing the manner
chiefly
on
from below
level
;
ground are
Diagram of Ornament in
which the proportion of
in its
Gable.
parts
is
determined.
while the columns of those which are placed in part
hidden by overhanging
roofs.
Some,
W
Fig. 105.
—ToRii.
which are enclosed
Showing the manner
in
which
it is
" set out."
by a series of courts (as the temple at Nikko) must be so closely viewed, owing to the proximity of
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
269
the surrounding walls, that the proportion of part to part can scarcely be perceived.
In Japanese buildings together by a system of
being used
the parts of the structure are held
dovetailing,"
nor screws
neither nails for
ornament.
A
grand
with a
nail,
head three inches
in
ameter
36),
(see
all
production, except
their
in
ornamental
"
Fig.
diis
a hori-
often placed in
zontal timber, immediately over the
window
slides
of a house, but here
it
serves no structural purpose.
Some
of the
for
dove-
most com-
tail" joints are
plicated
"
and remarkable,
they have to bind the
parts,
coming
Fig. 106.— Japanese
in three or
four directions, together.
Fig. 107.
simple
way
Details.
Cupboard or Cabinet.
With the view of showing
Showing the manner
the construction
in
in
a very
which the parts are dovetailed together.
of Japanese houses,
I
copy some
working drawings from a native book (Figs. 108, 109, and iio). While there is no furniture in a Japanese room, there is generally a
little
which objects
arrangement of fixed shelves
may be
placed.
The manner
in
in
a corner, on
which the parts
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
'.yo
of such a structure are put together, will be understood from the
accompanying
We
now
io6 and 107). Japan has produced a system of architecture
illustrations (Figs.
see that
eminently suited to the wants
who have
of those
to withstand
C!
We
in
the
is
has
so subject. this
sprung
archi-
from
a
Gatepost and
manner
in
its Support. Show! which parts are put together.
by the introduction of and that
religion
special
has played
part in determining
We
Showing the which tie-beams are held together.
also see that
tecture Fig. 108.
the earthquakes
which Japan
to
it
Top of a Bracket.
Fig. 109.
manner
called
and peculiarly adapted
forth,
primitive
dwelling
character
has been modified
features from
;
that
its
Continental Asia
;
its
character.
its
further notice that out of the
architecture has
grown a system
of ornamentation, developed under the influence of Buddhism, while the perfect finish of
work
is
all
Japanese
due to the influence of
Shinto upon the Japanese mind.
The ornament which has in
association
with
arisen
architecture
been applied to objects of
—
Top view of Circular Pillar. Showing the manner in which cross-beams
Fig. iio.
has
are inserted into
domestic use, as works earthenware, fabrics,
it.
in lacquer,
etc.
But
liberties are
taken
in
dealing with
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
common
wares which would
be permitted
not
in
271
the case of
Yet I have seen a monkey, carved in a architectural edifices. humorous manner, resting upon a temple roof, as though it were sitting there
and a cat modelled on the
;
we have quaintness
here
tiles
of a house.
similar to that of the grotesque
But
European
gurgoyles of the Middle Ages. In the case of fabrics
we have
Thus, before me, as
kinds.
brooms,
and
rakes,
are
that
leaves
up
Here
another
is
write,
I
is
a dress-cloth figured with
the
be
to
gathered
patterns of most extraordinary
iii).
(Fig.
formed
only of long-legged waterflies
;
only
another of
consisting
children
in
all
conceivable attitudes (Fig. 2).
Milestones, rabbits,
birds,
cobwebs, hats, and
1 1
all
the patterns
in
of their fabrics
a
lady's
posts
may
objects
sorts of
be found
;
and on telegraph
scarf
and wires
may
be
seen conspicuously figured
Fig. III.— Pattekn of a
printed Dress Fabric, con.
THE LEAVES OF THE FIR-TREE, RAKES, BROOMS, AND DIAPER PATTERNS.
SISTING OF
(Fig. 188).
We
shall scarcely un-
we remember that the Japanese are They enjoy a joke as much as a simple and humorous people.
derstand Japanese art unless a
child,
and there
is
a simplicity about their manners which has
all
here the charm
of
the frankness of infancy.
childhood preserved
in
Indeed,
grown man.
we have
This being the case,
we must
humour in their art, whenever opporand humour and grotesqueness are closely allied.
look for the expression of tunity occurs
;
During the year 1880, tration of a
TJie
Fitrniture
Gazette gave an
illus-
Japanese dish on which were figured octopii perform-
ing as acrobats.
On
a
ladder was one which stood out at right
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
2/2
by
angles, holding on
his tentacles, while
two were performing
on musical instruments, and a fourth watched the performance The whole was as comic and grotesque as it could fan in hand. possibly frogS;
be (Fig.
and
fruits,
1
owe
Fig. 112.— Pattern of
Teapots
3).
1
made
the form of birds,
in
humour
their origin to this sense of
;
and a
printed Fabric, consisting wholly of children at plav.
thousand things might be named as illustrating this love of the comic.
The
in
Japanese art
battle of the frogs, the grasshoppers'
procession, and such subjects, are so well
known
that
we need
not
here enumerate them.
Many
Japanese patterns have a significance to those
they are intended which is
the type of beauty, as
is
not apparent to
we have before
us.
said,
for
whom
Thus the almond
and the stork (which
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART, is
said to live a
stork
is
thousand years) of long
as rare as a
dead donkey
emblem
of longevity, for
anotlier
is
it is
The
It is
lived for nine
saw but one
living
representations of to
in
The Japanese
Dish made
specimen of this
;
;
every conceivable
in
I
never
in Tokio.
bird.
them which we
England
another
hundred years ate
sojourn in Japan
Owing
to the numberless
see on Japanese works, I used
think that storks must be almost as
sparrows are
hen
my
during the whole time of
Fig. 113.
is
strange that, though they are so
fond of portraying storks and drawing them attitude,
tortoise
said to have a thousand lives, and
man who
the peach, for a
this fruit as his chief food.
In Japan a dead
life.
here.
is
273
common
in
Japan as
but this proved to be a great mistake.
are also fond of portraying the domestic cock
and
but these, like the mandarin duck and drake, symbolise
connubial
felicity.
catacombs
at
On
Rome, two
an early Christian
tombstone
birds are represented
T
in
the
looking at one
JAPAN
274
ITS ARCHITECTURE,
:
To me
another, which are said to be cocks fighting.
most unHkely, and
two male
beheve them to be cock and hen, and not
I
birds, as
seems
this
generally supposed
is
and inspection
;
show
will
that the one bird only has hackles on the neck.
Another form which should be noticed which
The gods
a divine symbol.
is
two-edged swords
and from the
;
tail
of the dragon was born the
sword which the sun-goddess gave to the
In
the two-edged sword,
is
of Japan wore and wielded
first
Emperor of Japan.
Here we have a symbol with which we ourselves are familiar. " These things Apocalypse we have the expression saith he which hath the sharp sword with two
the
:
"And
edges;" and again the words:
out of his
mouth goeth a sharp sword, and with should smite the nations."
Japanese myth, the sword a serpent-like creature
Curiously,
in
associated
is
who gave
the
with while
birth,
it
he
it
the sword in the Apocalypse proceeds from the
mouth of
the
King of kings and Lord of
Some Japanese
On
satire.
a temple roof;
subtle
a curious
is
while in front of
large pendent rope.
When
dangles a
it
the Japanese goes
temple to pray he takes the rope
to the
hands, and by giving to causes Fig. 114.
exhibit
gong dropping from the eaves of
bell-like
split
patterns
a figured towel there
it
lords.
it
in his
a sharp waved motion
to strike against the gong.
The sound
thus made, he believes, calls the attention of the
Pattern
OF A Japanese
Towel.
is
his
loose,
its
On
to the supplication about to be offered.
the
pattern
for the devotee,
prayer, has
from
god
support
hit ;
the
thus
an old Kioto
holding a long
in
rod,
in
life,
my
as to detach
force
ground
(Fig.
possession
is
on the end of which
while an almond-tree, the symbol of long
anxiety to secure attention to
falling to the
bottle
bamboo
his
gong with such
it is
In
of the towel before us the gong
1
14).
a skeleton is
a bird
of spring, of youth, of beauty,
occurs behind the rod to which the bird
is
it
;
and
attached,
ART, The
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
bamboo
understood when
be
design will
of this
satire
remembered that the Japanese catch
275
birds
by darting
is
it
them
at
on the end of which bird-lime has been placed. Those so-called fishing-rods, the joints of which blow out, and
a
rod,
now so much sold in England, are made by the Japanese as bird-catchers. To be caught is
which are
death to the bird, hence the skeleton holds bird
is
the time of
The
its
youth, and
reference to long
Fig.
by which the
rod
the
may
caught, although this
1
1
life is
spring.
its
mockery
a netsuki in
represents
5
be
which the thought of summer, or
abundant
life, is
given
—both animal
^"«^-
"s-
and vegetable.
A
great
number of the
good Japanese objects are
little " set "
we
devices which
it is
impossible for
me
do more than
to
upon
heraldic insignia, and these
crests, or
have a significance similar to our armorial bearings
But
see
A
nature of Japanese ornament generally.
(Fig.
1 1
6).
attention to the
call
detailed examination
would need a volume. If
we
painting,
consider Japanese
and decoration, we
broadly, and
art
due to the expression of poetical as a pattern, a panel in which
sprays of grass in front of large
autumn
full
a vase
we have
which represents cracked
ice,
have been pinched off by a
Many Japanese the
"
(Fig.
moon, with
feeling.
1
On
man
its
carving,
interest
we
a towel
7).
And
grass-sprays
speak of the in
the moon."
see,
on a cabinet the with
laden
autumn evening
is
silver
brought
this tall grass
the well-known hawthorn pattern,
with the plum blossoms upon
it
that
late frost.
Japanese designs are of a legendary character. "
is
harvest moon, with a few
full 1
of
and the softly-flowing stream beside which
On
grows.
a
In both cases the pleasant
dewdrops. to mind,
it
is
include
much
shall see that
The
moon " as we speak of They regard the dragon as " the
hare in the
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
276
demon
of the storm," and picture the tempest both in air and in
water as the elements agitated by this monster.
/
h
s
a thunderstorm
is
In Fig.
i
j
i
represented, with the
1
god of Thunder and
his
Japanese Crests. Those lettered from a to / are all formed from the leaf of the Maidenhair tree from the Go-he, or cut papers, used as the symbol of the Shinto religion >«, from /, from a kind of gong the heads of a kind of arrow, used in warfare for cutting ropes n, from five hammers, such as the god Daikoku bears o, from three hawk's feathers /, from a cart-wheel q, from three of the folded papers which indicate that an object is a gift t, from the wood-framing around s, from five anchors r, from three rabbits a well and 7t, from two sails of a junk.
Fig. 116.
;
k,
;
;
;
;
;
;
;
;
;
;
circular
drums
in
the
forked lightning and
air,
rain.
while from
the
Surely the
"
cloud
descends both
key pattern
"
did not
ART, originally signify
depict a
fish
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
tlie
lightning which the people feared
leaping the
Fig. 117.— Pattern
of A Japanese Towel.
Fig. 118.— The
ascending
before
waterfall
Thunder God.
bamboo
everlasting youth, the
The one
is
legs.
The
deep water, where the
man
The
is
pine signi;
no end.
tale
goes that
man
the other has long arms
:
fish
can only be caught
with short legs could not stand.
in
The
with long legs can get into the deep water, but, owing to
short arms, he cannot reach to the bottom and
his
the
an ivory carving of two men quarrelling.
has long legs and short arms
and short
They
uprightness and usefulness
but to the significance of their patterns there
Here before me
!
into
After a native drawing.
clouds as typifying ambition and perseverance. fies
277
difficulty
is
fish.
The
overcome by the long-legged man carrying the man
The two together can thus catch fish, but neither can do so alone. Hence the absurdity of these men quarrelling. The same idea is conveyed in our with
the
long arms on his back.
expression, "
He
is
quarrelling with his bread."
Japanese carving varies it
is
intended to serve.
in character
Those
little
according to the purpose button-like objects which
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
278
worn pendent from the
are
and are called netsukies, are
girdle,
Some
frequently delicious specimens of minute work.
examples
as
equalled) others
of
have
cutting,
never been
surpassed
by any other people, being almost of
are
of marvellous
excellence
but
;
be
between
imitat-
conventional work must
not
The
may
sight
lost
;
imitative works
the distinction
and
ive
even
(if
classic refinement
some are
hugely grotesque, while
of these,
of.
imitative
^m.
be influenced by the position
which
in
placed, and by is momentary expression which has
the object imitated the
been
seized
perpetuation
for
works
sider in such
in
What we have
carved work.
the
to con-
the excellence of
is
the imitation, the nature of the surfaces,
and those
bodied by the carver
Here snail, in
is
shell,
top of
in his
work.
a netsuki in the form of a
which the fleshy mollusc, having
stretched itself its
been em-
imitated which have
object
of the
fleeting characteristics
as
far
as
it
can from
seems trying to climb to the
it.
The
horn-like pedicels, which
carry the eyes on their extremities, are fully Fig. 119.
Origin of the
to
Haw-
thorn Pattern. The late frost nips the Plum blossoms, and causes them to thin and cracked ice.
fall
protruded and rest upon the
shell,
body of the
snail
which the
plastic
appears to cling tion
on the
is
;
while the hinder por-
slightly twisted so that its
and mucous under surface from above. the
little
carefully
In this work the texture of the shell
striae
indicating
marked
;
orifice of the shell
its
is
is
smooth exposed
perfectly given
;
successive stages of growth being
while the voluted form and slightly recurved are rendered with a fidelity and feeling which
could not be surpassed.
But perhaps the most wonderful quality of
this carving lies in the expression of plasticity
the artist has embodied in his work.
The
and mobility which
creature clings to the
AND AR T MANUFA C TURKS.
AJ^ T, shell,
over which
almost seems to
it
279
while
slide,
manner so life-like readily be mistaken for members of a living texture of the body is as good as that of the bodies are protruded in a
the
horn-like
that they might
The
creature.
while the
shell,
under portion of the "foot" has that strange glabrous surface
which makes
As
appear
it
real.
a naturalistic carving this
netsuki
little
is
almost perfect
member
yet the parts of the creature are so disposed that no
danger of being broken
in
On
off.
the contrary,
it is all
;
is
compact,
and forms but one mass without excrescences. This one illustration of naturalistic work must
though
it
would be easy
al-
suffice,
multiply illustrations
to
indefinitely.
But to take an instance of a somewhat different character, we
may large
consider a
netsuki which
who wears
represents a child,
mask from which depends drapery, and who
a
sitting in a
is
crouching position, beating a small drum.
On
certain days
of the year children go about the streets of
From
Japanese towns with hideous masks on. almost envelop the head) drapery
body
they beat while perambulating the
The
the masks (which
pendent, and
this
in
the
These children generally have drums, which
enveloped.
is
is
netsuki before us
is
streets.
about one inch
diameter
in
;
and
in
mask the artist has had room for his fancy. clutched by the feet of the sitting child, and on it
the hideous beast-like
The drum
is
two drum-sticks which are held
rest the
peculiarity of this
work
is
seen
mouth of the grotesque mask face,
the
with
little
;
you
jewelled eyes inlaid
wood can be discovered in The two illustrations given
finish
:
the hands.
;
yet no trace of any join
the work.
from those objects of which
cut.
flat
I
is
celebrated
have just spoken.
facets,
each resulting
These works would almost represent what
going to be a finished carving
One
in
of detailed carving are of exquisite
These consist of a number of small from one clean
But the
see a charmingly cut child's
but another class of work for which Nara
differs essentially
is
in
on looking through the open
in its "
such netsuki of a humorous
blocked out
" stage.
character represents on one
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
28o
side the face of a Court lady, while
who
the face of a gentleman,
small tusks, and who,
probably have a
The
and cloven
tail
although
this case
in
that
is
in the other she
it
is
a very
in
——
is
furnished with large ears and
body were represented, would
hoofs. little
severe on the Court ladies
is
when seen
Between these two
one view she
for the
:
a lady, but
is
joke,
when
we have an intermediate
classes of carving
which we have great crispness of treatment and precision
of work, together with high is
turned round there
Japanese, like other people, will have their
inference
stage, in
is
entire
his
if
if it is
finish.
But
this
intermediate method
not so general as the other two.
Purely ideal productions, judged, not
by
As an
decorative works.
which
the
represents
Here we have an
it
imitative
their
needs scarcely be qualities,
illustration
spotted
ideal beast
lion,
—a grotesque.
in
which they terminate
;
must be
said,
their
merits, as
netsuki,
Fauna.
This work we have
We
mere decorative composition.
to regard as a
spots
by
we may take a or King of the
the various curls of hair constituting the
the
but
mane
have to view
of the beast, and
we have
arrangement of the limbs, the treatment of the
to
consider the
tail,
the expres-
and the decorative distribution of the
sion given to the creature,
parts in their relation to ornamental effect only.
This
little
netsuki
as a naturalistic
work
The queer
on
grin
is
as interesting in
for
;
it is
its face,
its
way
as the snail
decorative, ferocious,
was
and grotesque.
the eyes which peep from under over-
hanging eyebrows, the curious arrangement of the mane, which surrounds the head almost like a grandmother's nightcap, and the beautiful hair-like texture of the body, give to
stamp
it
an excellent work.
should here be
made
As mere
it
characters which
achievements,
mention
of microscopic carvings, which are
common.
Thus, as we have already seen, you
may meet
with two gods
carved in wood, and yet so small that both are contained
husk of one grain of found If
rice,
in the shell of a
we now
while an entire celestial family
common
in
the
may
be
hazel nut.
pass to the larger carvings, such as are used in the
AR r, ANB ART MANUFA CTURES.
28
decoration of temples and in positions which compel the observer to
view them from a distance, we shall find that they are treated
One
with masterly boldness and simplicity. given in Fig. 62
show the often
amount when it is in
are
is
too small to
we
so fine that
its
The Japanese rarely make such a misupon the happy method of introducing just
hit
work which can be
of detail into the its
work
is
is lost.
have
take, for they
that
is
In modern furniture
into the error of producing carved
fall
which
but the scale of our illustration
;
true character of the work.
decorative value
of these carvings
They
proper position.
"
perfectly seen
generalise " with a skill
almost wonderful.
The temples of Shiba and Nikko, as we have already seen, adorned by many carvings of birds, flowers, and animals and ;
while these representations of objects are more or less natural, there
is
yet a simplicity and conventionality in their treatment
which shows how perfectly the Japanese can seize the salient qualities of
an object and can discard
The tendency of plants
is
to
all
in
most cases leaves with symmetrical
halves and flowers with radiating parts
—
is
The
detail.
of those natural forces which result in the growth
produce
outward influences acting upon plants heat
unnecessary
to cause a departure pictorial artist avails
;
but the tendency of
—
as wind, rain, light,
all
and
from the normal type. himself of the utmost variety, but
the decorative artist has often to seek simple and symmetrical forms.
The Japanese well know the value of simplicity and even symmetry in decorative objects; and the flowers which seem to be pictorially
grouped
in their best carvings will
almost invariably be
found to have symmetrical halves or to consist of regular radiating The same remark will apply to the leaves, while in both parts. cases the simplest expression of the object copied
From Japanese
architecture, ornament,
turn to their drawing,
work
;
for there
results achieved
which the end
is
is
and seek
much worthy
by Japanese gained.
to
is
always given.
and carving, we must
understand their methods of
of our best consideration in the
artists, as
To me
it
well as in
the
means by
appears that Japanese child-
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE, ren
drawing
learn
al-
most without being aware that they are doing
While children
so.
are
learning
form
to
the letters of the alpha-
and the numerals
bet
they are also learning to draw. After a few weeks of school
life
they have
acquired
the
power of
making
shapes
certain
(called
and
letters
Here
figures).
their edu-
cation in drawing ceases
with
should
they
unless
us,
at
some
future
time be taught to draw
accomp-
as a separate
lishment.
The Japanese
not only employ a native alphabet, but they also
use a large
Chinese
number of
characters
—a
number so great that Mr. Sato (the wellknown Japanesescholar), though acquainted with six thousand such characters,
had
that
said
seen
never
he a
native newspaper with-
finding
out
some
that he did not understand.
When we Fig. I20
that writing
is
consider
only a
ART, means
communication of
for the
consumed
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
in acquiring
has a great advantage
day of
his school
;
life,
ideas, the vast
283
amount of time
such a power can only be deplored. for in imitating
new
the Japanese child
upon a desk or
table, but holds
it
in the
works and not the hand only.
Motion
Another feature
is
got from the shoulder,
is
become an
is
in the
artist, is
and not with a pen or
paper on which he writes
writes
education
calculated to influence the character
of his work, should he ultimately his writing with a brush,
it
Thus the whole arm
hand.
the elbow, and the wrist alike. of the Japanese child which
it
constantly learning to
is
Again, the child never rests the paper on which
draw.
Yet
characters during every
more or
less
the fact of
Then
point.
the
bibulous, so that the
instant he touches the paper with his brush the ink (always Indian ink)
is
absorbed.
This writing with the brush, and
this unrestrained
use of the
arm, gives a freeness to Japanese drawing which can never be got by practice with the point
while the absorbent quality of the
;
paper induces a precision of touch which our method
And
secure.
power of drawing,
this
this precision of touch, are all
that he
is
this freeness
fails
to
of motion, and
got without the child even knowing
acquiring the most valuable aids to a high drawing
power.
To me wrong.
our method
We
first
of teaching drawing seems altogether
give to a youth a hard point and teach
by the agency of
imitate forms
way
has got into the
of using this hard point
which he naturally uses as though unyielding.
acquired
its
the pencil.
He
should
free use
By
and the brush
;
this
first
use
it
we
give
him
to
After he
this unpliable pencil.
him a brush,
were something hard and
the brush, and
when he has
he might then be trusted with the crayon or
means he would gain the
whereas by our method the
free use of the point free
use of both
is
impaired.
Their method of writing leads the Japanese altogether with the maulstick
;
artists to
and however minute
his
dispense
work
and no people can draw more minutely or with greater tenderness than the Japanese
—
the lines are
drawn with a brush, and the
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
284
hand has nothing
to
upon.
rest
Fig/'
2
1
i
gives a copy used for
teaching the drawing of the bamboo.
The absorbent precision
chosen
character of the Japanese paper not only gives
of touch, but
for
the
also
expression
leads
of
the simplest form being
to
an object.
The Japanese
thus
acquires knowledge of the value of touches, such as no other people possess.
But, in order to
to certain illustrations
make myself
understood,
I
must
which have been drawn by Japanese
and engraved by Japanese engravers
:
for I felt that
no European
copy of their works would adequately represent the true their productions.
Through the indulgence of
have got a number of for these I late
am much
my
illustrations
my
spirit
They
:
and
indebted to the kindness of Mr. Yeno, the
Japanese minister
case.
of
publishers, I
prepared in Tokio
in
London.
must
It
not,
however, be
supposed that these are altogether original works, for this the
refer
artists
are
copies,
by excellent
artists,
is
not
of illustrations
To insure their being some of the best Japanese books. sharp, it was thought better to have them redrawn and re-engraved in
rather than have cliches from old blocks.
As an
illustration
of free drawing,
I
may
refer to Fig. 133,
ART, which, in artist
my
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
285
judgment, could never have been produced by an
who had
learnt to
draw with a
point.
And
here
we have
a
feature which has never been admitted in our academic system,
namely, the admixture of solid black with outline drawing
;
yet
Fig. 122.
it
must be admitted that the contrast between the
outline
is
very pleasant.
As
illustrations
treatment which the Japanese conditions induce, 120, 122, 123, and 124, where in one example
touched
in
the
Another
with solid black.
and other two coltsfoot
in outline only.
(Fig. 122)
and
Of the
is
and the
solid
of the simplicity of I
may
give Figs.
we have
shown partly
a plant
in
black,
these the most successful are
pink
(Fig.
124);
for
the
'.86
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE, of both are
characters
the
means
the
effect
most
is
while
given,
perfectly
by which achieved
is
The
simple.
rendering of the withering cotton plant
also
is
worthy of special commendation.
Another
merit
Japanese drawing
is its
crispness of touch
or
;
Rounded
angularity. lines, if
of
used
in a sketch,
generally produce feebleness of effect
angularity
whereas
:
drawing
in
gives vigour and
have this
in
126 I
a high degree of
crispness
acter,
and
will
illustrate
The
grandly
cision of touch,
make
The and the render-
its
charming
it
to the artist
is
the pre-
line,
crispness of
what
lily
drawn.
sweep of
:
and the
of grass, which
little bits
mingle with destroy
char-
125 and
Figs.
mean.
ing,
life.
drawings
Japanese
that
leafage,
its
hardness
which the sketch,
in their
absence, would have.
Clever as the sketch of the I'lG. 123.
lily
is,
that of the
I
ART,
Fig. 124.
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
Fig. 125.
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
Fig. 126.
ART,
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
Fig. 127.
U
289
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE.
ART,
AND ART MANUFACTURES,
293
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
ART,
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
V.^JV^^
Fig. 130,
293
294
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
ART AND ART MANUFACTURES.
296
/AFAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE.
V\c,. \yi.
ART,
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
Fro. 13J
297
298
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
ART,
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
299
300
lAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
ART AND ART MANUFACTURES.
301
302
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
r
Fig. 136.
Fig. 137.
ART,
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
Fig. 13S.
303
304
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
ART,
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
305
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE.
ART AND ART MANUFACTURES.
r^;r,';^':r^^Tr^;/A^il
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
ART,
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
3IO
JAPAN: ITS ARCHTTECTURE,
ART,
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
312
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
FrG. 143.
ART,
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
Fig. 14^.
.14
JAPAN: TTS ARCHITECTURE,
Fig. 145.
ART,
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
Fig.
\i,
315
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
3i6
wisteria creeper
scarcely less meritorious
is
winding of
leaves, the free
its
its
angularity of
for the
;
stems, and
the firmness with
which the buds jut out from the parent stem, gives an impression of
which no other treatment could achieve.
life
My
illustrations have, so far,
vegetable kingdom
and human
but birds,
;
figures
might be
illustrate those art qualities of
how
the view of showing illustrations
is
which would equally well
which we are now
these
apply,
principles
With
treating.
have had
I
from other kingdoms of nature than the vegetable
147 we have a
crisp
drawing of drapery
No
one who has seen a
In Fig.
Japanese
girl, full
of pride in her best clothes, going along the
of Tokio, could
streets
animals,
fishes, crustaceans, insects,
selected,
both characteristic and good.
prepared.
which
been drawn exclusively from the
fail
be struck with the excellence of
to
this slightly caricatured rendering of so important a personage
we
but
give
it
as an illustration of a
Although the
great merit.
would not be allowed that is
it
in
solid black
our schools of
which art, I
is
here used as hair
cannot help thinking
tends to separate the head from the drapery
of value to the drawing.
Fig.
:
method of drawing which has
;
and that
it
146 gives a drawing of the god
of wisdom.
Various
crabs,
which we also
figure,
simple manner in which natural objects Fig.
show charmingly the
may
be expressed (see
131); and on pages 292 and 296 we give drawings of the
same simple character of In
art,
birds.
nations are characterised by peculiarities of grouping
and of treatment.
The peacock on page 289
is
treated in a
so characteristic of Japan that no one need look at
order to say what people produced
it
and 306,
is
birds on pages 290, 302,
;
it
manner
twice in
and the grouping of the
equally characteristic.
But
there are other peculiarities of treatment, in which the Japanese indulge, which are well illustrated
black
is
by
Figs. 134, 135,
illustrations are so full of interesting ful
and 138, where
introduced in a strange and abnormal manner.
study, even
There
is
if
we do not approve
Yet these
work that they demand
care-
of the treatment here adopted.
yet another feature about some Japanese drawings
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART, which
should
unnoticed —
passed
mean Fig-
which
of
us
gives
143
be observed that
will
of the
front part
picture
the
a
Here
good example. it
I
the treatment of
foreground
the
be
not
formed
is
of
primrose,
violet,
dandelion,
equisetum,
and other
plants, ren-
with
dered
tionality
conven-
a
which reminds
us of our early stained
many
and
glass,
Whoever
tapestries.
method
originated this of treatment, that
tain
it
does
our
own
We
as
much works
the
as
of
have seen that
the drawings
crisp
cer-
is
country.
Japanese simple
it
character-
it
Japan
ises
old
in
of good
artists arc expression,
and
character,
in
conventional in nature.
But there
is
a quality
which their works possess that transcends all
other though is
life
the
merits, they be
great this
;
expression
with
which
of
they Fig. 147.
317
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
3i8
endow
their delineations of plants, birds, insects,
no other people can make drawings
When we draw a
bird,
we
live as
and
are content to imitate
either to produce the general
fishes
and
;
can the Japanese. its
form
and
;
of the object copied, or to
effect
The Japanese
portray laboriously every detail of the creature.
on the contrary, by a few simple strokes, produces a bird
artist,
which appears to live; dignified repose, or
is
it
pecks (Fig. 137), it flies, eyeing its prey. There is
it
it
rests in
life
in
his
rendering of birds, while ours are inanimate objects bearing but little
more
human
to
relation
the
living
thing than waxworks do to
beings.
Their drawings of
fish,
crustaceans, and insects have equal
They can make an
with their representations of birds.
appear pleased, a crab look as though its tail
insect
smiled, a herring
ways of
their
short, they
in
;
and to be able to
;
feel as these creatures do.
of plants there
representations
that keen perception of individual qualities
which we notice
appear to know the
and other things
birds, insects, fishes,
make themselves
in
their delineations
is
and
also
manifested
subtleties of
many
vigour which characterises so
my
Those who judge objects which are
shops
may
now
form
Intense
of other things.
love of both nature and their art can alone account for the like
wag
with delight, or an octopus perform on a musical instru-
ment, and yet seem natural
In
it
life
life-
of their works.
common many of our
remarks by reference to the
windows of
to be seen in the
be disposed to question the accuracy of
respecting the merits of Japanese art
goods (produced by the thousand
;
my
statements
but while some of these
patterns in advance of any that
European market) bear Birmingham or Wolverhampton
can produce at a similar price,
would be almost
it
for the
of English art by the landscapes seen on our or papier-mache blotting-books, as art
tea-trays,
would be to judge Japanese
by such specimens.
So much importance do drawings upon English
my
it
as fair to judge
common
book with native
art,
I
attach to the influence of Japanese
that
I
am
illustrations, (see
led
to
crowd
this
part of
Figs. 130, 137, 138, 141,
ART,
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
some may seem superfluous. But our young ornamentists to
142, 144, and 145), although I
cannot too strongly
recommemd
consider these drawings, and to
and acquire the Japanese
try
power of delineating natural forms with simplicity
commend
strongly
to
3iy
him the use of the brush
;
nor can
I
too
in preference to
that of the pencil.
But
must not be misunderstood
I
our national
and substitute
art,
do not wish
I
:
for
to destroy
the Japanese style.
it
I
merely wish that we should avail ourselves of those methods which are in advance of our Art, to
own
not minding where they originated.
;
be of value, must be national.
sentiments of the people
who
create
it
be adopted by a country without the
make
it
A
noble.
peoples, as the Greeks
art
sacrifice of qualities
may borrow
nation
;
must embody the
It
hence no foreign
art suggestions
can
which
from other
borrowed from the Egyptians, and as the
Japanese have borrowed from the Chinese even with advantage.
But the suggestions adopted must be of the country that adopts as to
They must be
them.
so modified
harmonise with the new conditions under which they
Broadly stated,
from
through the mind
filtered
my
peoples
all
;
position
but
is
this
we must
— we may borrow what
distil all
that
exist.
is
good
we borrow through
our own minds.
Thus white,
we have only spoken
far
of sketching in
and have made no mention of painting
in
its
black and
truer sense
;
we produce our The Japanese have no method of "working up"
but Japan knows no art similar to that by which great pictures.
an
effect
:
they cannot heap up labour upon a subject, and cover
a canvas with colour as consists
Indeed the best Japanese
do.
of perfect sketches, and not of works which we
" finished."
are
we
beyond
As all
sketches praise.
while the colour
understanding harmonies,
is
some of the Japanese coloured drawings They are vigorous, simple, and life-like ;
distributed with the greatest possible care
— understanding
understanding
of
own
quantities,
value
of the
drawings are at best but sketches lover of our
art call
school of pictorial
;
of
understanding shades.
but though art, I
I
am
and of
Japanese a sincere
have yet seen works by
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
320
Japanese
artists
which
I
would prefer to many an English picture
which has cost hundreds of pounds.
As
in
the narrative part of
of Japanese artists and their
more about them or in colour,
we
;
my
work
book (see
I
have already spoken
page
whether the works are
for
58J, in
I
need say no
black and white,
find that simplicity of treatment, that angularity
of drawing, that quaintness of rendering, that exquisite grace (see Figs. 125, 139, 144),
makes
all
their better
and that
life-like
character (Fig. 130) which
works so charming
ciate high art qualities.
for those
who can
appre-
AND ART MANUFA CTURES.
ART,
CHAPTER
32
II.
ANALOGIES AND SYMBOLS.
By the agency of language something has been done in the way of tracing the wanderings of mankind and the affinities of races to
;
but
am
I
not aware that decorative forms have been used,
any material extent,
me
although to
as a
means of
arriving at similar knowledge,
they seem capable of yielding valuable aid
in
such inquiries.
That there have been national characteristic
by
of the peoples
almost a truism
:
and
it
is
my
styles of
whom
ornament decisively
they were produced
is
ornamental forms
belief that the
and the decorative system employed by a people are of greater and value, as ethnological tests, than peculiarities of architecture ;
they afford
that
means
a
of determining the
relationship
and
the migrations of races, at least as satisfactory as do the words
or construction of a language.
As an Persia
illustration of
On many
examples.
bear Chinese
amongst
mean
I
may
take one or two
"
marks," has been a cause of
is
;
and as the
evidently not
Chinese potters had
"
paste
Chinese, exercised
it
"
a
purely
these dishes
much
controversy
of which these vessels
could
ths'r
in
all
This, together with the fact that
collectors
made
that
I
we have pure Chinese ornament arranged
Chinese fashion.
are
what
earthen plates which have reached us from
art
only be inferred in
some
foreign
country.
When made
in
evidence reached us of the fact that these vessels were Persia,
there
was no longer any room
Y
for
doubt that
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
322
Chinese potters had settled
country and revived the art of
in that
potting in the land of the Shah.
Further inquiry has shown this
and we can now trace much of the history of Persian ceramics from the period when the art was reintroduced into the
to be a fact,
country. I have in my possession a blue-and-white jar decorated on the sides with the purest of Arabian ornament, while the ends are treated in a Chinese manner, but the
work
is
stamped with a
Chinese mark. This
piece
was
probably
generation of the Chinese potters its
author had been instructed
fathers,
made by the second or who settled in Persia and ;
third
while
the traditional ornament of his
in
he had acquired a knowledge of the style of ornament
belonging to his adopted home. But in later works we find the ornament becoming more and more Arabian in character, and the potter's
mark changed
Another rugs,
to a Persian signature.
what
illustration of
I
mean
Yarkand
afforded by
is
which bear patterns of a curious Semi-Tartar character, and
resemble the works of Persia and India on the one hand, and of
China on the
So marked
other.
are the characters of these rugs
any one well acquainted with ornament could say from what
that
district
they must have come.
Just as the later Persian pottery owes potters, so are the
and the particular
to colonies of Persian potters
;
found on ceramic works
Syria,
in
bears conclusive testimony to this
The forms
ornament
fact.
;
but
in
assist us in building
up the
such an investigation we must be
not to confound similarity of form resulting from
copying of natural objects similarity in
class of
of domestic vessels are also characteristic of nations,
history of past ages careful
Chinese
and the Grecian Archipelago,
and the study of such would likewise most
origin to
its
wares of both Damascus and of Rhodes due
common
to
various
shapes of wholly ideal origin.
common
countries, with
Thus, because the
the earthenware of Japan, China, and
gourd form
is
Morocco,
does not necessarily follow that there was any inter-
it
in
communication between these countries dried skin of the bottle-gourd
is
in
for in
each country the
common use as
a domestic utensil.
;
ART, If
of
its
we now
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
turn to Japan
in
323
m
order to ascertain the origi
decorative forms, and consider the
grations, the contact of races, their
way
which past mi-
in
commercial intercourse, the
Fig.
Unit of Orna149. ment FORMING Cresting AROUND A HANGING LANTERN IN TOFUKUJI, NEAR Kioto. ball
(the
It
consists
sun)
of a
resting
on
clouds.
Fig.
148.
Old Sceptre or
Baton, with
the
head
Fig.
in
the form of a cloud.
150.— Persian Ornament, derived from cloud forms.
visits
of missionaries, or other incidents, have
ence on
the
world,
we should note
those
had
their
ornaments
influ-
which
have been derived from clouds, and probably owe their origin to Central Asia.
The head
of the sceptre or baton
which has been
of antiquities
tion
character, the
(Fig.
148)
has a form
in use from an early period, for in the collec-
at
Nara we
find
two objects of a similar
one being twelve and the other thirteen hundred
years old.
This particular shape staff,
is
not only
common
as the
head of a
but may be found as an ornament surrounding many Chinese
TAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
324
Yarkand
vases, as the border of certain
form,
on much
This
Persian work.
But to trace
derived from cloud.
its
a modified
rugs, and, in
is
one
ornaments
of the
origin
we should have
to
study
many examples
in
which cloud ornament oc(^/J^ curs (see Figs. 149, 150, 151, 152, I5 Persian
3>
and 154),
ornament
in
its
various modifications furnishes
many examples
of
shapes, arising out of an
extreme in
the
conventionality representation
Ornament, which owes
Fig. 151.— Persian
its
of
origin
this
of
Ornaments
cloud-forms. kind,
I
believe,
to cloud forms.
spread from Central Asia the one direction through China to Japan, and in the other
in
through India to Spain and Europe.
to
are
to
be
Cloud found
Italy,
and through these countries
ornaments
in
all
parts
of the Continent of Europe, as well as in the early
own
work of our
country.
An
ornament of considerable
antiquity preserved in the collection
and
on
found
Nara
Ornament representing the Sun (the ball) resting on Cloud. From over the doorway of a tomb in the
Fig. 152.
the
burial-ground outside the wall of Canton.
crupper of a saddle belonging to a sacred horse (which for centuries was hidden in a temple so sacred that even a high priest could not enter
it^)
is
of special interest.
Here we have forms derived from cloud and others from '
I
was got I
am
Nara
have seen the temple in which the horse out, or at
what time
it
was added
under the impression that
I
to the
is
said to exist, but
Mikado's collection,
how I
was told by one of the Government
this
flames.
ornament
cannot say officers
;
but
when
in
was removed from the horse when the present roof was placed upon the building. The roof of this temple in which the sacred horse is preserved is the finest specimen of thatch in Japan, and consists of thin layers of an inner bark of a cone-bearing tree.
that
it
ART, while in
the
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
centre
of
the
we
latter
shaped object so generally found
get that singular onionthe
in
325
grasp of the dragon,
forming the terminal ornament of certain forms of pagoda, and
Fig. 153.
—Clouds and Moon.
By
a native artist.
occurring also in the monstrance, and in the great majority of
monumental stones found
in
Buddhist cemeteries (see Figs. 38,
40, 50, 51.
This brings us to an important
which the world has known owes
fact. its
Much
of the ornament
origin to fire-worship.
the case of the monstrance (Fig. 50, see portion A), and the ornament from the sacred horse,
in that
In of
we have both cloud and flame
rendered in a decorative manner, and while the ornament of the
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
326
generally consists of
latter
pieces of brass, the
flat
"
jewel
is
"
emphasized by being formed of white metal. In a work like the present discuss fully the facts which
I
is
it
shall
impossible to illustrate or
have to state
;
but the con-
clusions arrived at have resulted from the most careful study of
During
decorative art for nearly thirty years. visited
nearly
all
museums
the
of
this
time
I
Europe, as well as
have
some
—
Fig. 154. Carved Box, formed of a rootjoint of the bamboo, decorated with orna-
ment having the form of clouds. Fig. 155.
Branch and Leaves.
countries of the East which are most likely to throw light on the
Yet
origin of early ornament.
inquiry will
visit
the Indian
if
those
Museum
who
at
are interested in the
South Kensington and
observe the Indian gods with their flamboyant nimbi, and
first
then study Siamese ornament (which owes to flames the very forms of
its
which seem to
forms almost wholly
flicker),
and
will
then
pass downwards to the more modern examples of Indian work
metal and fabrics, they will see that the forms which were
both
in
first
flamboyant became gradually foliaceous, and that flowers
were introduced
at a
had been forgotten.
owe it
its
late
The
period,
when
the origin of ornament
cloud ornament
origin to the vegetable formation to
certainly
does not
which some attribute
(Fig. 155).
Having argued
this
matter with that astute observer Dr.
Lauder Brunton, whose knowledge of ethnology seems only passed by his acquaintance with medicine, and who opposed
J.
sur-
my
ART,
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
theory with vehemence,
went with him
I
327
After two
to Kensington.
hours spent in the observation of examples, Dr. Brunton pulled out
an old-fashioned gold watch with a richly-chased margin, and, after
my
remarking that
ment around for
this
deductions were right, said
watch owes
one moment say that
that
all
my
"
And
the orna-
origin to fire-worship."
its
I
do not
conventional ornamental forms have
all
sprung from fire-worship,
—
for this
is
me
researches have led
not the case
but
;
do assert
I
most
to the conclusion that
Indian and some forms of European ornament, as well as forms
which are
common
in
use in Persia, Arabia, and Japan, are due
to the influence of this early religion.
Perhaps the
earliest religion
of
man
consisted in the worship
of those things which he feared and yet could not avert
—
as the
wind, which, as a tornado, overthrew his dwelling, uprooted the trees
which gave him
and destroyed
shelter,
his
crops
;
the rain,
when it fell in excessive quantities, produced floods and fire, which, when it got the mastery, became a veritable destroyer. With this we may compare the serpent worship of India and, to which,
;
;
this day, Professor in
Owen
tells us,
Western Africa pay a
which they
so
all
we
In Japan
much
Gaboon
the people of the
homage
sort of
district
to the ferocious gorilla
dread.
find a religion
and the sun
still
and
worship of
fire
civilisation
and the most perfect of
;
existing which involves the
this
is
arts.
accompanied by a high Thus,
in
this strange
country we are brought into contact with ornamental forms of a
most
finished character,
which
ligion to
There
is
which are found associated with the
their origin
is
no doubt about certain decorative forms having been
derived from flame and cloud (or cloud-like smoke) the flamboyant form a nimbus
is
re-
due.
encircled the head of a
first
by no means
clear.
;
human
It is said that the
but
when
effigy as
ancient Greeks
placed a sort of platter, or dish, over the heads of their figures in
order to protect them from the weather, and that this of the nimbus tive
;
but Mrs. Jameson referred
its
is
the origin
origin to the primi-
idea that luminous nebula emanate from, and surround, the
Divine
Essence (Homer,
II.
xxiii.
205), and gilded rays were
328
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
placed by the
Romans round
nimbus
still
century
B.C.
A
the heads of those
in existence
received
this
form of
which have come to us from the fourth
number of those Japanese
large
who
There are one or two examples of
divine honours.
which we
figures
find in
the Buddhist temples have a nimbus, that of the great Daibutz
of Kioto (the
Buddha
largest
of Japan)
being seventy-eight feet in diameter this is a circular
and
number of
a large
but
;
linear nimbus, while
figures
have the flam-
boyant form, either behind the head or behind the entire body, Piscis " (Fig.
the "Vesica
My enable
to
throw no
light
of the circular nimbus oldest temples of
One had
a
China
on the origin I
find in the
Nara some curious and
modifications
interesting
and
but
;
of
156).
Japan
researches in
me
the form
in
wheel -like
of
this
character,
form. as
it
consisted of a peripherical margin, a central
boss,
and eight spokes connecting the
rim with the centre
;
but on the margin
were three tongues of flame, one occupying an upper and central position, while the Fig. 156.
Figure with "Vesica
From
Piscis."
temple butsu, Osaka. of
the
the
graveyard - kana-
Sennichi
other two terminated the horizontal spokes.
The
position of a fourth (should such exist)
would be hidden by the
figure.
Another nimbus consisted of a ring enclosing a flower with eight petals, the tips of which touched an enclosing hoop, and from a central boss proceeded a number of stamens, and eight sets-of-three wires
—the
wires being about three times the radius
of the circle in length.
When flower,
I first
and
blossom.
it
saw
this
nimbus
was wonderfully
The arrangement
I
like
mistook
its
centre for a passion
some of our treatments of
that
of the rays so perfectly corresponds
with a form of nimbus with which
we
are familiar that one
is
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
forced to the conclusion that those
and those which are so general
art
employed in
in
329
our ecclesiastical
Japan have had a common
origin.
Buddhism and
by
older
is
diffusion
its
six
centuries than the Christian Era,
wider than that of Christianity, being pro-
is
by nearly one-third of the entire human race. According to Griffis, fessed
it
has a
literature
per-
haps larger than that of all
com-
other religions
bined. I
to
mention these
facts
show the extent of
Nimbus of a Buddhist Saint in one of THE OLD Temples of Nara. The flower is formed of hammered metal, and the rays of rigid wires.
Fig. 157.
the influence exercised by the religion which has so
powerfully acted upon the arts of Japan
my
belief that
;
and here
I
may
state
most of the Christian symbols were derived from
older religions, and that at some early time there has been a somewhat intimate association between countries now widely separated,
and that
West
has resulted
this association
in
the use, through East and
alike, of identical forms.
My
reasons for thinking that Buddhists used the nimbus and
the flamboyant
"
Vesica Piscis
symbolism are these
:
—
I
find
"
before they entered into Christian
them on the images in temples and travel and some of these images
by the roadside wherever I Buddhism was introduced are very old. ;
ability
soon after
the
beginning
into
of the
Japan
Christian
in
prob-
all
era,
but
it
when it spread How old the idols in some of the rapidly throughout the land. temples are it is impossible to say, but a number of Buddhist
made
little
headway
until the thirteenth
missionaries arrived, together with
and
others,
from the Corea
century,
mathematicians, astronomers,
A.D. 552, to live at the
Japanese Court,
and tradition says that with them they brought some of the now preserved at Nara and Kioto. But whether these or missionaries brought the oldest of the idols
idols
(many of which
later
are
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
330
obviously of Indian workmanship), and whether the idols were old or
new when brought
to the country, this
Dai-butz at Nara was the
work was destroyed through
original
In
recast in the twelfth century.
nimbus, and there
Buddha
is
Jesuits,
ended
is
every reason
was introduced
The nimbus ;
in
that
this
latter
the sixteenth century
;
thousand then perished.
could not, then, have been
yet there
first
introduced with
the bare possibility that works of the
is
may have
early Christians
most
believe
was
certainly has a
it
at Satsuma but their work was abruptly 1637 by the massacre of every Christian in the land.
It is said that thirty-seven
Christianity
Japan
into
who landed
in A.D,
to China,
to
wars, and
civil
form
its latter
a mere copy of that which formerly existed.^
Christianity
by
certain, that the great
is
erected in the eighth century, although
first
found their way through Central Asia
and from China by Corea
to Japan.
Yet
this
seems
had such been the case we should surely
unlikely, for
find
other traces besides the nimbus and flamboyant " Vesica Piscis," while the nimbus and Vesica Piscis alone, of
appear to have reached
There remains the everything that to be found in
the words of
fact, in
Roman
distinctive in the
is
all
Christian symbols,
this country.
Buddhism
—
Grififis,
that
"
almost
form of Christianity
images, pictures,
is
lights, altars, incense,
vestments, masses, beads, wayside shrines, monasteries, nunneries, celibacy,
fastings,
vigils,
pilgrimages,
retreats,
mendicant vows,
shorn heads, orders, habits, uniforms, purgatory, saintly and priestly intercession, indulgences,
bishops."
It is
two, inherited
1
Grififis,
and
who
works of supererogation, pope and arch-
Buddhism, the older
belief that
pageantry, usages,
its
and the "Vesica
bell, or
my
Piscis,"
from a
still
spent some time in Japan, says
ritual,
earlier :
religion of the
the rosary, the nimbus,
form of worship.
I
can
— " In medieval times the casting of a
image, a lantern, or any great sacred object, was the occasion of a public holiday
festival,
and, for the purpose, the priests asked offerings of gold or
adornments, mirrors, copper and other metals. finest results of these sacred offerings.
great Dai-butz at Nara]
was the seventh
.
.
.
silver,
personal
At Nara and Kamakura there are the The casting of the idol [referring to the
having been made, and three thousand tons of charcoal were used in the operation. The metal, said to weigh 450 tons, is a bronze composed of gold, 500 pounds; mercuiy, 1954 pounds; tin, 16,827
pounds; and copper, 986,080 pounds."
effort, six failures
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART, bring but
evidence to support such a theory
little
fident that research will ultimately
show
has grown out of fire-worship, and that
than the sun
;
for in certain
but
;
331
it is
nimbus
nothing more nor
ball,
which
is
my own and
"
is
a red
nothing but a representation of the sun and an This
fire-worship.
opinion
is
also the view of Mr. French, but
derived only from the study of Eastern religions
is
art.
In at
less
Eastern drawings we find the nimbus
represented as the sun, and the Imperial ensign of Japan
outcome of
con-
I feel
that the circular
ornament obtained
the
Nara we have
crupper of the horse
the centre of the flamboyant
in
and Mrs. Jameson
jewel,"
from the
members a
calls attention to the fact that
luminous
Now
nebulae were supposed to emanate from the Divine Essence.
the Japanese speak of the "jewel" as the pearl of great price
symbol of Divine Essence
—
by Mrs. Jameson
the idea set forth
as that of ancients
is
—
Hence
a type of the soul of man.
certainly
that of the Japanese. It
not difficult to conceive an ignorant and superstitious
is
people picturing to themselves a centre or nucleus as the source
from which
fire
emanates, for they might easily think there was a
which gave to
sort of spirit in flame
however of
this
many
may
we
be,
5
consuming
i
represent objects associated with the
hist worship which closely resemble the monstrance of the
The one
Catholic Church.
a Chinese prince, in
temple prince
in
But
qualities.
flamboyant ornaments.
ecclesiastical
Figures 50 and
it
find this nucleus or "jewel " in the centre
Budd-
Roman
was brought by Mamayado,
(Fig. 50)
the early part of the sixth century from a
The
China called Koriu as a present to the Japanese.
who brought
this
was born
in a stable, as his
name
implies
;
while the other (Fig. 51), which belonged to the temple Ishin in Kioto,
was brought by a famous
as a present
upon the occasion of
priest called
These objects are now preserved
Mikado
at Kioto,
and
it
Yenko-Daishi^ also
his visit to Japan.
was there
I
in
the old
palace of the
had the privilege of
ing them, and to Mr. Kawase, the Minister of Commerce, '
Daishi
is
a
name given
after
death to priests of great celebrity.
I
see-
am
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
332
indebted for photographs of these and other objects of the highest interest.
These works were objects were
similar "
"
jewel
Kioto collections many-
in the
In
was formed of a hollow ball of glass.
contained the tooth of a high
found
and
in gold,
of this precious metal.
in the
priest,
and
is
great
for
;
ornament, together with clouds, surrounding
But whatever
we
find
in later
a
work
But, besides the
works before us show
object, the
that in the seventh and the thirteenth centuries
anything produced
flamboyant
this jewel in
dating from the early part of the seventh century. interest thus attaching to this
it
another metallic lumps
in
ashes after the cremation of a priest.
they contain their interest to us
the
cases
all
In one instance
work equalling
times could be done.
In the collections at Kioto there was one of those monstrances their jewels in the centre arranged as a flat triangular
which had pile,
this
here
we have
the thought of a Trinity
arrangement does not seem
do not know the date of
it,
I
to
—
the three sides
have been general
;
but
;
and as
must not comment further upon
In the heraldry of Japan, however,
we
I it.
a crest consisting of
find
three "jewels" with three tongues of flame surmounting them, and
another formed of one
On
all
"
jewel
"
with the three flames.
Buddhist altars we find three
bells.
One
of them has a
handle terminating dent
a
in
tri-
another has the handle
;
ending
in five prongs, the
lateral
being repeated
two
in
a
cruciform manner, while the other has but one (the central)
Instruments held in the Hand by A Buddhist Priest when he prays in front OF A Censer.
prong.
There are also
on such
altars
three curious
objects,
each
of which
Fig. 158.
about six inches
One trident, the
end
—
prongs being at both ends
the central prong
each end.
These the
;
;
of these
is
is
in
length.
a
double
one has a spike
at
each
while the other has the five prongs at
priest
holds in his
hands while praying
AND AR T MANUFA CTURES.
ART,
33
near a censer, and they seem to typify the destructive power of the Deity (Fig.
we
If
8).
we
trace the history of these forms
remote ages, (Fig. 5 i)
i 5
for
not only have
we such
are carried back to
objects on the monstrance
from the thirteenth century, where the trident occurs on
the lower portion of the stand, and the unident (or spear) on the
superposed base, but we have the trident also on the lower portion of the similar object from the seventh century (Fig
Nara
we
collection
find
straight prongs, the lateral
an actual object of
central of
in
kind, only with
which has two barbs, while the
we
In the Kioto antiquities
have but one barb each.
an old sword
this
In the
50).
find
the shape of this double trident, only with one of
the central prongs elongated into a blade.
The
authorities
originally
at a later date
instead
some
it
Nara
at
employed by
me
told
that this instrument
priests for the catching of
I
find
it
in
;
was
while
for fighting
purposes
the clenched
hand of
seems to have been used
of knuckle dusters.
madmen
of those diabolical figures which so often guard the gates of
Buddhist temples.
When the
considering this double trident
similarity
between
it
we cannot help
noticing
and the form by which the Romans
represented Jupiter's thunderbolt
;
and there
is
probably some
connexion between them which we cannot explain. In the Kioto collection there were one or two examples of tridents arranged in the form of a cross.
I
was told that these
were formerly associated with the worship of Buddha, but that On a piece of embroidered their use was long since abandoned. silk
which formed part of a dress brought from China by a Budand which
dhist priest in the early part of the fourteenth century,
he
left
the temple
to
arrangement
Nanzen
in
Kioto,
we
get this cruciform
(Fig. 159).
In looking at this piece of embroidery and comparing other objects at this Kioto
mounted
Museum, and
at Nara,
with a similar object, notably a bell
years old,
we
this trident
could not
fail
it
which are
with sur-
more than a thousand
to see a resemblance in form between
and the British crown.
In the specimen at Nara,
we
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
334
not only have the
prongs meet.
we have
do
I
prongs (four of which appear as the bands
five
of our crown), but
a ball or orb resting where the five that the form of the
not, of course, affirm
^_--^^:i—^---—— —^
_:_
_
:-_
^=^^_i=s=-
;
crown and
British
dhistic trident
mon may
origin,
be so
such
is
;
as
although
this
but the likeness
my
justify
to
calling attention to
form
Bud-
this
have a com-
may have
The
it.
originally
typified a monarch's
power
to destroy.
With after ^ Embroidery which formed part of a Fig. 159.— r, Prif.st's Dress.
It
was brought from China
in the
The
called
early part of the 14th century.
figure
is
common
to this
two Byzantine third
the
lilies
in
or
awav /
a
wooden
loHO" Dast
which
'
I
mav J
spoon
Turkey, the handle of which consists of
surmounted by a hand.
This hand has the
approximated to the thumb, as though
finger
Fig. 160.
day
persist,
influences
have called them into being &
have
mention
Tokko.
the view of show-
how forms may
ing
it
were the
Turkish Spoon, decorated with Byzantine Lilies, Glory Rays, the Hand of the Deity in the act of blessing.
.\nd
hand of the Deity in the act of blessing the food to be partaken At the point where the two lilies of by the agency of the spoon. meet we have a It
is
many ated
is
60).
Byzantine
old
common
use in
the symbols are Christian, and the character of the
centuries. in
1
curious to find a spoon of this kind in
Turkey, for
work
disc of glory-rays (Fig.
;
yet Constantinople has been
Mahometan
for
This form of spoon must, however, have origin-
Byzantium or some
earlier
form of worship, and
ART,
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
335
significance being lost, the form has yet survived to the present
its
day.
Another instance which
show the
will
survival of an ornament,
strangely altered during the lapse of time, occurs in the embattled
The form
tops of certain Arabian buildings.
cences of the wall would in no origin
Not
flames.
to
traced back to signifies fire or
shape to trace
to a
it
however,
only,
of these
excres-
suggest that they owe their
original shape, but
its
flame
embattled form,
this
way
can
ornament be
this
the Moorish
name
for
it
had not the name suggested the origin of
;
I
should scarcely have been led by
symbol of
its
mere
fire-worship.
in
show that forms which have special significance to a people who create them may survive a most unexpected manner, and be even characteristic objects
in
a country where
I
a
give these illustrations simply to
We
;
expect to find them.
hence reference should be made to another In
interest.
Saviour,
least
have been speaking of the trident as an instrument of
destruction
some
we should
when
in
is
represented with a hand
where there were many the
idols, I
but the two
;
In the old city of Nara,
churches arrange the fingers differently.
in
of
both the Greek and the Latin churches the
the act of blessing,
upraised and the fingers in a particular position
arranged
fact
observed two with their fingers
manner of the two
Christian
others with their fingers differently disposed.
and
churches,
When
I
asked the
meaning of the arrangement of the digits, a priest informed me that if the fist was clenched tightly with the thumb inside, we have an indication of the wrath which closed
will
destroy the transgressor
and the thumb extended, great
utterly.
If the
anger
indicated, but not utter destruction.
not
is
fist
is
remember the exact
fingers
;
significance
but he said that they
displeasure.
all
of
The
priest could
each position
the
of
symbolised different degrees of
In the case of the clenched
fist
with the enclosed
thumb, reference was made to punishment with the sword here we have an idea similar to that presented
in
the
;
Book
so of
Genesis by the flaming sword guarding the gate of Eden.
The
question of the origin of forms found in Japanese art
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
336
connected
is
with
upon
especially
and
These are
of their works,
we
find certain
easily be mistaken for
mere orna-
fine pieces of lacquer,
decorative devices which might
ments.
On many
heraldry.
their
fabrics
or badges granted to families for
really crests
heroic deeds or benefits conferred upon the country, as heraldic
bearings have been awarded to certain families in England.
know
I
no book which contains a greater number of
of
beautiful ornaments than the illustrated
peerage of Japan
little
volume which constitutes the
for the
;
although simple
crests,
in
and many of them furnish us
character, are beautifully designed,
with a variety of simple devices derived from an elementary form
which we should scarcely think capable of such various treatments. Fig.
\\6 a
some of the
give
j
X.O
which have been
crests
derived from the leaf of the Maidenhair-tree, yet these are by no
means
owe
that
all
we
besides these
to
this
1 1
6
is
t
boat
Fig.
;
sails
;
a form of
1 1
6
Fig.
j-
1 1
gong
;
is
6
Fig.
116^
>^
is
Fig.
the Gohei or Shinto 2
5
their
at
hammer
of Daikoku
emblem
6
i 1
Fig.
;
?^
enemies
1 1
Hawking,
as
6
/ is
were
times
ancient
in
two
is
we have
Japan (having been introduced
favourite pastime in
by a Corean Ambassador in the as also was fishing by cormorants of the
a Japanese
of
Fig.
;
consists of four knives, such as
represents three hawk's feathers.
was a
orifice
derived from five anchors
thrown by female warriors
seen,
but
;
a crest representing the wood-work
which stands upon the earth around the well
form
foliaceous
give a few with the view of pointing out their
Fig.
significance.
origin
their
early part of the third century), ;
Fig.
i\6 n gives
— the god of
riches
;
five repetitions
Fig.
16 r gives
i
the back view of three sitting hares reduced to a most simple form
with their heads and ears showing over their backs gives us three of those
little
folded papers which
1 1
6/
is
a cart wheel
;
and
Fig.
116
;/i
Fig.
1
16 q
we always find the Nosu
attached to anything intended as a present in Japan Fig.
;
—
;
represents the heads of
three arrows used for the cutting of ropes in ancient warfare
;^
A curtain or Baku supported on cords surrounded the headquarters of a commanding general during battle. These arrows were especially intended to cut these cords and expose the commander. '
but besides
ART,
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
these
we have
the form
in
crests
337
of mile -stones,
mallets, fir-branches, pine-cones, ships, tops, fans of all kinds,
including that which the umpire at a wrestling match holds in his
hand,
—
birds, flowers,
drums, roots, helmets,
shells, hats,
umbrellas,
the rudders of vessels, butterflies, horns, water, clouds, centipedes,
and a hundred other (the
the
Tokugawa
of the
crest
Awoi
(a species of
j we
family)
a
in
Crests are
circle.
Thus
are merely variations of one object.
crest
of three leaves of
consists
mallow) arranged
from a multiplicity of objects, but
not only derived
them
The well-known Shogun's
things.
in Fig.
many i
1
we
get ten crests from the leaf of the Maidenhair-tree, as
have just said
of
6 ^ to
and the number might be largely increased.
;
Nothing astonished
me more
during
my
stay in Japan than
many of the old works had a strong Egyptian feeling. So striking were these Egyptian characteristics, that I was in some cases almost tempted to think that the specimens before
to find that
me were works by old Egyptian artists. On certain Buddhist altars we find ending
in
scales, a
to I
a branch of the lotus,
a flower and a leaf; while attached to the stem are
young
leaf,
and a bud
(Fig.
Such an object
19).
have been held out by Buddha, when he prayed
need scarcely point out the strange likeness which
There
bears to ancient Egyptian work.
is
is
said
for his mother. this
object
that rigidity about
parts, that simplicity, yet dignity, in its treatment,
its
and that stern
conventionality in the drawing of the flower, which would almost lead us to believe that
it
was produced under the Pharaohs.
the two forms of monstrance which
we have
figured on pages
and 156 we have also conventional representations of the
In i
5 5
lotus,
many of the Buddhas of same conventional manner.
equally rigid in their treatment, while
Japan
rest
on a flower treated
in
the
In their temples they use as ornaments on the altars groups of lily-buds
bound together
character.
which are not
less
must, however, be noticed that the
It
with Buddhism the former a
(Fig. 161),
is
five
Egyptian
lily
in
associated
not that of Egypt, the latter being a Nymphaea,
Nelumbium
flower growing in
the
;
but each country has simply used the
land.
In both Z
cases the particular lily
338
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
which was familiar to the people was treated with the same conventionalism.
In
some Japanese forms
of the lotus
rigid
we have
two longitudinal convex ridges on the
Fig.
i62.^Lotus in cast Bronze, preserved THE Mikado's Treasury at Nara.
such as we find on Egyptian
petals,
and Greek leaf-mouldings
(Fig. 162).
While speaking of the
may
in
lotus
we
that a conventional
also notice
ornament, having to the scroll-work of
China a "
the
to the its
similar to that which
relation
Anthemion
"
of the Greeks bore
ornament of that country, owes
origin to this flower (see Fig. 163)
but the work of tracing
and
the
Anthemion, must be
who may wish
;
the modifica-
between the natural
tions, intei-vening
representation
all
conventional
left to
the student
go farther
into the
Again, we have as the
insignia
to
subject. Fig. 161.
Group of Lotus Buds used ON Buddhist Altars.
of
ground, or a red
ball
Japan
a golden
on a white ground,
representation of the sun.
By
—
in
ball
on
a
red
other words, a
the ancient Egyptians a similiar
and on Plate V. of Owen Jones' Grammar of Ornament we have examples of Egyptian work in which this red Thus, it rests on a lotus in the bow of a boat, it ball occurs. device was used
;
I
ART,
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
surmounts a stern-post,
and
occasions,
it
placed
;
while
in
that
over every doorway and window-
Egypt we have the sun
in
Fig. 163.
occurs on a feather used on ceremonial
crowns the head of the asp
ornament which was opening
it
339
as
the central
figure,
and
Chinese Anthemion.
This ornament was derived from the flower of the Buddhist Lotus (Nelumbium), and the leafage surrounding it from Clouds.
wings and asps placed
On
laterally.
an old lantern, pendent
in
the Tofuku-ji near Kioto, for permission to photograph which
I
am much
I
indebted to the priests connected with the temple,
found as a cresting a series of (Fig.
ment
1
49)
;
balls,
or suns, resting on cloud
and while the Egyptians never used the cloud as orna-
so far as
I
know, the manner
in
which the
poised on the rounded masses of vapour cannot us of the
way
in
ball
fail
to
is
here
remind
which the ancient Egyptians both drew and
used their ornaments.
I
also found a similar
ornament crowning
the entrances to tombs in China (Fig. 152). Further, w^e find in old Japanese works water rendered as the "
wave -scroll," and drawn precisely
we
see the key-pattern in
many
as
it
was by the Egyptians;
varieties,
but especially
in
the
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
340
more simple ways
We
which
in
it
found
is
Egyptian work.
have birds as a favourite ceiling ornament
also
countries, while in each instance a rigid terises the is
old
in
drawing
and
;
some
in
both
in
conventionality charac-
of the renderings of birds there
a striking similarity between the works of the two countries.
There
is
also the simple, yet dignified, portrayal of the figure, as
Buddhas of Japan, and the sculptured gods and kings of There is the use of lotus -leaves on mouldings, and we have the slanting walls of the buildings (see Figs. 70 and While, again, the Nile god was supposed to dwell in the 45). in
the
the Egyptians.
lotus-flower, all
this
we
Buddha
on that blossom as a throne.
sits
Nara, while performing
that the priestesses at
find
their sacred dance, used the sistrum or rattle in
the priestesses of
Isis,
and
in
Besides
manner of
the
both countries the sistrum
the
(like
yoni of the Hindus) symbolises the celestial virgin.
Then of ancient
the Japanese pillows bear a close resemblance to those
Egypt
both nations, and
the use of the metallic mirror
;
Egyptians had the
ibis
countries the bird
common
is
the Japanese have the stork
;
A
sacred.
is
Thebes
lion at
and
;
both
in
drawn with
is
a circular ornament on the shoulder, similar to that which find
on many of the old mythical animals of Japan.
formed of
birds'
heads arranged
in either country.
In both
we
in linear series are
find
made by
resemblance to writing-desk.
common form
little
And
Many
both cases the
in
man's arm as the handle. for carrying burdens,
and
Egypt we
little
boxes
are adjuncts to the
swings on a pivot.
lid
A
a similar bowl with a
find
Both countries have used the in
both have used the palanquin ;
of the
of spoon in Japan has a shell-shaped bowl with a
stick-like handle, while
ages
Patterns
uncommon
the Egyptians for toilet purposes bear a
cases which in Japan
in
not
we
a sort of capital on granite
columns, formed by painted ornament.
such as were
to
The
each the circular form has prevailed.
in
each case for the
it
was similar
"
in
both have had the folding camp-stool
managed
in
form
"
;
carrying of august person;
and
in
each country
large gates were set in pivoted sockets of similar character.
the hinging of doors was
yoke
the
same way
in
Thus
both coun-
ART,
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
and the people of both nations are characterised by that
tries,
we regard
peculiar obliquity of the eye which
as characteristic
Both peoples
of the Japanese and Chinese races. in
341
also believed
astrology (the Japanese will never go to war unless the stars
which constitute the
of Ursa
tail
major point down upon the
enemy), and both acknowledge the mystic character of the numbers three and seven.
Then, again, the Japanese employ that system of carving "
which the
ground
"
around the bas-relief
is left
the surface of the sculptured figure does not protrude surface in which
ducing what
I
it is
may
cut
call
;
yet, so far as I
know,
in
standing, so that
this
beyond the
system of pro-
sunk basso-relievo works has not been prac-
by any other peoples than the Egyptians and the Japanese. in Egypt are of this character
tised
But while the carvings of the temples
the examples in Japan are found only on small objects.
should also be noticed that the religion of ancient Egypt
It
some analogy
bears
both countries
we
to the
in
the sun as an object of worship, and in
find
both the Phallic idea
Thus,
Shinto worship of Japan.
is
apparent.
In Egypt also the sovereign
same relation to the church that the Mikado does to Shinto. Thus we find a group of two figures on one of the ancient Egyptian monuments (the one being that of the god
bore
much
the
Amun-Ra, and
the other the
Emperor Amunmai-Anemneb), while
on the throne of these deified beings
and
titles
Lord of
:
"
The
Battles,
Giver of Life."
Nor stress
is
this
is
written the King's
name
Priest, the Lord of the World, the
Son of the Sun,
Amunmai-Anemneb
Amun-Ra,
beloved by
In both nations there were all.
There
than on any other.
is
many
one coincidence on which
lay
I
more
Certain drawings of papyri found,
remember
have
rightly, on the temple of pending from the upper portions of the inflorescence Philse,
the
gods.
little ;
if
I
drops
and on
Grammar of Ornament, Fig. 9, we find the same peculiarity, while it occurs also on the capital of a column marked Plate V. of The
Fig.
7
of Plate VI. of the same work.
The
nature of these
drops has never been satisfactorily explained. In a
little
work
entitled
The Egyptian Court, described by
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
342
Owen
Jones and Samuel Sharpe, and published by the Crystal
Palace Company,
amidst other sketches an illustration of
{Fig.
—
:
formed of several rows of
flowers, all full-blown, each flower
peculiarity, it is
find
50) and a wall decoration {Fig. J2) with this " Fig. jo is yet more complicated and the remarks
column
a
we
:
smaller as
it
approaches the bottom of the
capital.
The drops
hanging from the edge of the flowers are not easily explained." •
•
^2
''Fig.
•
which edges
is
a part of another view of a papyrus-field, in
the flowers are full-blown and have drops from the
all
" (Fig.
1
64).
Petal of a Lotus Flower ON WHICH Buddha sits, with a Jewel pendent from near its
Fig. 165.
Egyptian Drawing of PART OF A Papyrus-field.
Apex.
Fig. 164.
This Lotus
is
preserved in one
of the ancient temples of Nara, and this
jewel hangs from
each of the
outer petals of the flower.
While
Buddhas
sitting
pendent a
the old temples of
visiting
little
preserved there
Nara
I
observed several
on lotus-flowers, from every petal of which hung jewel, or drop I
;
and
in the collection of antiquities
found a lotus of great age with green petals
having recurved apices, while from the
tip of
every petal hung a
drop set in a brass socket (Fig. 165). There can be no doubt that whether these jewels are intended to represent little
crystal
dewdrops, or to typify the water from which the flower
rises,
whether they are offerings of jewels to the lily, or whether they have a significance of which we now know nothing, they are the
same thing represented by the Egyptian interesting that
artists
;
and
it is
strangely
Japan should open to us a means of understanding
the nature of forms
drawn by the Egyptians some thousands of
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
From some
years since.
ornament depend
The
may
stated
course with
Egypt
but there
;
is
show
to
suffice
Japanese have, at an early period, had in the " feeling "
also observed a curious
I
(see Fig. i66).
already
facts
lotus petals
343
that
the
inter-
something
with which certain works have
been executed that cannot be described, and
which yet proves more certainly than any mere similarity of form
how
the origin from which the
work has been
inspiration of the
between countries so
this intercourse
mote came about
I
But
derived.
cannot say.
re-
In the early
centuries of the Christian era constant inter-
course was kept up between China and Japan
and many Buddhist
;
from Siam and
priests
Fig. i66.
— Ornament
pen-
eighth to the twelfth century this intercourse
dent FROM EACH PETAL OF A Lotus Flower in AN OLD Temple at Nara.
Cammade Egypt
a Persian province
India also visited the latter country.
was frequent
nor must
;
we
the year 523 B.C.
the
forget that
byses, the son of the great Cyrus, in
From
Whether communication with Egypt was
conducted through continental Asia or not is
There as
I
cannot say
but
;
it
probable that this was the case.
it
is
occurs
a form of cross to which reference ought to be made,
By some it is termed the Germans know it as the crux ganunata ;
frequently in
Buddhist cross
;
but the
Japan.
we, however, have christened
Ceramic Arts
Syracuse
in
and gives
countries, ;
it
illustrations
Greek urn
;
and as
form
traces this
from Asia Minor
from the dress of a figure
from an old
In the
the fylfot or sivastika.
Remote Ages Waring
in the
found
;
in various
from a coin of
catacombs at in
India,
Rome
;
Denmark,
North Germany, and on old works from the American continent. Dr. Inman regards this as an archaic symbol derived from an early
form of worship,^ and Waring
pattern as derived from this cross. 1
Ancient, Pagan, and
Inman, M.D.
Modern
regards
Inman
the
Greek key-
tells us, further,
Christian Symbols exposed and explained by
that a
Thomas
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
344 particular kind
of key -pattern symbolised the tortoise both in
Assyria and Greece.
As
the history of this form has been so carefully traced,
only
need
I
the prevalence of the
call attention to
swastika in Japan, where
it
occurs on
many
objects connected with Buddhist worship
and as the I
crest of a noble family.
may add
that
I
found on an
sword -handle of native work formed dark 167). nails
by the inlaying of
alloy,
a
old
pattern
silver
in
a
seemingly of Celtic origin (Fig.
Many
of the grand large-headed
which are found on the old temple-
gates of Japan are identical with those of
Moorish manufacture
still
to
be seen
in
Spain, and a form of pendent lamp, with
two or three trays superposed one above the other, and used by the Jews in Morocco, is Fig. 167.— Sword-handlk of
OLD Jatanese Work. The ornament is Damascened work, and
is
also a form
In this chapter
of Celtic char-
acter.
much employed
in
the Bud-
dhist temples of Japan.
a few facts with
I
have brought forward
the
simple
purpose
of
showing the probable origin of some of the features which characterise early
Japanese
art,
and of pointing out
to
the student
that research into the affinities and migrations of races
aided by a consideration of ornament not of a language.
less
may
be
than by the study
ART,
AND ART MANUFA CTURES.
CHAPTER
34
III.
THE LACQUER MANUFACTURES.
The
art of
working with lacquer
is
and, like most processes practised
introduced from Corea or China
of great antiquity in Japan,
in
the country, was probably
but the Japanese attribute the
;
invention of most of their manufacturing processes to the former.
The
assertion that
"
while the Japanese have invented nothing,
they have improved upon everything that has come before their notice
borne out by the lacquer-work of the country.
" is fully
Chinese certainly
make
The
lacquered wares, but in Japan the art has
been brought to a degree of perfection unknown elsewhere; indeed,
some of
work
their low-relief
is
modelled with a tenderness and
delicacy quite equal to that of the best work of the great medalist,
Wyon. It is
that
assert
we know
a pity that the
so
little
Chinese as well as
of Corea, for the Japanese
themselves learned
many
my
know-
of their industries from the Coreans.
ledge
of the
what
little
know I
century
who
in
full
the
of
re -conquered
— from
certain
curio dealers of Kioto
very small, and
Mikado's palace at Kioto, where
treasures
Corea
articles
at
brought the
offered
by Japan's great
end of the sixteenth for
sale
by the
best
and Tokio, and from some few pieces of
pottery which have found their country.
is
been gathered from the collection of
has
saw
was a room
warrior
confess that
Coreans and their industries
I
objects which there
I
way
into
Europe from
this strange
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
346
As
far as
have seen, most of the objects brought from Corea
I
appear to be Chinese works which have been imported to that country, although this idea
is
quite inconsistent with the Japanese
many
behef that the Chinese have derived
of their methods of
work
and certain styles of ornament from the people of this peninsula.
However
may
this
be, the
inaccessibility of
Corea prevents our
tracing back the manufactures of Japan to this country
want a Commodore Perry This, however,
is
open to us Corea as he did Japan.^ one time Japan enjoyed consider-
certain, that at
with
intercourse
able
to
Corea, and
carried on between the
two
and we
;
that
joyed for some hundreds of years
civilisation
but
;
commerce was
Indeed, Japan received
countries.
either from or through Corea the
large
a
which
has en-
it
have never seen even
I
one piece of lacquer which could be regarded with certainty as of
Corean
origin.
In the Mikado's collection of antiquities at Nara there are certain pieces of lacquer-work
thousand years
works
old,
and
hundred years back the in
a crude
state.
At
Kioto are
in the palace in
character with
of this
which are known to be more than a
known
dates
art could only this period
many
ancient
but until about six
;
be regarded as having been
able artists were
employed
to
paint the patterns upon lacquered objects, and low -toned colours
were somewhat freely used upon such productions.
The
actual
workmanship was
at this time less meritorious than
but there was an it became at a later date work which has scarcely been equalled
art quality
;
since.
about the
About
three
hundred years back the lacquer- workers themselves undertook the decoration of the objects formed, and then the highest manipulative excellence
was attained
the best lacquer wares
terised
— an
down
excellence which
to about one
charac-
hundred years
back.
During in
this period of
the lacquer-work, but
kinds of work in which
two centuries
much "
clouded
"
colour was employed
little
gold was used
gold
;
and those particular
effects, avanturines,
and
tesselated gold are introduced, as well as low-relief modelling of a '
While
this
work has been
in the press
Corea has been opened to
us.
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
most perfect kind, were invented and brought
347
to a high state of
perfection.
While the best work, as regards the
treatment of lacquer
skilful
was made during the seventeenth and eighteenth must not be supposed that a sudden decline in the
as a material, centuries,
it
lacquer-worker's art took place at about the year 1800.
Men
have since lived who must be regarded as great masters of their art
;
and
I believe that
works are now produced equal to the
finest
productions of the two great centuries of lacquer-working, although there was a decline in the art for a few years.
In
the
last
Paris
Exhibition a large folding
International
by a Yokohama dealer named Chogoro, which was in every sense a work of the greatest excellence. Besides the bold, magnificently-treated, foliage, which was of the screen was
exhibited
most tenderly-worked
lacquer, lotus flowers
were formed of pearl
and wisteria flowers of small polished mussel
shells,
conjunction with the lacquer-work vastly heightened
which its
in
effect.
This work was one of the most marvellous that lacquer-workers
have ever made; and while was, as a work of
much I
art,
it
sold for
some hundreds of pounds,
it
a thing to be loved and treasured quite as
by a master-hand. cannot help thinking that we in England over-estimate the as a painting
Many who
decorative value of pictures.
cover their walls with
costly paintings have scarcely an object in their houses besides
these which has
any
The
art merit.
vases on the chimney-piece,
the epergne on the table, the nick-nacks in the cabinets, and the service for the afternoon
all
alike incongruous
Surely persons whose houses are thus furnished
and meretricious. have but
tea-drinking, are
little real love of the beautiful
;
he
who admires what
is
pleasant in form and lovely in colour would regard the beauty of
each object around him and the tout ensemble.
Choice objects
in
drawing-room ornaments, and the
bric-a-brac
now
about the most recherche of
lacquer are in art
collected.
merit exceed almost any of
Indeed, some specimens are so
perfectly worked, so rich in decoration, so minute in detail, and so tender in execution as to be
fit
for a place
in
any boudoir
in
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
348
the land
and the
;
smoothness of their surface
soft
perfect than that of the
most
to their
money
I
speak were not made with
Like most of the beautiful objects
value.
which Japan formerly produced they were created
some Daimio or
almost more
fragile porcelain.
But the choice works of which
any view
is
for the use of
as presents for his friends.
In the great Yashiki (spread-out house) of the Daimio were
number of retainers and and clothed by the prince whom
lodged, beside the owner and his family, a
who were fed The handicraftsman thus provided for had no cares His or anxieties, and sought no money in return for his work. wants were fully met by the provisions made for him in his master's
handicraftsmen,
they served.
abode.
knew
was
It
that
his care
and aim
by the production of excellent work the end of
No
ambition would be gained.
mind
his
thought of haste entered into his
no hurrying to make a showy day's work was thought of:
;
his only desire
was that of producing the best work that man can
Works
achieve.
A
and he well
to please his master,
thus
made have an
inexpressible charm.
few years since, lacquer objects of the highest excellence
could be purchased at a
trifling
cost
now
but
;
these old works
much sought after by the Japanese themselves, as well as by those of advanced taste in England, France, and America, Indeed, so valuable that they are becoming both rare and costly. has old lacquer now become in Japan, that pieces have been bought are so
in
London, and returned
in order to
In
to the country in
be sold again.
Yokohama,
box about
for a
me in
one hundred pounds
that a friend of hers had gold.
The Japanese
I
was asked a sum equal
English money, and
in
and dating
six inches square,
from the end of the seventeenth century, to
which they were made
given for a
fine
Lady Parkes
specimen
appreciate not only those
its
told
weight
elaborately-
decorated wares, but also certain objects which exhibit a peculiar quality of lacquer
;
of this they judge chiefly
the wonderful mountain
Koya-zan the
which we stayed presented quer.
To me
this
me
with a
by
its
hardness.
priest of the
little
temple
tray of old
was a somewhat imperfect work
;
its
red
On in
lac-
surface
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
was not very smooth were visible on
was rubbed
surface, while in parts the red
its
Upon
and black showed through.
who was an
wood and brush marks
the grain of the
;
349
off,
seeing this tray, Mr. Ishida,
excellent judge of lacquer, tapped
it
with the points
of his finger nails, and then spoke of the excellence of the lacquer.
Upon my was
asking what constituted
He
hardness.
its
with
common
also said that 'while
that
it
lacquer would
be indented only
quality could
easily scratch, that of superior
me
merit, he told
its
difficulty.
Soon
after this Mr. Ishida's statement was verified in a manner for which I was scarcely prepared. After purchasing, amongst other things, a lacquer " spill " of great beauty, and made eighty years since by a most excellent man, whose ancestors
had made similar work,
for eight generations
when
rough iron its
stormed and blustered
I
!
tail
many
it
tenderly, felt for
how my
and disgust
and
state of
and
as
should for a dog
I
I
British
lion
in the habit of displaying,
of abuse which
my
to
my
I
voice and gestures
To my with
filled
and with
;
than
hurled at the poor packer an see
it
the packing was
wrath knew no bounds
in
wrap
to itself
all
pot again
favourite
should not like to
I
box
a
injunctions had been obeyed.
saw
My
scrap-iron.
more of the
it
how
returned to see
I
mind
bits of
emptied the vessel of
;
had been crushed, and ordered the packer
proceeding, and
nails
it
thicknesses of soft paper, and give
In an hour after this
surprise
my
beautiful " spill " filled with old nails
contents, wiped
whose in
my
saw
I
a packer to
told
I
Fancy
rare object with great care.
treat this
I
am
amount
When my whom I had so have me put them
print.
in
wrath was somewhat exhausted, the poor man, lavishly censured, said calmly, "
into the
commoner
but this
is
my
I
not
did they would be scratched
the best lacquer and cannot scratch."
to say that he
on
You would
articles, for if
was
right,
and that
I
cannot
now
I
find
;
am bound any mark
lovely spill which tells of the rough usage to which
it
was
subjected.
As
I
write
I
have before
me two
the ages of which are accurately
or three pieces of lacquer,
known
;
so
with the view of
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
3 5°
my
enabling
such works, a
readers to judge, as far as possible, of the age of I
them somewhat minutely. Here is hundred years since, and therefore before
describe
will
box made about
five
became his own decorator. " entirely with a " touchy " or " broken
the period at which the lacquer-worker
drawn
bears a pattern
It
gold outline, and consisting of circular ornaments (one of which is
a conventionally-treated bird with a cloven tongue of
fire
upon
its
head), clouds, leaves with five leaflets, conventional pomegranates,
and
coral-like
ornaments, some of which are
scroll
The ground
small diaper patterns. in "
are " filled
colours
;
but the outline has been drawn
Here
is
inferior,
while this tray
and
circle,
but there
of the sixteenth
like
ornaments on
tillate
of the period
It
and a half
is
in
It is of
lid.
its side,
with pearl dust.
is
covered
much the appearance of now being considered are
On
and execution
to perceive.
fail
century.
with an overhanging
is
But
the painted ornament
while the marginal portion
will notice a writing-box,
length, eight inches
off,
a merit in both design
is
cannot
artist
Now we
but the work in this instance
This modelled work gives to the outer
Works
leather. ;
;
texture and character,
portion, both in
imperfect
filling-in
it.
square with corners cut
is
figures in low-relief.
which the
dark olive-green
and the
evidently that of a different hand.
is
only occupies a central
stamped
first,
a tray belonging to the same period, and decorated
with the same class of ornament
somewhat
with
and the enrichments
with dull red, raw sienna, and
colours do not quite meet
by
black,
is
filled
which dates from the end
nine inches and a quarter in width, and two inches in depth,
black lacquer, with a few cloud-
while the bevelled edges of the the top of the
lid is
lid scin-
a device represent-
ing six strips of paper, strung on two threads knotted together; but
both the front and the back strip are represented as obliquely folded in the centre.
by about seven
in
yet formed of metal. clouds, while
On
its
Each
length
back
;
The
strip
is
one and a half inch
in width,
but while they represent paper, they are first
(as seen
has a silver surface, decorated with
where
this gold surface clouds are also
it
is
turned over)
drawn.
is
of gold.
The second and
the
-
ART, third
each of pearl
are
strips
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
—
the one being
351
decorated with
representations of water, and crests having the form of a cartwheel, while the other
is
On
we have
the inside of the
here one
lid
figured with broken
It is curious that
formed of
while
we have
here the elements of gaudieffect, as well as
which few Europeans' works possess. generally get a meretricious effect
If
invariably secure vulgarity is
work
last
is
This object
which
it
over
dispersed
is
exquisitely made, and
diaper-work
the
constitute the Shogun's arms.
of gold, while in others
it
is
in
is
and
extremely is
perfect.
a
Here and there devices,
cases the crest
is
which wholly
part silver, for colour plays no
and certain portions of
crests,
the diaper, have a raised gold outline
old,
we do on
covered with a
is
heraldic
some
In
These
part in Japanese heraldry.
whole
decorates.
a beautifully-finished box, such as Japanese
small diaper pattern in gold on a black ground. are
we
but with the Japanese the
;
of high rank support their heads on during sleep, as pillow.
a finish,
use gold freely
so skilfully used as to produce
repose, rather than garishness, in the object
The
we
and by the inlaying of pearl
;
lustrous surface of mother-o'-pearl
the
pearl.
work presents a refinement of
we almost
patterns.
of avanturine lacquer, while on two gold strips
is
figure consists of flowers
ness, this
diaper
a similar bunch of papers, only
This box
;
while the finish of the
is
about one hundred years
a fair specimen of the late
work of the eighteenth
century.
On some
of the examples from this particular period, and also
from a somewhat earlier date, we find sprays of flowers
in
low
relief modelled with the tenderness of the image on a shilling; but I
must not attempt
to describe such works, for
no description
will
convey an accurate idea of modelled ornament.
A
kind of lacquer formerly
made
in
Japan
(at
Wajima
province of Noto) under the powerful prince of Kaga, valued.
It
the fact that
is it
generally black is
which gold
is
made under
this
in colour;
but
its
is
in the
much
peculiarity lies in
ornamented by scratched, or
scraffito,
work, into
have here before
me two
old boxes
rubbed.
I
Daimio, and decorated
in
this
manner.
They
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
352
are very beautiful, and are figured with a most careful drawing of
a
grass
graceful
called
siisitki,
a
much admired by
plant
educated Japanese, and one of the
seven
celebrated
the
autumn
flowers of the country.
Of
this particular lacquer
Indeed,
the country.
I
besides the two which
ware
are,
gold
in
however,
am
ware there are but few specimens
myself possess.
I
still
made
Inferior imitations of this
Japan, both with and without
in
the scratched work, one of the
seats
of this
made
made
at
is
altogether
modern
Wakayama but the ware Some similar ware is also
manufacture being Kuroye-Mura, near here
in
not sure of having seen any specimens
inartistic.
;
Osaka.
There was another kind of lacquer made by a man called Ritsuo,
whose work became most celebrated, and who
two hundred years ago. raised ornaments, the
of old Chinese lac-work. in the
lived about
lacquer boxes with
whole being black and bearing a striking
resemblance to objects carved
work made
man made
This
This ware was an imitation
in jet.
Before
me
a specimen of the Chinese
is
year 1573, A.D.
Ritsuo also placed raised figures on fan-holders, and
which he gave an appearance of
shell-like vessels, to
also incrusted cups
produced at a period
I
am
earlier
not aware that
than
this,
inventor of this particular ware or not
Some works
He
iron.
and vases with lacquer, and gave to these also
an iron-like surface.
country.
made
" iron
lacquer
"
was
but whether Ritsuo was the I
cannot say.
of this great manufacturer have
come
into this
But the majority of the pieces which reach England are
made by Ikede
Zeshin, a
man who
lives,
still
and who has not
only adopted the style of his predecessor, but makes deceptive imitations of the older
work
even the cracks and chips of the
;
old specimens being counterfeited.
Another ware, much prized
in
Japan,
is
characterised
by heavy
pieces of lead so inlaid that they protrude from the surface of the lacquer.
Generally such works have a
certain
amount of gold
decoration as well as this raised lead-work, while in a few pieces
some portions of the lead
are
covered with a thick layer of
K
ART,
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
To
burnished gold.
the English eye this lead-work appears crude
but the Japanese admire the contrast of the the beautiful surface with which
When
it is
common
metal with
usually associated.
Mr. Kawase, the Japanese Minister of Commerce, visited
England a short time this particular
since,
he sent
me
a magnificent specimen of
work, with the following kind
" The accompanying
which
trifle,
letter
:
have brought with me,
I
of respect to you, whose intelligent suggestions have done so the arts
353
is
simply a mark
much
to
promote
and manufactures of Japan."
Another kind of lacquer which has great
marked
characteristics
may
excellence
be described as more or
less
and
resembling
the carved red lac boxes, which are amongst the most interesting
of Chinese manufactures after
but this Japanese ware
;
lacquer has been
the
applied to
is
not carved
Yet many existing
it.
specimens made by a great master of the art who lived
in
Tokio
are very charming, for while the ground of his works
is
either
covered with a minute geometrical diaper or a morocco-leather the
texture,
little
clouds,
medallions placed upon
and
conventional
birds,
work
all
is
specimens of
slightly
dusted with
however
"
this
ware that
fine,
lac of China.
have seen the ground
I
dead," and has the appearance of being carefully
Vandyke -brown powder,
while
;
we now speak has a diapered or " tooled surfaces of powdery character, whereas bears raised ornaments, so
much more
far
as
I
all
the raised parts,
This ware to some extent
are black and polished.
resembles that by the celebrated Ritsuo
ground, and
and
some of the medallions being exquisitely rendered
feeling,
and with parts almost as sharp as the cut In
scroll-work,
wrought with great care
are generally
it
but the work of which "
ground with the sunk
that
of Ritsuo
which
know, always has a smooth
nearly resembles simple jet-work
than
any other form of lacquer ware.
How
this old
ware was made
manufacture, as carried on
in
I
am
it)
in carving wood with wood (however minute the
Tokio, consists
great accuracy, and then giving to this pattern cut upon
not certain, but the present
one or more coatings of lacquer. 2
A
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
354 I
have also found
inferior
work of
this
made by
description
cutting devices in a thick, leather-like paper, and sticking these on
wood, and by affixing impressed ornaments to the surfaces of
to
boxes and
and then giving to them a coat of lacquer.
trays,
such works have without
or no art value, and are
little
But
comparatively
interest.
many kinds of lacquer-work besides those already mentioned, and many men have lived who have produced characteristic kinds of work. It is impossible for me There are
enumerate
to
Japan
in
all
of these, for
there
scarcely a
is
celebrated
maker whose works have not been imitated by others the untrained eye cannot distinguish original
works
certainly without the opportunity of
:
originals with imitations,
and
;
these imitations from the
no one can learn
comparing
to separate
one from
the other.
much lacquer-work of varying merit made throughout whole of Japan. A man named Shunsai, of Kioto, is now
There the
is
celebrated for the manufacture of black lacquer sachi kettles and
such things as are used for the
"
tea
ceremony
"
black lacquer-ware with bold vermilion ornaments Kioto, while a kind of
work
in
is
also
which consecutive layers of
made
in
different-
superposed one on the other, while the
coloured
lacquers are
whole
incised with convoluted
is
A
(Cha-no-yu).
but deeply-cut V-sinkings by
is made at Osaka. wood covered with fine basket-
which the various-coloured layers are exposed, Interesting boxes, formed of
work
(like that
which encloses many of the eggshell sachi cups)
and decorated with good raised lacquer-work, are sometimes made in
Suruga
the
but the fine specimens appear to owe their origin to
;
Loochoo
Islands.
careful modelling
grounds.
I
is
It is surprising
what
beautiful drawing
and
produced by the agency of lacquer on rough
have seen specimens of
wrought upon them but
little
this
inferior to
ware with ornaments
any work that
I
have
ever met with. Little trays,
formed of a wood dug from bogs and closely
resembling the bog-yew of Ireland, are everywhere to be seen.
These have
little
flowers in gold lacquer
upon them.
All such
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART, works
are, I
believe, comparatively
mens have
merit, but those
market are
common and
While works the finest were
produced
made
in
which are now found
earlier
in the
speci-
English
uninteresting.
in lacquer
were produced
Kioto
in
many
parts of Japan,
but excellent specimens were also
;
Since the removal of the Court from Kioto
Tokio.
in
The
modern.
355
the manufacture of artistic works in this beautiful material has
been chiefly centred
present capital.
in the
we must not overlook the fact that lacquer is applied to many purposes of which we in this country know absolutely nothing. Thus the floors of the In speaking of Japanese lacquer-work
great temples are covered with lacquer, and have a surface as bright as that of any tea-tray
;
and while these great temples are
Alhambra
as highly coloured as the
at
Grenada, their polychro-
matic effects are due to the admixture of lacquer with pigments.
Some
of the lacquered panels in the temples are of vast
size,
and the carvings which are so frequently seen on the temple enclosures are large and bold
As
yet every portion
is
lacquered with
These large masses of lacquer-work are quite
the utmost care.
unknown
;
to us in England.
regards the places in which lacquer wares are made,
have already said that the best are produced
in
we
Tokio and Kioto,
but the districts of Aidzu and Yechizen are almost given up to this
manufacture, while
in
the province of
Dewa
yellow lacquer
goods are made.
The manufacture houses, and not in
of lacquer wares
any
special
is
made
is
is
floors, just as
;
while,
if
the work
is
is
ordinary
The
though they were in
any
good, the room in which
exquisitely clean and perfectly free
Lacquer paper, as
in
the living apartment and were not engaged
industry
special
carried on
building or manufactory.
lacquer-workers kneel upon matted resting in
is
it
from dust.
almost invariably placed upon wood, and not upon
often supposed.
Indeed, lacquered papier-mache work
known in Japan, and is made in but one small district. Trays thus made are usually decorated with figures, and are invariably common in quality. I know of but one consignment of such is
but
little
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
356
goods having reached England from Japan,
I
;
and out of some scores despatched
believe only three or four reached this country-
whole, the material of which they are formed being of a brittle
There are a few very small and delicate
character.
of but a few inches in diameter,
pasted together
;
made
in
but broadly speaking,
"
waiters,"
Tokio of sheets of paper
all
good Japanese lacquer-
work has a wood foundation. If
may
we
be,
take the formation of a cup or bowl, however thin
it is first
rudely formed from a piece of perfectly dry, soft
Fig. i6
wood.
It is
-Lathe.
then placed in the lathe and turned
has not a continuous rotary motion, as
its
one direction and then
the
drill " (Fig.
When
1
it
in the other, in
;
but the lathe
spindle revolves
manner of our
first in
"
bow-
68).
the object has been formed in the lathe, the lacquer-
worker carefully examines
which he now uses as a
it
;
glue,
and,
by the
sticks over
aid of
his lacquer,
each faulty or weak
place, should there be any, a piece of thin fibrous paper, or entirely
covers the object with this material. in
The next
process consists
giving the vessel a coat of raw lacquer, but into this
coating clay-dust or some earthy powder
with the view of giving but between the
it
several
hardness.
is
Another coat
coats the article
first
generally introduced
is
is
now added
carefully
"
;
rubbed
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART, down
"
"
with a
worked up
much
in
"
cutting
357
The surface of lacquer goods is same manner as our carriage bodies,
stone.
the
clay-dust or stone powder being used with the lacquer whenever
the surface
to be
is
excellent quality,
before all
the
much ground down.
it
If the object
is
be of
to
have received eleven coats of lacquer
will
placed upon
any decoration
is
same
two or three layers of lacquer containing
for after
;
But the coats are not
it.
earthy matter have been applied, other coatings are given with an
which colour
inferior quality of lacquer, in
may
may
or
not be
which has none of the earthy matter used in the
present, but earlier coats.
After the application
the latter coatings the surface
of
ground with hard charcoal.
This charcoal
are constantly dipped in water
duced
to be a fine work)
(if it is
used in lumps which
is
and, after several coats of lacquer
;
been applied, and rubbed down, the
have
final
surface
by three or four smooth
producing the
lumps of
final surface
is
now
For
surface.
which,
soft charcoal are used,
The work
kept wet.
pro-
is
layers of the
best lacquer each being carefully ground to a
like the hard, are
is
polished with ash
of deer's horns.
The
pattern
which
drawn upon a sheet of
made This drawing is now
the drawing
is
is
fibrous,
in fine
be
to
formed
upon
and somewhat
the
paper
is
so
transferred to the object to be decorated
arranged that
it
fits
simple pressure of the hand suffices to
paper
is
now
paper
it
to
the
make
by
When
it.
curved
surface,
the transfer.
gently separated from the bowl, or whatever
to be decorated.
;
is
and
outline with lacquer used as a paint.
bringing the surface of the drawing in contact with the
object
paper
elastic,
is
The about
But to insure that the lacquer thus leaves the
must have been previously warmed.
This process of transferring closely resembles the method by
which we
" print "
patterns upon earthenware
of patterns for our manufactures
designs from one paper to another.
;
and
all
designers
know some method of Thus far there is no
getting
novelty
to us in the process.
The
transfer being
made,
if
the pattern
is
to
have a gold
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
358
outline, the transfer line
followed by a fine hair pencil contain-
is
When
ing lacquer, which acts as a gold-size.
has become sufficiently dry,
Some
a spoon.
but what gold it
gold dust
shaken on
is
it
from
of this powder adheres to the tackey surface,
not thus fixed
is
is
returned to a saucer in which the
This gold powder has a gray hue, but by burnishing
kept.
is
fine
lacquer line
this
assumes the yellow colour. be noticed that on most
It will
there
is
Sometimes we have masses
of great solidity and brilliancy, while more little tesserae
The
lacquer-work
fine pieces of
gold of two or three kinds.
we
frequently
see
glinting from gold of a less brilliant character. brilliant gold
less
always results from the adhesion of
gold powder to the surface of half-dry lacquer
and the solid masses of which
but the
;
we have spoken,
tesserae,
by
are produced
the use of gold leaf of the thickness of writing paper.
Upon my work
is
workman
asking a
show me how
to
this tesselated
produced, he took a small sheet of gold about an inch c
^
j^
in
length and a third of an inch
width (Fig. 169,
in
This
A.)
he placed horizontally upon a curved piece of bamboo, which
had been previously blacked (Fig. in
it
over
He bound
170, a). its it
position
by placing
a piece of semi-trans-
parent paper which he tied to the curved
bamboo with
(Fig.
C,
I
70,
a string (Fig.
shows part of
and with the sides sharpened as well leaf of gold
into
strips
;
1
70,
b).
With a
but as
as the end, he cut the little
the extreme end
was folded over the edge of the bamboo, these attached at one end (Fig,
1
69,
b).
the paper was also cut through.
now
cut in strips,
strapped.
thumb and
It
is
is
now
finger in
curious knife
blade) having the shape of a chisel,
its
liberated
of the leaf
strips
were
still
In order to cut the sheet of gold
This
little
sheet of gold, being
from the bamboo to which
held on the curved piece of
any convenient
position,
it
bamboo by
and
was the
strips are cut
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
359
by the same knife (Fig. 1 69, c). As each row of tesserai thus formed, the Httle bits of metal are carefully shaken into a
across is
These
black saucer.
tesserae
are
now
applied to the lacquer sur-
face in the following manner.
A
few are shaken into a small black tray with a slightly rim, over which
raised
they are spread as
much
as possible (Fig. 170, d).
With stick,
small
a
held in the
hand, the
170,
the
held
is
our
like
cushion),
in
little
gilder's
and are applied
adhesive lacquer
surface. ally be little
time
from the
hand by a
left
to an
are
a
at
E),
tray (which
strap
right
tesserae
one
picked, (Fig.
pointed
gener-
It will
found that these
squares of bright
Fig. 170.
gold are dispersed in a surface formed of gold
powder
;
but
in
some I
is
cases silver
is
used
in a similar
have here before me, as
I
some
in
formed of exceedingly minute portions of
cases flowers are
this thick
gold
leaf,
and
manner.
write, a little
medicine case which
decorated with certain sprays of the Susuki grass and certain
umbelliferous plants
;
but
its
peculiarity consists in the fact that
each head of blossoms (of which there are many) consists of
hundreds of these together that at
little
first
gold
So
tesserse.
sight each
close are the tesserae
umbel of the umbelliferous plant
might seem to consist of but one piece of slightly rough gold.
On
this
inches in
little
medicine case, which
is
length, two and a quarter inches
eighths of an inch in thickness in
nine heads of flowers, each
its
three and in
a quarter
width, and seven
widest part, there are
being half an
inch in length
fifty-
and
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
36o
On
three -sixteenths of an inch in width.
each eighth of an inch
of these flower-heads, there are about one hundred and twenty distinct pieces of gold ficial
head as having a super-
thus, taking each
;
area of five square eighths of an inch (not five-eighths of an
inch square), there are about six hundred tesserae in each of these heads, or over thirty-five thousand on the box.
But
this is not all
with these
cubes
little
the
;
:
little
heads of Susuki grass are tipped
hence the number of these small tesserae
(which have been applied one by one to the medicine case) must
For
be very large.
this
interesting
little
work
Mr. Wakai, a gentleman whose acquaintance
have had the opportunity of renewing visited
some
When I
little
I
am
made
I
indebted to Japan, and
in
in this country,
watching the process of lacquer manufacture
observed an old
which he
time back.
man producing
in
Japan,
cloud-like effects on a cabinet
that promised to be of great beauty
when
finished.
By
his side
was a sheet of paper about eighteen inches square, on which were a
number of small saucers
— perhaps
There was gold of
these saucers was a gold or pearl powder.
different colours
e
In each of
twelve or more.
degrees
of
and
different
Across
fineness.
each saucer rested a reed, hav-
Fig.
an
ing
internal
diameter
of
Each of these reeds was cut the bottom, and over the diagonal orifice was glued
about three-sixteenths of an inch. diagonally at
a small piece of fabric.
To me
this
appeared to be
silk (Fig,
171).
This
fabric
dust, pearl
so the
acted as a
and
sieve,
powder, or colour.
As
powder that came through
in the
tubes were
it
was
fine or coarse.
the fabrics were so fine that only atoms, which imperceptible,
gold
the fabric was finer or coarser,
Some
of
when alone were
came through them.
any part of an object was to be clouded, a reed was taken This with a fabric, both thick and fine, fastened over its end. If
was held
A
in
the hand of the
vibrating motion was
now
workman much given to
it
as
we hold
a pen.
by a tapping with the
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART, fourth finger
;
thus the finest of dust
was used from another reed
—
the colour being used
Over the lacquer
The
sort.
ticles
a tint were required with the gold.
work
unless the
coatings
latter
a slightly coarser powder
then perhaps a sprinkle of colour,
;
however applied, one coating, at
gold,
spread,
is
if
on the sticky lacquer and
fell
Now
formed the edge of the cloud.
361
fill
of the very
is
of
least,
commonest
the interstices between
the par-
of gold or pearl, or whatever has been used in the forma-
After the application of the
tion of the pattern.
lacquer the object was passed to a
with a small piece of charcoal, kept
coating of
last
woman, who rubbed it down flat by frequent grinding on
a stone.
This charcoal
is
degrees of hardness
and a
finer
made from
—
various woods, and
for each
the gold only remain
fills
—
So
consecutive surface.
rubbing down effected, when the work that such lacquer as
of varying
is
a rough kind being used for the
is
first
carefully
is
coat, this
of the finest quality,
the interstices between the particles of
all else
being most carefully removed. This
being done, the surface received one or two thin coats of lacquer, each of which was ground
was given by the ash of
down by
deer's
charcoal,
when
horn applied by
a final polish
soft leather.
Raised work results from the use of lacquer mixed with red oxide of first
iron.
If the "relief"
is
to be great, this mixture
crudely applied by the agency of a spatula and brush.
repeated painting the relief figure
something of the form desired. duced by the most
skilful
is
at
is
By
brought gradually to assume
Delicacies of form are
now
pro-
grinding with small strips of charcoal.
All good relief-work results from processes of painting and grinding,
and not from anything analogous to carving
;
by such means
the most delicate and tender of modelled ornament
When parts first
may
this
work has been brought
be coloured or covered with gold
produced.
;
or they
may be
covered with some coloured pigment, and then have gold or
silver
dusted upon them.
In the latter case the colour
through the powder and have a tinted lustrous i
is
form required, the
to the
Lacquer
is
will
show
effect.
dried by being placed in a cool cupboard, which
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
362
has been washed with water immediately before the lacquer has
been placed unless in a
in
atmosphere,
simply to prevent placed in a dry in
While some say that lacquer
it.
damp
its
cracking, which,
one of the chief factories
workroom, and was about eighteen laths,
deep
inches
and the
I
believe,
The cupboard used
air.
interior of its ceiling or top
water every morning.
do
if it
be
in the corner of the
feet high,
three
and
had shelves formed of square wooden
it
;
feet broad,
employed
drying process
for this
Tokio was
in
five
is
will
it
not dry
will
sure that moisture
I feel
The
was brushed over with
lacquer takes from eight to eleven
hours to dry in this chamber.
common
In the case of
lacquer-work the surface
is
polished
with deer's-horn charcoal and soft leather, and then the drawing is
made
coat
is
no protecting
applied, but
is
added.
The
we
lacquer to which gold
in
inlaying of pearl in lacquer
inlay
it
in details.
is
effected almost exactly as
our papier-mache work, the process differing only
in
The
pieces of pearl from which the parts to be inlaid
are cut are very thin, and can be used as tracing-paper.
work, which
Little
to contain
inlaid
pearl,
is
begun, a drawing of
made on a sheet of paper this drawing is transto the box or tray upon which the pattern is to be wrought. sheets of pearl are now placed over those parts of the
the pattern ferred
is
Before a
is
;
pattern which are to appear in this lustrous material
covered by the sheet of pearl are traced upon
it
;
the forms
then the
;
little
sheets are removed.
With a
curious chisel -like knife the pearl
necessary shapes, and
is
stuck by lacquer in
its
is
cut into the
respective posi-
the whole surface
is
covered with repeated coats of lacquer, by which the pearl
is
tions.
After
all
the pearl
By
entirely hidden.
having been right places
The
fitted to ;
in
is
pattern
is
now
place,
level
is
secured,
and
with the general surface
again transferred to the surface,
the bits of pearl, so that they
and the decoration
already described.
its
grinding a smooth surface
the pearl again appears, but
of the object.
is
in
may
take their
gold or colour proceeds as
ART, Lacquer
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
times
and
lacquer
like these substances
and sometimes dark
pale
hurt
Hence
it.
some-
respects
and similar substances.
unhurt by hot water or ordinary vinegar and boiling ascetic acid
is
it
many
In
colour.
in
to gutta-percha
allied
is
much resembles
a substance which in appearance
is
treacle or dissolved shellac,
363
acids. ;
It resists
It is
the action of
and caustic potash does not
cannot be injured by any ingredients used
it
in
cookery.
When
in a fluid state
it
highly corrosive
is
comes
in contact
to the
bone and produces a serious wound.
with the skin
There are many which little
it
is
generally eats
it
some persons take
a lacquer factory
mixed with
the
while
lacquer,
used to
is
way through
its
make
of the work and the degree of
its
visiting
;
manufactures
and celebrated men have will
For the production of coloured surfaces colouring-matter
one drop
a kind of fever.
own which they
of their
if
Even from
details respecting the lacquer
impossible here to notice
secrets
and
;
very
not readily divulge.
certain
pigments are
frequently
a desired
tint.
excellence
is
a
vegetable
But the character due largely to the
nature of the lacquer used, and to the manner in which
it
is
treated.
Raw " skins "
lacquer
is
a tenacious fluid of a gray-brown colour which
over like our
collected from the tree
better quality
now
than decanting
paint upon exposure to the
oil
rises
it
is
allowed to stand and
and the impurities
sink, so
But straining through cotton or a porous paper means of refining the lacquer, Superior lacquer it
settle.
becomes more or
is
stirred
less
in
the open
air,
is
The
nothing more
needed to separate the good from the
is
When
air.
inferior.
resorted to as a
by which process
oxydised, at the same time
it
loses
its
excess of water and assumes a brilliant dark colour.
Usually lacquer grinding and
is
brought to a surface
final polishing, as
use of a kind of
"
dryers
we have
" called
ye-no-abura (an
a labiate plant called Perilla ocimoides)
by processes of
already seen
it is
oil
;
but by the
derived from
changed into a varnish
which acquires brilliancy by mere hardening.
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
364
Used yellow
thus,
colour
its
is
a
transparent, and
lustrous,
warm
but by the use of gamboge, the sap of unripe persimmons,
;
or other vegetable
the richness of
stains,
Richness of effect in a finished work the object to be varnished, instead of
its
hue
increased.
is
is also secured by staining by modifying the character
of the varnish itself
Black lacquer (called roiro-urushi)
is
produced by
stirring
crude lacquer in the open air for two or three days, and by adding to
it
a
water impregnated with
little
In this
acid.
way
tion of the water
the richest black is
iron, or is
with iron and tannic
produced
and the addi-
;
absolutely necessary for the attainment of
great brilliancy.
"
some of our their work with
as
Just
"
ground
when painting
artists
some Japanese lacquer-workers introduce "
with the view of giving is
too thick for use
it is
black dress
a
red, so as to give richness to the black,
quality
"
into black certain stains
to the colour.
thinned by rubbing into
it
If the lacquer
amount
a small
of camphor.
For
all
purposes in which the adhesion of gold,
is
desired, lacquer, converted into a varnish
is
used.
by which
Plasticity,
impressions, or
is
it
;
and many
due to the quality which
stamping and
filling
are produced.
A
in this
rendered
by the addition of
susceptible
it
effects
There
are not is
to
oil,
stamped
thus
produced by lacquer are
By
acquires.
of the depressions
all
a
process
form of marbled lacquer called tsugaru-nuri
way, but the stamped surface
common
in
of
kinds of marble effects
is
covered with
before the later coats of lacquer are applied.
work
or colour
given to lacquer by the addition of powdered beans
albumen from eggs
made
is
silver,
tin-foil
Specimens of
England, although they are so
in
is
this
Japan.
another variety of lacquer called wakasa-nuri produced
in a similar
manner.
made by varnishing with lacquer, to which a volatile oil has been added, wood or flattened bamboo, previously The best coated with size to which a little alum has been added. Akita lacquer
is
is
produced on junks lying out at
sea, so as to
avoid dust.
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
works are formed
Inferior
ways
various
in
365
by
:
sizing the
may
be
work
is
object to be lacquered two or three coatings of lacquer
saved
by
but
;
Common
sacrificed.
treatment the
this
work
raised
paste formed of rice-flour
also produced cheaply by a
is
but as this
;
not even impervious to
is
In every country
water, objects so decorated are almost useless.
we have
and
the genuine article
works are to be produced qualities of superior work,
the
of
durability
If decorative
imitations.
its
cheap rate with the apparent
at a
must be employed
artifices
in
their
production which can only be condemned.
The
abounds both
Japan
Rhus
tree (the
from which lacquer
is
obtained
Japan and China, but the lacquer produced
in
better
is
verniciferd)
than
grown
that
on
in
continent.
Asiatic
the
Curiously, the lacquer-tree not only produces lacquer, which flows
from its
wax, which
lactiferous vessels, but also
its
is
extracted from
seeds.
There are male and female
in the lacquer-trees,
and the female
only produces seeds.
Lacquer-trees sometimes grow to the height
of thirty-five or forty
feet,
but lacquer
is
obtained when the trees
This being the case
are from five to eight years old.
it is
rare to
see a large lacquer-tree in Japan, save in those instances where is
wax -producing,
kept for seed-growing, and, consequently,
which case
The
it is
is
generally
from sections of the
it
in
allowed to reach a good old age.
lacquer -tree
reproduce
it
from seed, but some
raised
The
root.
raising from seed
is
managed
in
considered the better plan. If this
it is
way:
into
raised from the root the
—The
" sets "
is
This will
set as
we
send out a shoot and give
of these sets seeds
root of a tree
which are
pieces,
fail
reproduction
set
new method
to produce a plant, the
a
is
divided
time these
In
potatoes.
rise to
plant.
As many
of reproducing by
preferred. is
one of the few instances known
send out adventitious branches.
As
in
which a true root
a rule no plant has a
power of producing either buds or branches below "
is
which has been cut down
medial line
;"
its "
but one or two plants are known
to
collar "
or
botanists
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
366
which have
strange quaHty, and of these the lacquer-tree
this
is
one.
of the lacquer depends largely on the nature of
The quaHty
the soil in which the tree
is
grown.
ground
If the
good the
is
tree will acquire a circumference of about seven inches in four or five years.
To
obtain the lacquer the outer part of the bark
and then an
the tree-trunk,
The
kind of knife.
juice
now
scraped from the stem by a slow, for a tree
is
puncture
When the tree
lacquer
stem by a
This operation
iron tool.
but the same tree
is
then not cut
is
many
cut
is
very
is
and the
times,
near the base of the stem, while each
farther from the root.
down
cut
sliced off
is
into the
oozes out of the puncture, and
flat
the stem has been punctured from
is
is
is
;
made
is
successive cut
made
is
cut only once in the day, and
again for four days first
incision
base to
its
its
apex
but from the branches of the felled tree
;
To
also obtained.
end they are cut into lengths of
this
about two feet six inches, tied into bundles about eighteen inches in
diameter, and soaked in water for from ten to twenty days.
These are now cut is
collected
by
in October.
The
second uragaki.
the tree.
the lacquer oozes out and
The
the lacquer begins in
third
districts in
first
quality
called
is
and fourth are of but
which wax
is
value.
afraid of retarding the
growth of
In recent years they have, however, taken to doing so
incisions in the
stem are only made
is
wax
for
as
much
lacquer,
;
as the
and the
at distances of six or seven
and not almost close together as
There
little
and the
extracted the lacquer from the female
by so doing they were
male trees which are reserved exclusively
wild,
hen,
gathered from the lacquer-
but they do not cut the trees grown for their
inches,
summer and
not very good, the best being produced
The
tree they formerly never
plant, for
when
up,
lacquer obtained at the beginning of the is
the middle period.
In those
way
for obtaining
season and at the end in
the
scraping.
The season ends
all
in the
male
trees.
a plant called the mountain lacquer-tree which grows
and has flowers and leaves closely resembling those of the
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART, cultivated variety little
but as
;
There
quantity of wax. is
it
produces very
value as a lacquer-tree, though
its
which
derived, called the vine lacquer,
is
grown
it is
of
which lacquer
a creeper
yields even less than the mountain lacquer-plant.
lacquer
lacquer
little
seeds yield a considerable
also a third plant from
is
367
The
but this
;
cultivated
—
in the eastern part of Japan in the Yamato, Yoshino, Iwashiro, Aizi, Uzen, Yonezawa, Mogami, Yamagata, Nambo, and Fukuzu. The first is
chiefly
provinces of Yechizen,
named
provinces have produced lacquer from remote times, and
the produce of these provinces best quality
is
produced
Lacquer varies
in
in price
a rule three hundred and
make where
wood
is
very celebrated
;
but the very
Yoshino. according to fifty
me
its
age and nature, but as
(one hundred and twenty
me
a pound) cost a dollar (about four shillings and two pence) it
is
grown.
Eight thousand
of the lacquer-tree
used for
many
is
me make
very hard, and
is
of fine grain
purposes, and especially for buoys to
the nets used in the sardine fisheries have been sunk.
branches are used for fences and for
fuel.
The
a barrel. ;
it is
mark where The small
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
368
CHAPTER
IV.
THE POTTERY MANUFACTURES.
When
Japan
started for
I
thought
I
and pots tolerably perfect
potteries
;
my
knowledge of Japanese
but when
returned from
I
that country, after visiting nearly seventy potteries,
conclusion that even then
was most
my
I
came
to the
knowledge of Japanese ceramics
limited.
my
During
stay
country the unfortunate rebellion
the
in
my
already mentioned broke out, which prevented of the leading pottery districts
;
tures I can give only hearsay information.
as to the trustworthiness of
visiting
some
hence on some of the manufac-
what
I
was
Yet
have no doubt
I
inasmuch as
told,
my
informants were well acquainted with the matter of which they
spoke in I
but
;
which
am
retailing
There which
some
in this
it
is
is
cases
chapter
I
shall
be careful to specify the cases
speak from personal observation, and those
I
what
I
in
which
have learnt from others.
a complication about Japanese potters and potteries
very
instance of what
invented by a
to unravel, for nice distinctions are in
difficult
made which I
are
mean,
it
more than confusing
may be
man whose name
it
noticed that
to us.
As an
Banko ware was
bears, but that this particular
form of pottery ceased after a time to be made.
After the lapse
some years this ware was re-invented, or revived, by one Mori Yogozayemon, a man who, though old, still lives but it is his
of
;
son that
now
carries
on the pottery, and
His works are at Obuke-mura,
in the
this
son
province of
I
Ise.
have seen.
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART, Besides the son,
many
others learned the art of potting in the
Banko method, and these Yokkaichi, which
may
mostly settled
are
in
the town
of
be regarded as the special seat of the
Banko manufactures.
In the town of
no great distance from Yokkaichi,
at
369
Kuwana, which
situated
is
wares (such as we
inferior
should regard as Banko) are also made, and throughout Japan these
are
regarded
Banko
as
wares
made
at
Kuwana
wares, yet at
regarded as imitation Banko, while
Tokio and Kioto
all
they are
through the country similar
find little favour, being considered
spurious and not original works.
Some time ago men who had
learned the art of potting in
Yokkaichi removed to the province of Min5, and there founded
Onko
a pottery called
most Banko ware, and is
generally of a
soft,
but the ware here
;
chocolate in colour
is
warm
made ;
thicker than
is
while that of
Banko
Yet some specimens of Banko Onko ware is classed as altogether
gray.
ware are of a red-brown hue.
But the Yokkaichi potters now also make imitation Onko wares, and thus the confusion becomes separate from that of Banko.
great.
Another
difficulty in
the
way
of our understanding Japanese
wares results from a practice which
is
common
apprentice, the trade-mark of a celebrated ware.
famous as a (the
potter,
name used
potter).
Now
it
in
and
his
trade
A man
becomes
mark, or trade name, becomes known is
very seldom the real
name
of the
often happens that a celebrated potter has a
son and two or three apprentices. his
throughout the
namely, that of bequeathing to a son, or a favourite
country,
name and mark
to
the
most
In such cases he will leave skilled
among them. name of
frequently happens that an apprentice inherits the
famous
potter,
and even should he move
to another place, he will
be considered the maker of the genuine ware, while the son, carries
as the
on the manufacture at the original works,
mere imitator of
these statements
not do
so, as
I
his
father's
could adduce
some of the
productions.
many
difficulties
It
the
will
who
be regarded
In support of
illustrations,
but
I
need
of understanding the various
questions connected with certain kinds of Japanese pottery will 2 B
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
370
appear as we discuss the wares.
may at how may see and
that the reader case,
visited
I
mention them here
impossible
it
is
for
any one who has not
Japan to write a history of Japanese pottery which shall Another difficulty occurs when a celebrated
be really trustworthy.
potter removes from one part of the country to another,
which
order
in
the outset understand the nature of the
is
—
a case
not uncommon.
In the town of Okazaki able wares, and
who bore
who made
visited a potter
I
a good
name
remark--
But
as a manufacturer.
he formerly carried on his art at Kioto, and he removed to place
so
queathed "
as not to interfere with his son, to
whom
he had be-
This man, Yeiraku Zengoro,
business.
his
mark," as well as his business, to his son, and he
under a new name, and since
I left
Japan
this
left
now
his
trades
have heard that he
I
has again returned to Kioto.
Here we have a case in which a celebrated man makes wares same character as those which he formerly pro-
precisely of the
duced, and in the same town, yet the
employs would indicate that
"
mark
"
which he now works
his present productions are the
of a different potter. In treating of the keramic manufactures
what
factures of a district
we
shall
it is
difficult to
we speak
know
of the
manu-
thereby separate similar wares.
This
sort of classification to pursue, for if
some cases the various manufactures bear the name of the town or district in Yet if we take similar wares we shall which they are produced. classification
would
also lead to confusion, as in
have to travel almost from one end of Japan to the other to our specimens.
On
the whole,
kinds of wares together, for
it
we
may be shall
collect
best to arrange certain
thus have the advantage
of contrasting similar specimens which have been produced at different parts of the country.
While pottery of a rude kind was made it
was not
until
Corean artisans were brought
any important advance
in
at
an early period,
to the country that
the manufacture was made.
beginning of the sixteenth century a Corean potter named
came
to
Kioto, where he
made
a
common
black
At
the
Ameya
earthenware
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART, with lead glaze.
ceremony
This
" {cha-no-yii)
is
especially valued for use at the " tea
and
;
371
generations the descend-
for eleven
man have made
same wares. So esteemed was the ceremony by Shogun Taikosama that he honoured this parants of this
manufacture with a golden
ticular "
raku
the
"
seal,
on which the character
(meaning enjoyment) was engraved.
With the view of giving some
idea of the esteem in which
the vessels used at the cha-no-yu were formerly held (the cere-
mony was most mention the
fashionable about four hundred years since),
we may
fact that the competition for objects specially valued
some of these black raku cups) was such that wars were often waged between Daimios with the sole view of possessing certain (as
coveted goods, and with the envious object of despoiling another of his possessions of this
Instances are recorded of Daimios
sort.
burning down their houses rather than
One noted
his wares.
at the
let
the spoiler rob him of
warrior gave his tea-treasures away, thus
same time saving them from destruction and defeating the
purpose of the raid upon him.
But
it
was between the years 1580 and 1590 A.D. that one, Ise, who had been to China to
Gorodayu Shonsui, a native of
manufactures, returned and
study the porcelain province of Hizen.
he succeeded
About
in
settled
in
the
Here, with the material found in the country,
making various kinds of
porcelain.
time certain Corean porcelain makers were also
this
brought to Hizen, together with certain spoils of war, and they rendered important aid in the new manufacture.
same date the Prince of Satsuma, who had home with him a certain number of makers, with their families, and placed them near
At about invaded
the
Corea,
porcelain
Kagoshima, the they succeeded
With
brought
capital of the province, in
many
after
trials
ware.
these two important manufactures at the end of the
sixteenth century, the
have
where
making the now famous Satsuma
fairly
begun
;
for
art of potting
in
Japan
may
be said to
although rude earthenware has been
from time immemorial, and
tiles
temple were produced about 660
for A.D.,
the
roof of
made
an imperial
and although the
potter's
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
372
wheel was introduced
man made
in
the year
stone -ware at
Setto
724
of our era, and a China-
the thirteenth
in
no works of importance were produced
century, yet
towards the year
till
1700. It
may be
well to begin our notice of the potter's wares
by
considering faience, stone-ware, and the different kinds of earthen-
become
have
ware which
well
known.
delights in novelty and humour.
potter will often
generally
known
make
For
his
The Japanese mind own amusement the
a few pieces of a ware different from those
but with the few specimens produced
;
we have
the beginning and the end of the ware.
Banko
is
province of
man who and who made an
name
the Ise,
of a
lived
at Yokkaichi, in
the
unglazed stone-ware of a
purple-brown, and of a light -yellowish colour.
He
used a clay
of such toughness that he could form small objects, as teapots, of
extreme thinness
;
but the great peculiarity of his ware consisted
in his ignoring the use of the wheel and the lathe, and forming
his
vessels
by pinching the clay
into shape
between the finger
and the thumb.
With the death of Banko the production of this ware appears it was Mori Yogozayemon of Obuke-mura who re-discovered the art. This man, as we have just said, still to
have ceased, and
and his son, who has succeeded to his business, works at Obuke-mura to this day. But it is at Yokkaichi that the best Banko ware is now made. Here a number of men who learned the art from Mori Yogozayemon, and from one another, now pursue this manufacture but the same class of ware is also made
lives,
;
at
Kuwana, Kioto, Tokio, and other
At Yokkaichi
the
places.
chief potters
are
Nakayama Magohichi,
Iriyama Kainosuke, Shitomi Shiohei, Yamanaka Chiwzayemon,
Hori Tomonao.
All
these
facture of similar wares
than those of others.
;
men
are
engaged upon the manu-
only the productions of some are better
But the prince of the potters
is
Yamanaka
Chiwzayemon, who makes kettles of extraordinary thinness. by this man, measuring four and a quarter inches
kettle
diameter, and two and a half inches in depth,
made
A in
of unglazed
AR7\ gray stone -ware,
is
AND ART MANUFACTURES. so thin that
it
can be seen through, and
weighs just over two ounces and a half with
made simply by
clay being pressed
somewhat
teapot,
373
its
Hd.
by the thumb and
finger.
smaller, with the usual form of handle,
length for a knob on
beast nearly an inch in
the
A
and a weighs
lid,
These are triumphs
but an ounce and three quarters.
it
has been
It
in
Banko
work, and only the one manufacturer can form wares of such delicacy.
The
first
kettle
which
I
have mentioned has a knob formed
of a double volute of clay, and the
with storks in
lid
reposing on a
river's
flight,
;
and each one
outlined,
on the
a
black
head,
in
decorated on one side and on
the storks in flight there are no
little
work, while there are forty-three
painted in enamel white with
is
a
tail,
and
is
and on the other side with storks
Of
bank.
than fifty-seven on this
less
at rest
it
its
feathers
brown shading, a touch of red
little
most cases a
line
of
on the
green
page 175). While the better pieces of Banko ware are
bill
(Fig- 59,
thumb and wooden mould the
;
knob from
the
finger,
and,
commoner goods
the case
in
so attached to the lid that
the
handle, which
will
it
all
made with
are shaped
on a
of teapots, nearly all have a will rotate, or a ring
swing.
Many
have the
pendent handle
perforated as a fine geometrical pattern.
Of Banko
wares,
it
may
be remarked that the particular forms
of handle, which are undoubtedly Japanese, are that which arches the orifice of the vessel, as the handle of our pails,
and that
which corresponds with the handle on our saucepan.
Although
the looped handle, similar to that on our teapots,
uncommon, and although
I
see before me, as
with this form of handle, there
is
is
I write, five
no longer specimens
every reason to believe that
was derived from European examples brought into the country Yet on a Chinese jug, which was, undoubtedly, by the Dutch. it
hundred and fifty years since, I see this form of and on several ewers preserved at Nara are examples This form of handle, then, may have been of a similar character. derived from Continental Asia and not from Europe.
made
four
handle,
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
374
Some specimens earth,
of
common Banko ware
from which large panels have been
are formed of a red
and the opening
cut,
thus formed replaced by a semi-transparent white clay.
teapot of brick colour, and with a " stippled
" surface,
In a
having the
texture of " morocco leather," are two panels of white earth, the one
having the form of a but this ware
is
Another
and the other a cardeoid or blunt heart
fan,
recent
form
Banko
of
has
produced
thus
effect
coarse,
is
and
marbled
a
resulting from the combination of imperfectly
the
;
modern.
mixed
surface
clays
but
;
ware has no
the
art
value.
Banko wares
are often decorated
but while a few pieces by
;
the best makers are tenderly painted, the decoration
both crude regretted,
colour and
in
the
as
good painting
ware
coarse in
itself
excellent.
is
would be much sought
it
generally is
to
be
accompanied by
If
by
after
is
This
character.
lovers of beautiful
objects.
Modern Banko wares are sometimes glazed, in other cases by an opaque colour (generally a full green or an unwelcome pink), and in some cases vessels are glazed internally only. The glazed ware, as well as the unglazed, may be entirely covered
decorated.
We rough
not unfrequently teapots
offered
see,
our large grocers' shops,
in
sale
for
imitation
Banko wares made
at
cottagers,
who perform
work
their
Small though these teapots
have
in
common
use,
be,
few
a
for
These
pence.
little
are
Kioto and Tokio by potting in
a most
simple manner.
they are such as the Japanese
while they frequently drink tea they
for
A
indulge themsqlves with a mere sip at a time.
large vessel or
a large sip are alike vulgar.
Onko
is
the
thickness, which
small group of
province of
name is
solid
and well made.
men who
left
its
name.
the town from which the
men
It
was invented by a
Yokkaichi and removed to the
Mino where they founded
which the ware derives in
of a chocolate-coloured ware of no great
a pottery called
But
this
departed.
ware
is
Onko, from
now
imitated
AR T, AND AR T MANUFA CTURES. Another ware of unglazed red earth and
made
is
Tokonabe
at
Tokonabe ware
;
shaped on the wheel, This
is
called
enjoys no great celebrity.
it
kind of stone-ware, valued
hardness, and which
known
is
Owari or Bishiw.
but although the things produced are specimens
of careful potting
A
in
37 5
in
Japan on account of
its
sometimes glazed and sometimes unglazed,
is
cases a decorative effect
much resembles that we make ginger -beer made of a dark-red colour. In some is produced by a bamboo or some other
spray being incised
the clay.
is
Bizen.
as
common form bottles
;
but
of
it
is
appearance
In
stone -ware also
in
hardest produced in Japan.
This ware
in is
vessels,
Imbe and other
said to be the
is
exposed to the action of
It is
the process of manufacture, from
made name
it
of which
fifteen
to
fire,
thirty days.
It
places in the province of Bizen, and
that of the district.
Besides
we
made
often see figures
these are of considerable age.
jars, bottles, pots,
of Bizen ware
in is
its
and other
and some of
;
Bizen ranks amongst the oldest of
existing Japanese potteries.
Another celebrated ware appears and thumb or cups.
like that of It is
I
is
—
this is
Soma
is
is
invariably
we should perhaps add importance
the only instance,
Rokubei,
the ;
the old
all
celebrated,
and
wares
to
of Tokonabe,
but to iterate
all
Kenzan, of
Takatori,
my
Sado,
the wares of this class
that are known, even tolerably well, in Japan, would be to part of
which
Kioto wares, there are others
Hikone, the old wares of
as
Toyosuke, and others
this
The
ware.
Japanese crest being an animal.
Besides these wares, which are
Kinkozan,
with the finger
the form of small jars
the crest of the Prince of Soma, and
believe, of a
of less
in
covered with a gray-brown glaze, and
decorated with a horse or with horses horse
made
to be
Banko, generally
book a mere catalogue of wares, which
absence of coloured illustrations could only be useless.
make in
the
But
I
—
may just mention that Mashimidsu Z5roku of Kioto a potter who enjoys considerable notoriety makes stone ware vases which
—
have incised
The grounds
lines,
filled
with white
slip,
covering their surface.
of these vary from a pleasant gray to a rich brown,
376
JAFAN ITS ARCJUTECTURE,
and the white
is
:
The whole
not obtrusive.
pleasant, though rough, effect.
I
glazed and has a
is
may also mention
Kiyomidsu
that
Rokubei, also of Kioto, makes an exceedingly crude ware which
he covers with an opaque white glaze, on which he gets rich granite- like
of
effects
mingled together
that
;
colour
a crude heavy ware, which treacle -like
and
glaze,
Buddhist
with
part
latter
well
from
with
a
glaze
being
black
same
city
makes
thick with white
yellow
leaves
of the
he often shapes into quaint forms
also
Miyai
crabs.
makes
kind
a
resemblance to the creature,
its
and
reds,
of the
part covered with a transparent,
modelled
-
Ota-Mura, near Wakayama, which,
greens,
curious rough
as
These
lotus.
decorates
in
is
in
opaque matter, as well and
—
Sawamura Tosa
is
Sajoro
of
of
pottery,
called
sea- slug
ware.
Besides these there
a whole series of rough crackle wares
is
somewhat imperfectly baked. The best of these is made by Oki Toyosuke of Nagoya, and is generally known as Toyosuke or Toyoske ware. This is a form of pottery made
which arc
all
of a buff- coloured
covered
earth
with
semi -opaque crackle
a
glaze which has a white or sea-green cast.
the glaze there in
a sort of
"
a
is
Sometimes below
rude sketch of a figure or a pine branch
Payne's -gray
"
and from the top of the
colour;
object a rich juicy green often flows over the paler glaze.
ware the crackles are
this
neutral
distinctl}'
marked
a
sort
of soft
tint.
Another ware of a similar description a
in
In
widow
potter of
is
made by
Inui
Chio,
Osaka but her wares are characterised by having moon, or some such device cut into the ;
a bird, a bat, a crescent surface, or b}-
having raised figures of flowers, dragon, or mountain,
upon them, while nearly
them
in
all
Japanese faience
name
faience
body,
it
drawn upon
a sort of inky coloin-.
The most important "
the pieces have flowers
is
Satsuma ware." is
\\-are
that which
which we have to notice as a is
now
But whether
so well it
known under
the
should be classed as a
doubtful, for while but to a small extent vitreous in
appears to have the composition of a porcelain.
its
ART, As we have
AND ART MANUFACTURES
already
377
Shimadzu Yoshihisa, Prince of
seen,
Satsuma, brought with him when he returned from the conquest of Corca a
number
of potters, to
whom
he assigned the task of
producing a new and acceptable ware from the materials found their
new home, and
in
the result of their efforts was the production
of the ware which took the
name
of the province, and which has
acquired well-deserved celebrity.
This pottery was established shortly before the close of the sixteenth century, and
which
its
wares are made of a porcelain clay
from the true porcelain mixture, as
differs
undergo to any considerable extent fusion by
formed chiefly of felspar and woodash, freed from has neither borax nor lead
is
commonly used Satsuma ware
burnt,
is
glaze
Its
its alkali.
much
It
higher temperature
When
for the formation of biscuit ware.
of pale vcllum-like colour, and
We
presents a fine network of cracks. different kinds of faience, but
is
composition, and the body and
in its
the glaze are simultaneously fired at a
than
does not
it
firing.
in
is
it
have classed
its it
surface
with the
character almost a semi-
porcelain.
Old Satsuma ware was generally made as bowls, saucers, flowers
used.
and conventional ornaments, the
It
is
the beauty of
tlic
latter
frequently forming
The chrysanthemum,
pheasant, and
the
the paiony, the
peacock were commonly
by the tenderness of
also distinguished its
small pieces, such
and teapots, and was decorated with birds and
bands around the objects. domestic fowl,
in
reds and greens, and
by the
its
solidity of
outline, its
dull
gold pencilling.
Old Satsuma ware has now become rare the whole of
my
travels
pieces, while six or seven
in the
country
pounds was the
I
in
Japan, and during
never saw but three
price asked for a small
teapot.
Large pieces of
this
ware appear never to have been produced
until comparatively recent times, and
the Japanese
little
must be remembered that
use for large vases in
their
own
Those huge specimens which are occasionally shown to examples of old Satsuma ware must be regarded as the
houses. us as
have but
it
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
378
products of some other pottery
have to I
think
it
"
and
district
There appears
much
but of such works
well here to reproduce an article
of the Tokio Legation on
he visited the
a
;
ruin wrought
The Corean
"
by Mr. E. Satow
Potters in Satsuma," as
He
did not.
I
be good ground
to
says Korea once enjoyed
for believing that
enjoys now, and,
it
when we consider
and the general
difficulty
experienced in countries where the
Chinese of recovering from such disasters, we shall not be sur-
civilisation is
prised to find the
modern Koreans
far
behind their neighbours
of the useful arts, though in former ages for instruction.
of pottery, and those
Korean ware,
to
it
was
to
them
which an antiquity of about
Korean
five
centuries
The Japanese, always ready
pains to obtain.
have, from a period which
may be
tells
which
in
its
it
was baked were
name.
assigned,
Avill
sacrifice of
to learn
much
from others,
and several schools of pottery are
As
the learned antiquary,
us in Part V. of his invaluable work on the history
of Japanese faience, the common sort of made by Koreans whom Hideyoshi caused
ware took
is
called prehistoric, at various times invited
artisans to settle in their country,
said to have been founded by these emigrants.
kilns in
practice
potters possessed in those days a degree of skill
which was worth imitating, and secrets which were worth the
Ninagawa Noritane,
in the
that the Japanese
One of the arts brought to Japan from Korea was that who have seen specimens of the delicate, white, translucent
readily admit that the
money and
the extent of the
peninsula by the Japanese armies in the end of the
in that
sixteenth century,
Korean
shall shortly
higher degree of material civilisation than, as we learn from recent
sources of information,
went
we
treat.
built in
The descendants
Buzeh, and later at Yatsushiro
in
pottery called raku-yaki was to
be brought to Kiyauto.
his palace of Jiuraku,
of others
who were
first
The
whence the
settled first at
Agano
Higo, after the withdrawal of the Japanese
carry on the production of Agano ware. maker of Nakanokura ware, near Hagi in the province of Nagato, and became the founder of a family which still exists there, and in the province of Satsuma there is a village entirely inhabited by potters of Korean origin, whose forefathers were transplanted from their native country about the same time. " The ancestors of these people were brought over in 1598 by Shimadzu Koshihiro, the feudal lord of Satsuma, and settled at Kagoshima, the capital of the province, and at three villages, named Kushikino, Ichiku, and Safinogaha, in the department of Heki. Some of them were afterwards removed to Chiyosa in Ohosumi, on the Kagoshima Gulf, where they continued to exercise their The larger number were art, and their descendants live there to this day.
troops from Korea in
1598,
Another Korean was the
collected together in the
still
first
end of the year 1603
at
Nahashirogaha or Tsuboya,
a village on the high road from Ichiku to Kagoshima, about twelve miles from
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
They belonged
the latter town.
and
their descendants
to seventeen families,
Haku,
Hefi, Kiyau, Tei, Jin, Riii,
Sai, Chin,
women
practice, but the
(Snow), and the fifteen
still
Boku,
Shiii, Ri,
syllables,
in use
according
among them
to
the
Korean
bear Japanese names, such as Fude (Pen), Yuki
The whole population of the village numbers about The wares made by the first generation of captives were
like.
hundred.
dark pottery with a black glaze, and
chiefly of a coarse kind of is
named
Ga, Tei, Shiya, and Sai,
The personal names
composed of two Chinese
usually
Kiii,
keep these surnames, which are pronounced as above
still
according to the Japanese fashion. are
Ro,
379
this
manufacture
carried on at Tsuboya, the principal articles produced being teapots,
and large jars for packing the dried tea-leaf Between the years 1624 and 1644 a skilful workman named Boku Teiyou made the discovery of white sand at Kaseda, and of white clay at Ibusuki, and from this period dates the manufacture of the white Satsuma cracked ware (called hibiki-de) so much But for a long time the ware appears esteemed by European connoisseurs. pipkins,
to
have been ornamented very sparingly with colour, and the oldest specimens
are altogether devoid of
named
Kiii Zenkai,
About the
it.
close of the eighteenth century a
and Kuhabara Jiuzawemon, an inhabitant of
Korean
Kajiki,
made
a journey to Kiyanto, where they learned the art of decorating earthenware with figures, landscapes,
This
is
and
set patterns in the style of colouring called Nishiki-de.
the sort by which the Satsuma ware has acquired
Most of the
fine pieces in this style
by the Prince of Satsuma ago
six or seven years
east of prince's to
is
to the
regardless of expense for the
Shiyaugun and
use, or for presents to the
which circumstances
great reputation.
at
Tanoura, a village on the bay about a mile
to
The ware was manufactured
Kagoshima.
own
at a place called
its
some potteries established Tatsuno, whence they were removed
were produced
owing the great perfection
to his fellow-daimiyau,
to
which
it
was brought.
by the richness of the gilding, the delicacy of the During the last few years the drawing, and subdued harmonious colouring. painted crackle has been made by private individuals, or by companies trading Connoisseurs distinguish
it
with funds advanced by the local administration with a view to profit, and
would perhaps not be too much
to
it
say that nothing worthy of the collector's
attention has been produced since 1868, the year of the revolution.
" In February of last year of Tsuboya, where the inhabitants, to friend.
There
is
I had an opportunity of visiting the Korean village was most hospitably lodged and entertained by one of whose care I had been specially commended by a Japanese I
nothing distinctive in the appearance of the people or
architecture of their houses
;
and wear the Japanese dress
The hill
they ;
all
in the
speak Japanese as their native tongue,
Tsuboya
principal potteries belonging to the
is
in fact just
like
any other
village.
Koreans are situated on the side of a
to the south of the highroad, together with the kilns belonging to the
Tamano-yama Kuwaishiya, a company recently started by some Kagoshima Samuraht. The Tsuboya crackle is produced at this establishment and at another on the opposite side of the road, owned by a Korean named Chin
[APAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
38o
Jinkuwan, but most of the villagers devote themselves
common brown earthenware. "The principle of the division
seems
of labour
One
understood and applied by these workmen.
manufacture of
to the
be thoroughly- well
to
will
confine himself,
instance, to the bodies of teapots, of which he can produce about a
and
a day, another makes the
fifty in
a third the spouts, a fourth the
lids,
" ears " or projecting pieces into which the handle is
assigned the joining of these parts together.
is
inserted, while to a fifth
members
Generally the
family work in concert, and form a sort of co-operative society, which
owner of a is
The
kiln with other such societies.
for
hundred
of a joint
is
clay used for the coarse ware
found at Isakuda and Kannogaha, near Ichiku, and at Terawaki, Kukino,
and Noda, near coloured, red,
Ijifu-iii, all in the neighbourhood of Tsuboya. Chocolateand green glazes are obtained from Tomura, Kanmuri-ga-take,
and Sasa-no-dan, while
Ishiki furnishes the glaze for water-jars
Three
large articles of the coarser kind of ware.
the smallest of which
sizes of
and other
wheels are
in use,
formed of two wooden disks about three inches
is
thick,
the upper one being fifteen inches, the lower eighteen inches, in diameter,
connected by four perpendicular bars somewhat over seven inches long.
It is
poised on the top of a spindle planted in a hole of sufficient depth, which passes through a hole in the lower disk, and enters a socket in the under side of the upper disk, and the potter sitting on the edge of the hole turns the
wheel round with his
Each
rows.
is
The largest w-heel is about twice the size The kilns are built up the face of a hill in parallel a number of chambers with openings in the inter-
foot.
left
every way of the smallest. divided into
vening partitions to allow of the passage of flame and hot
end of the
compartment— a
every
which the
up
kiln right
to the head,
workmen
in
by,
about
six feet square,
The
and
fuel
is
consists of
pine logs about two feet in length and a couple of inches in diameter.
split
Two hundred and firing,
fifty
which usually
or sixty bundles of
other, every second slightly
enough used
apart. pot, is
to separate for
The
is
is
are required for a single
No
stands are used for the
being baked, but the articles are piled on each they consequently adhere together
;
out of the kiln, but a gentle tap with a piece of
Between the heavier
them.
tea, small bits
packing glaze
it
one being upside down
when brought
wood
about thirty-six hours.
lasts
brown earthenware while
jars
and out
and a smaller one through which
firing,
is
the side of
in
charge can watch the progress of the baking.
placed in the lowest chamber, which
is
from the lower
larger one for the ware to be passed in
of course closed during the
is
air
and there are apertures
of dry clay are inserted to keep
put on by immersion
;
glaze flows
and then being quickly reversed,
down
pretty equally
gray opaque colour, and process of
firing.
The
it
is
all
round.
them
the article, as for instance a tea-
dipped into the liquid upside down in such a manner that very
gets inside,
wood
pieces, such as the large
is
When
set
on
its
dry the glaze
put on before the article
is
little
base, so that the is
of a yellowish-
subjected to any
material used for the finer kind of earthenware, that
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART, is,
and
satshzkt-de, or painted ware,
381
nishiki-de, into the decoration of
gold enters as well as colours, consists of white clay from three
namely, Mount Kirishima, Ibusuki, and the gold mine at stone from Kaseda and Kushiki
Yamagano
supplies in addition a second kind of clay called bara^ which brittle,
and no doubt
is
;
and of white sand from Kominato.
;
is
which
localities,
of white
Ibusuki
said to be very
the ingredient which gives somewhat of the character
The Kaseda stone is used also for when powdered and mixed with the ashes of nara wood {Quercus glandiiliferd), or some other sort of hard timber. " The clay and stone are well pounded, soaked in water, and passed several times through a fine sieve placed over a receiver. The minute particles which of porcelain to certain pieces of the ware.
glazing
bottom are then taken up and dried on boards.
settle at the is
name
given the
of niidzii-bosJii, or water drying, and
is
it
To this process common to all
For the fine white earthenware four kinds of and white Kaseda sand, which have been previously subjected to midzit-boslii, are mixed in certain proportions known to the experienced workman. Lumps of this stuff are placed upon wooden blocks and pounded with hammers to the extent of about three thousand blows, by which it is brought into the state of raw material, but previously to being branches of the manufacture. clay, together with ba7-a
actually converted into clay for the potter's use,
blows more. "
The
It is
Fire
is
front of the kiln,
circulate
freely
and the hot
air
passes up this to the chamber, where in
which the biscuit
have the following dimensions
Height (Japanese measure)
.
Diameter
.
.
.
it
can
The
:
air
.
5-5 feet."
.
...
.
passage
.
.
......
Height of hot
air
passage
.
.
.
Width
4"5
,,
5-0
„
4-5
„
is left
For nishiki-de three
which the glaze
painted and gilded
3-5
,,
i"2
,,
0-9
space of four inches in width
of the kiln.
is
deposited.
is
Internally—
Height
after
kept.
is
Externally
Diameter
A
it
baked are one-celled, and
saisldki-de are
brick, with walls about six Japanese inches
round the muffle
Length of hot 2.
requires about three thousand
kindled in the mouth of a passage which projects from the
largest of these kilns 1
and
nisJiiki-de
upon a foundation of
built of clay
thick.i
which
kilns in
it
considered to improve in quality the longer
is ;
put on
and
;
between the muffle and the inner wall
firings
^
There are ten Japanese inches
2
The Japanese
is
are necessary
:
firstly,
the suyakt,
secondly, the hoiiyaki, after which the piece
thirdly, a slow
foot
„
to
and gradual
an English
the same as our own.
firing
which develops
foot. Author. Author.
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
382
the colours, the duration being twenty-four, forty-eight, and ten hours respect-
During the
ively.
last
is observed from time to time employed being a piece of pottery
temperature
firing the
through an aperture near the top, the
test
marked with various pigments, which gradually assume the desired
tints
as
the heat increases.
"A memorandum drawn
up by an
Kagoshima
of the
official
prefecture, for
presentation to the commission which presided over the Industrial Exhibition,
held last autumn in Yedo, gives the composition of the pigments used for
producing the various colours of the
Satsuma wares.
fine
Dr.
Edward
Divers,
Professor of Chemistry at the Imperial College of Engineering, has kindly
examined specimens of these materials procured
me
The mixtures
with their English names.
follows
Yedo, and has furnished
in
for the various colours are as
:
" Red.
— Ground white
glass, soft or lead variety
{sMratama
lead {tau no tsuchi), colcothar or red oxide of iron {beni-gara
tio
kd), white
and a
^),
silicious
earth called Hitio-woka tsuchi.
white — Ground white copper oxychloride red {kuwaianeitan), "Yellow. — Ground white and antimony White. — Ground white and white " and smalt ground — Ground compound due a Japanese name " white and manganese. — Ground white white an earthy manganese — Ground white " Green.
shiyau),
and
lead,
glass,
lead
glass,
"
glass, silicious earth,
Blue.
glass
cobalt
to
is
and a very
cobalt (wensei),
ore con-
lead,
glass,
little
silicious
ground and elutriated malachite {shihonuki
" At the pottery belonging to Chifi Jinkuwan in
hana-kottgiyaii.
lead,
glass,
" Black.
taining a
the
;
lead.
blue glass, the colour of which
(a
Purple.
ently
silicious earth,
{taieshirome).
metallic
is
{rohi-
silicious earth.
carbonate of copper, appar-
rokusliiyaii). I
saw groups being modelled
the white clay, which, after baking and glazing, assumes a light cream
colour,
and becomes what
is
known
as
Satsuma
These
crackle.
articles
The
intended to be decorated later on with gilding and colours.
were
potters here
possessed only two old pieces of plain ware, a teuji-buro, and a figure of a
The
child playing with a diminutive puppy.
two pieces
— namely, a brasier and a
distilling oil of cloves,
Two
artists
Dharma
in
were employed
tiger sitting
in
in
in
practice
teiiji-biiro is
on the top of it
is
an utensil formed of
it,
and
is
intended for
used merely as an ornament.
modelling figures of Kuwafion
(pr.
Kannon) and
white clay, with the conventional face and robes given to Buddhist
personages, and toes
feet in
though
boiler
height
up
in
when
all
of the
same
length.
A
third
was engaged upon a
a cat-like posture, intended to be two and a half Japanese finished.
Most of
their figures are
modelled from drawings
Indian ink, but the coloured designs are laid on from memory.
^
Dr. Divers informs
me
stance was formerly obtained.
that Beni-gara
is
a corruption of Bengal,
whence
this sub-
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
" Until fourteen years
made It
A
ago a ware called betsu-kafu
at this village, the colours of
which were intended
(pr.
383
bekko) yaki was
to imitate tortoise-shell.
was a common ware, and used to be exported to Nagasaki in large quantities. piece of this, said to be old, which was exhibited to me, had green blotches,
as well as the two usual colours, yellow
company's establishment
all
sorts
At the Tamanoyama
and brown.
of ware are produced
and highly gaudy
— common
brown
pottery, inferior blue
and
workman engaged
modelling a statuette of Christ after a sentimental wood-
in
white,
crackle.
Here
found a
I
He had copied the and beard with considerable accuracy, but had draped the body and limbs Some stones of brown earthenware, imitated the robes of a Buddhist priest.
cut in a religious periodical called the Christian Observer,
face in
from American iron stones, were ready seven dollars, delivered
in
Yedo.
monstrous shape composed of hexagons, pell-mell, the result of
for the kiln
saw
I
an attempt at
their price
;
was
to be
some huge white vases of
also
squares piled up, as
circles,
originality,
unhampered by
it
were,
traditional
notions of form.
"The is,
that
account given of themselves by the Kaurai
all
jin (as
they are called)
the inhabitants of the village, peasants as well
as potters, are
descended from Koreans brought over during the period Keichiyan
by a Satsuma Samurahi named wore their hair tied up in a knot
Ijifu-In.
(i
596-161
5)
Until about three years ago they
at the top of the
head
;
but most of them
now
wear the Japanese queue, or cut their hair in the style which has been They informed me that in former days they dressed introduced from abroad. themselves
in
their
own costume on
special occasions, as, for instance,
when
they went forth to salute the Prince of Satsuma as he passed through their village
on
One
on his way up to Yedo. dress in order to give
this
me
of the potters was good enough to put
an idea of
drawing on a pair of wide trousers of dark blue differing
from the ordinary Japanese hakama
same way
the legs, but tied on in the strings
—
that
is,
its
appearance.
silk of a
in
He
began by
very delicate material,
having no division between
the front part was tied on by
which passed round the waist, and then the back piece was fastened by Next he threw over his shoulders a bow-knot in front.
strings in a double
wide-sleeved mantle or haori of like colour and texture, the sleeves of which
were not sewn up
in
pockets as those of the clothes worn by adult Japanese
usually are, and fastened
with strings on the right side of the waist.
it
he crowned himself with a long conical black cap edged with white.
produced a broad brimmed black
hat, apparently
woven of the stem
Finally,
He
also
of a kind
The knowledge of the Korean language is still kept up by some among them, whose duty it is to interpret between castaway Korean junkmen of creeper.
and the Japanese
officials.
Before the destruction of the monasteries the
inhabitants of the village belonged to the Buddhist sect, Teiidaishiu, which
was no doubt that of their ancestors in their native country. At present they are under the protection of a Japanese deity, whose shrine, called Giyoku-safiGuu, stands on a
hill
south-west of the village.
In front of the shrine stand
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
384
a couple of lanterns of white ware with a blue design, presented by the potters' belonging to sixteen out of the seventeen families, as may be seen by the names
The tombs
inscribed on the pedestals.
in the cemetery,
of the path to this temple, do not differ in any
what we should expect
tombs, which
is
monuments
Japan
in
through Korea. identity of
It
is
to
which
the side
lies at
marked manner from Japanese
find,
as the style of sepulchral
essentially Indian-Buddhist,
and most
appears that these people marry freely
likely derived
among
surname not being considered an obstacle as
it
themselves,
China, but
in
is
seldom intermarry with Japanese except they be members of the Samurahi gathered, in fact, from the conversation of the villagers, that they I class. considered themselves to
much
superior to the aboriginal natives of the country
which their ancestors had been transplanted."
There
made
in
is
^
a curious ware called sameyaki, which
Satsuma, and
is little
known
was
England.
in
Its
formerly-
ground
is
of buff or brown earth, while the glaze has shrunk into convoluted
them the ground
or ruminated heaps, so that between
This
is
a peculiar ware,
and seems
dead."
from a remarkable
to result
contraction of the glaze in the process of
is "
firing,
and from an
antipathy of nature between the body of the vessel and the glaze.
The on
aspect of the glaze
fine
masses.
is
much
dust and arranged
Most commonly
colour, but in
some
like that of
itself into
this
ruminated glaze
more
cases the
water that has fallen
globular or irregular raised
raised parts
is
of a dull white
have a bright black
aspect.
The
establishment, potteries in
in
which
clay, a class of
a it
was
the
to
the
to be imitated.
Here, with the same
ware was produced which bears a close resemblance
somewhat more yellow district in
led
suburb of Kioto called Awata, of certain
that copied, only the
to
Satsuma ware attained
popularity which
which
it
imitation
hue. is
is
of a slightly deeper
This ware
made
—was
—which
is
named
and after
originally decorated in a
manner widely different from that of Satsuma, as it had but a few colours, and those neutral, and its sketches were drawn in thin, But recently it has been figured with patterns somelight lines. what closely resembling those of Satsuma ware. As a rule, how-
for
1 In this article many words are spelt in an unusual manner Corea, Kiyauto for Kioto, Buzen for Bizen, etc.
:
thus
we have Korea
ART, ever, the
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
work on the imitation
385
smaller than that on the wares
is
made under the famous prince of the South. Awata wares are now made of all kinds and qualities. Some are utterly common, and are only suited to the ignorant caprices of a European public, while others are both tenderly wrought and daintily decorated. I
have said that the ornamentation of Awata wares
on a smaller scale than those of Satsuma the case, for
I
blossom which the South
have before is
is
although the colours with which
of hues
;
I
generally
not always
have seen on works from
an exception to the
generally rather strong, yet
is
is
a pot decorated with a quince
bolder than anything
but this
;
me
yet this
;
Awata
some
pottery
pieces are
Then, again,
rule.
decorated are
is
made with
the softest
and while Awata ware has generally the leaves and the
flowers with which
it is
decorated outlined, yet some pieces have
drawings upon them of a masterly character which are touched in
with
spirit
and have none of
In the district of
make
Awata
this
laboured work.
there are
the particular ware of which
many
we
potters,
some of whom
speak, while others do not.
But there are scores of men who manufacture Awata ware
in
some
form or other, although the makers of that of superior quality are
There are also men
few.
Awata ware
;
for the
name
living outside
has
this
suburb who make
now become applied to a particular name of the locality in which
production, which simply bears the it
was
first
produced.
The names
of the three chief
Awata
potters are
Kinun Ken,
Kinkozan Sobei,
who makes excellent but most expensive wares who is the largest maker of this ware and Tanzan Seikai, who is But both also a man of considerable importance in the district. in the district of Awata and beyond it there are other men in a somewhat large way of business who make this well-known ;
;
Satsuma ware. England we commonly meet with persons who speak specimens as though this ware were common Satsuma their of but in ninety-nine cases out of every hundred these turn out to Even the Satsuma ware now being be examples of Awata ware.
imitation of
Here
in
;
2 C
JAPAN: ITS A RCII ITECrU RE,
386 IHCKluccd is
about leu times us costly as Awata ware,
is
yet
aiul
only a keen eye that can distinguish between the two.
it
Little
old or modern, reaches England.
Satsuma ware, either After Awata, the Satsuma wares and
Awaji began to produce imitation
island of
altlujugh the.se attempts belong to a
;
later
date than tho.se of Awata, this island has yet given us finer works
Satsuma type than any
of the
Awaji
about
two
are
of
Mimpe, but
in
l};an(j is
name
and is owned by .Sanpe, a nephew of old Mimpe. Sanpe who makes the imitation Satsuma ware, and
drawing, and
full
and
rich
quantity of this ware produced is
Rikita.
is
is
good Mr.
description,
tiiought that
h(!
eX(:ei)tion of a
might
gc;t
it
done
Awata and Awaji
to
and he
produce a tea
.service
two years
for a special in
but the
insignificant,
much
after
in
of the existence of a do/en specimens
resemblance to
colouring;
altogether
.Sanpe,
made
few pieces
character, precise in
in
their
in
happy who possesses a specimen. Upon asking how long it would take
of this
to
now owned by the son The other pottery now
is
wares bear patterns which are simi)le
their
its
large
(jnly
It is
his
his trade
sea,
Sumoto, but
whose desire was
Kishiu,
This pottery
imitate the Dutch delft.
is
The one was founded
number.
in
years since by lVlimi>e
fifty
Kiot(->.
of Igano.
pcjtteries are in the village
[Kjtteries
town
Its chief
lying out in front of Jliogo.
These
have come to us from
\vhi( h
an island at the nc^rthern entrance of the inland
is
;
order,
consideration,
and, with I
don't
know
h'.ngland.
work which, while bearing a
i)roduce
the
clo.se
.Satsuma wares, can scarcely be said to be
real
deceptive imitations of the more valuable pioductions of the South, ihit this in
cannot be said of .some of the works fabricated at Shiba,
Tokio, and of the
po.s.sesscd
established
for
at
Ota,
Kanagawa.
near
Here two
factories,
means of i)roducing excellent works, have been simulating
old
work's
and
producing
deceptive
copies of the most valuable i)ieces of Satsuma ware.
So
far
the work to
it
has this unworthy manufacture been carried that when
is
finished
it is
even
the appearance of age.
{lii)pe(l
in
Hut there
a dirty mixture to impart is
one
peculiarit}'
which
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
characterises most of the
387
productions of both Shiba and Ota
:
they are decorated with figures of Buddhist saints, whose heads are surrounded each
mode that
in
by a nimbus
but
;
of decoration was ever usctl in
cannot learn that
1
Satsuma
and
;
is
it
this
certain
if pieces of this character were ever made it was most seldom. Yet both Shiba and Ota make other works which, although
some
respects like the productions of the South, are altogether
distinctive in their character,
and have
qualities
which characterise
the potteries in which they are made.
No more
works have ever been produced
some of those
lovely than
in
any part of the world
fabricated during the last few years at Shiba.
of the clay (which
is
and small vases
cups, kettles,
vellum-like), the
The
tints
.soft
delicate colour
of the ornament,
the exquisite diapers with which the objects are covered, the precision
of the work, and the relation of figured surface to plain,
make these At Ota its
the land.
in
produced the celebrated Makudzu ware, which,
is
way, has
any boudoir
objects for
fit
never
been
surpassed.
some
Indeed,
pieces
Makud/Ai ware are so wonderful that they appear to be
tottrs
in
of
dc
force rather than works i)roduced for the ordinary purpo.ses of trade.
We delphia
fust
became acquainted with Ota pottery where two indented
ILxhibition,
flowers in the indentations, attracted in
much
spill
at
vases,
attention.
the Phila-
with
lotus
The esteem
which these were evidently held by those who saw them
America
led the
Makudzu
but in most of his
When some
I visited
fine
large old
trials
(!)
potter to cx})eriment for
new
in
effects
;
he used modelled flowers upon his vases.
the pottery at
works of
pean buyer.
'
Ota he was busily engaged upon
this character, as well as with the formation of
pots with which to delude the American and EuroIkit
it
was
at the last Paris Exhibition that
we saw
and he certainly showed
him.self
this great potter in his strength
;
as one of the giant ceramic workers of the world.
There are other places
at
which wares resembling those of
Satsuma have been made, but Awata, Shiba, and Ota are the three places which furnish large quantities. ''
This
is
not the real
name
Odd
of the potter.
pieces
made by
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
388
other potters arc sometimes better imitations of the original work
than most of those made
A
the three districts named.
in
made
notable example of this kind occurs in a vase
Kawamoto
Satsuma ware grayer
by-
Masukichi of Seto, which has the style of the old a marked degree, and which, although slightly
in
would be
colour,
in
not
from an
distinguished
easily
original specimen.
There deeper
is
tint
in
Matsuye recently,
also a beautiful
in
than even
ware of
soft
yellow colour, but slightly
that of Awata,
made
Unshiu, and known as Unshiu ware
was seen
town of
at the
but
;
this, until
chiefly as tall teapots, spreading at the top, with
a beautiful rich green running
down one
side,
and on the other a
tender spray of a gourd sketched in Payne's gray under the glaze,
and with an arched handle formed from a stem of the Westeria creeper.
Just
recently this ware
has, however,
markets in the form of cups, vases,
come
and other things
;
into
our
and crude
enamel painting has replaced the neutral decoration.
The
early specimens
of this ware were very
attractive, but those recently
But as these wares might possibly be mistaken
interest.
of
pleasant
Awata by persons having
and
imported are altogether without art
little
for those
opportunity of study, and as
Unyei, the owner of the Matsuye pottery, appears also to small quantity of imitation Satsuma ware,
it
make
a
has been thought
well to mention his production.s. \\^c
sometimes
see,
even here
in
England, cup-like bowls, of
a rather deep buff colour, with a crackled surface, and decorated
with groups of small figures
in
somewhat strong
colours.
These
man named Shiuhei who worked in Kioto, Some cups made by Ninsei where he but recently died. man whose real name was Nomura Seibei, and who lived in the
were
first
early part
made by
a
—
seventeenth
of the
century at Kioto
resemblance to some specimens of Satsuma ware.
— have
also
a
Yet the works
of this well-known potter can generally be at once recognised by the grayness
of the
medium depth) employed on
in
his
earth,
the
prevalence of a gray -blue (of
the decoration, and the fact that the designs
wares almost invariably consist of the emblems
ART, of long
life
—
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
the stork, the
fir,
389
the tortoise, and the bamboo,
while the works of the more recent potter are instances of Shiuhei ware, and are readily distinguishable from those of Satsuma, as
the pattern consists of figures.
Kishiu ware, which has become celebrated
Japan, owes
in
its
origin to the ambition of a prince of Kishiu, at the beginning of
the present
With
century, to
this object
rival
the
he erected a kiln
turquoise blue of China.
fine in
the garden of his palace,
Wakayama, and summoned to his aid a skilled potter, from Kioto, of the name of Yeiraku Zengoro, who ultimately succeeded
near
in
making
made
This potter also
a ware of intense cobalt blue colour.
which the two
a rich purple ware, as well as pieces in
colours are mingled.
For a time
this
manufacture appears to have been abandoned,
but some thirty years ago
who
it
was revived by one Miyai Sajoro,
lived in the village of Ota-mura, near
wares that this
man produced were this
man we
;
but the
generally bluer (had less of
the turquoise hue) than the Kishiu ware
most pieces made by
Wakayama
now produced
;
and on
see a spray of a plant, or bits
of irregular diaper patterns, painted,
in
neutral
tint,
beneath the
glaze.
Nearly twenty-five years since Mi)'ai Sajoro gave up manuand went to assist a widowed daughter to keep a shop
facturing, in
Wakayama
;
but about seven years since he returned to his
His wares are
native village, and resumed his old occupation.
characterised by a preponderance of rich purple, and by a considerable mingling of the
purple with blue
and he seems to
;
in
neutral
see in the English
market
have abandoned his early habit of placing sketches, tint,
beneath the glaze.
Most of the Kishiu ware which we is
made near Hiogo by Horinouchi Sozaburo, and more recently
by men who have learned the
Kobe
tells
me
that
it
art
The man here at to make
from him.
was he who rediscovered how
Kishiu ware, and that Miyai Sajoro copied the art from him but
this, I think,
his art at
cannot have been the case, as the
Ota-mura many years
since,
and he
is
;
latter practised
much
older than
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
390 the
Hiogo
As
potter.
be no difference of opinion
buro
undoubtedly the
is
now made who have but Another
recently acquired the secret of the manufacture.
ware of considerable importance
class of
Kutani or Kaga ware with works
made by Horinouchi SozaMuch cheap and inferior work
for that
;
better.
European and American markets by those
for the
is
two wares there can
to the merits of the
;
but whether
right in classifying
it
while some specimens have
in faience is doubtful, for
bodies which look like earthenware,
am
I
called
is
crude opaque
in reality a
is
it
porcelain.
This manufacture was formerly carried on Kutani, in the province of Kaga, but village of Yamashiro.
Kutani wares are of two kinds
—
it
is
the town
in
now made
chiefly in the
the one being decorated with
drawn
flowers, figures, or landscapes, with these decorations
wholly
by
also frequently rendered, to a considerable extent,
we
this
is
known
generally
are just about to describe
Made
chiefly
in
ware
platters, this
Kaga
is
In
dots.
ware, whereas that
generally called Kutani ware.
bowls and
form of large
the
bold in
is
is
as
either
The drawing
and gold.
in red or in red, black, silver,
England
of
treatment, and
its
is
saucer -like
decorated with
flowers, birds, diaper patterns, landscapes, and, not unfrequently,
The
with bold sprays of the bottle gourd.
Kaga
chiefly the
with
red, a
full
of
primrose yellow, a crimson pink,
purple-madder shade. In this ware object
is
it
it
are
green, ultramarine blue, and black,
sometimes
the addition
colours used in
pleasant
a
Antwerp
Vandyke brown, and
In some cases gold
is
blue, a
a sort of
added.
not unfrequently happens that part of the
covered with diaper patterns on various coloured grounds;
while birds or boldly treated flowers rest on these diapers.
another part painted.
be arranged a panel,
in
which a landscape
is
In most specimens of this ware the glaze will be found
crackled to
decorated
will
In
some
extent.
the
manner
in
upon them.
Being made
While Kutani ware described, in the
is
most commonly
many specimens have
figures
province of Kaga, the two wares
should perhaps be regarded as one
;
that which
we
distinguish
ART, England
in
as
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
Kaga ware
39
.
has usually fine work upon
and
it,
is
in red alone, in red and gold, in red, gold, and black, or in red,
and
silver,
black, as
Kutani ware
is
colours than red in
We and
we have
;
that which
we know
as
and usually has other
decorations.
its
meet with the same
me
have now before
I
just said
treated in a bolder manner,
difficulties
here as in other cases
;
four pieces of ware which would be
One is a little cup painted by Nagoya on Kutani earth one is a little hibachi or made in Owari another is a bottle painted in the Kaga
calculated to mislead the student.
an
artist in
fire-pot
on a pure porcelain,
style,
old
Banko
glance
Banko would
Tazimi
in
Mino; and the fourth
Kutani
spirit.
From
is
an
a cursory
say where these specimens were
difficult to
but by the trained eye the Mino porcelain and the
;
earth would readily be detected. not,
The Owari
flower -pot
however, be so easily referred to the locality
was made,
the
at
tea-jar decorated in the
would be
it
produced
it
;
;
for
it is
Nagoya painted
in
a very close imitation of Kutani ware
cup, being decorated in the
which ;
and
manner of Kaga It was
ware, and being on Kutani earth, would defy detection.
only through the accident of I
knew where
it
my
marked with the name
"
Kutani
getting
from the painter that
it
Old Kutani wares were always
was produced. "
and never with the name of the
maker.
When
speaking of wares that
resemble the productions of
Satsuma we mentioned that made by Sanpe of Awaji, but we did the two not mention the other wares which both he and Rikita
—
—
make. These potters concern themselves chiefly with the formation of small bowls, trays, caddy-spoons, and cups, which have an expotters of Igano
cellent finish. full
or
green,
They warm
are usually plain yellow, rich brick -orange, purple,
in
colour.
former
But the three
In some cases colours especially characterise the Awaji wares. the little dishes and saucers which these men make have a dragon
stamped
into the earth, so that
the glaze,
depressions, shows as a deeper colour.
perforated
;
by sinking
into the
Other specimens are
but most of them are perfectly plain.
in part
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
392
Having enumerated the chief forms of faience, and the semiporcelains and crude forms of " china," we come to the consideration of the porcelain manufactures
But although
over the country.
(sixty-eight), the rebellion
time of
my
visited nearly seventy potteries
I
in Japan during the more than three of the
broke out
that
my
prevented
visit
which are now spread widely
seeing
great centres of this interesting manufacture.
As we have
already seen, the art of porcelain making was
from
introduced
China
Japanese who settled
at
the
close
of the sixteenth
century.
Hizen (where much porcelain
in
manu-
is
factured to this day) brought the art to the country.
As
this
is
we may begin
the oldest seat of the manufacture,
our notice of the different porcelains by speaking of those
Made chiefly name Imari or Hizen.
district.
Europe
Arita, these wares
in
are called
who
an early time through the Dutch
at
island of Decima, near Nagasaki, from which Arita forty- five miles distant
much
:
and
was
it
by the
ware which became known
this
It is
in this
to
occupied the is
only about
ware which became so
this
Some
copied on the continent of Europe and in England.
of the earlier works of Worcester are almost exact reproductions
As we
of Imari designs.
shall
have to speak of the methods of
manufacture shortly, we need only point out at present the special features of the ware.
That which
most
is
characteristic has a rich,
and gold tracery patterns, or
;
panels,
drawing of
deep blue, under
On
glaze colour, produced from oxide of cobalt.
this are flowers
bearing geometrical designs
foliage, landscape, or figures,
—
diaper
;
the whole
being illuminated by the use of from four to six colours (often five) in
which a
prevail.
Other
specimens
with shades of light blue treated pieces
in
this
that of Kaga, green, and yellow
red, similar to
;
exist
which are
while
some
manner, and
decorated
pieces
colours on
have their decorations formed of
entirely
have the centre
the
border.
A
few
light
blues,
red,
and
gold only.
This ware has been so
much
divest myself of the feeling that
copied in Europe that
it
I
cannot
lacks an Eastern aspect.
But
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART, this feeling arises
from the
fact that patterns
Arita wares
have been famih'ar to
must confess
that,
They employ good
crude and garish
a
we consider the Derby,
and Worcester pottery, with
Bristol,
we do not wonder
at
collectors
Imari ware
have been given
that
prices
for
persons being found
potters
colours, yet they
There are
effect.
England who have a perfect craze
I
me
to
it is
The Imari
Japanese wares.
all
work on a good body. get
which characterise
from childhood, and
viewed from an art point of view,
the least satisfactory of
often
me
393
for
;
in
when
but
pieces of old
or no art merit,
little
who
delight in sur-
rounding themselves with numerous specimens from the potteries of Hizen.
It
is
who
pride
prefer
mere
but too true that there are people
themselves on the number of their specimens, and quantity to beautiful works.
There I
one other important ware made
is
have not yet mentioned
—
in
Arita which
the Seidji or Celadon ware.
has a pale sea-green hue; but as this particular ware
made
many
in
This is
parts of the country, and especially in Seto,
it
now can
scarcely be regarded as altogether characteristic of Hizen.
Like
all
other wares
Hizen has been in Kioto,
copied
which have become famous, that of
and some of the patterns
;
where, at the present time,
engaged upon such works, are to those of Arita.
the other. articles
At
Care
is
Hirato, also,
Kanzan Denhichi
similar,
needed
both
produced chiefly
is
colour and form,
in
to avoid mistaking
one
for
an island near the Hizen coast, small
closely resembling the delicately painted blue -and -white
wares of Imari are made.
We
might now just mention a ware of some
was made it is
in
Kioto and bears the name of
its
interest
which
inventor Eraku, as
amongst the celebrated productions of the
district.
It
is
a
pure porcelain, with a rich red surface formed of an oxide of iron,
on which gold devices (generally of a mythological character) are drawn.
Turning to the better-known Kioto wares, we may notice that in
Kioto much porcelain
is
manufactured, especially
called Kiyomidsu, not far from
in
the suburb
Awata, and here some objects of
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
394
The
great beauty and of singularly high finish arc produced.
wares arc of white porcelain tenderly decorated.
No
seem
potters in Japan
tenderness than the Kioto is
on porcelain with more
to paint
some of
In
artists.
works there
their
a beauty of drawing and delicacy of execution which
estimable
and some
;
little
cups which
purchased
1
most
is
the district
in
arc lovely specimens of work.
in
the immediate
Kiyomidsu, or
In
seventeen
The owners
the district.
Rokubei,
but the two
;
visited
I
of these manufactories are Kiyomidsu
Kanzan
Dohachi,
Takahashi
Gochio-me
neighbourhood,
amongst which were the most important
potteries,
greatest
and
Denhichi,
Kanzan
are
Seifoo
Denhichi
and
Takahashi Dohachi.
A
man
Kiokutei
called
makes
Seihichi
though
eccentric
interesting wares.
But besides the manufacture ware,
much
pottery
is
no one
district boasts
Kioto.
Were
all
in
this
Kiyomidsu
of
district
produced from earths of various kinds, and
more
the objects
made
in this
suburb collected together
one would suppose that they were the products of
many
In a district lying north of Hiogo called Sanda series of little
which
I,
potteries, in
so far as
which a Celadon ware
could learn, was the
I
Celadon wares are made of Japan, as facture.
I
have just
It is
produced only industry of the
The Sanda
made in
in
said,
number.
first
in
Sanda
made, and
is
European
is
it
find a
to
visit.
districts
the chief
manu-
Hizen, Owari, and Kioto, but here
in
small quantities, and
is
it
is
no way the staple
in
district.
potteries
(Sanda
is
the
name
of a district) are
town of Shidewara, and are
five in
Their owners are Konishi Tobai, Konishi Gohe, Kam^ii
Uchida Hisakichi, and Konishi Tsunekichi.
Konishi Tsunekichi
is
father
of Konishi
Tsunekichi and Konishi Gohe are brothers.
made
towns.
we
most of the great pottery
but
situated both in and near the
Sadajiro,
suburb of
diversified talent than this
in this district
these
The Celadon wares
are of an inferior class, and
pierced arabesque sides.
Of
Tobai, while Konishi
many
pieces have
ART,
We may of
this
mention,
in passing,
395
the fact that besides the Celadon
rude wares of several
district
Amongst
AND ART MANUFACTURES. kinds
are
here
made.
some of the roughest specimens of blue-and-
these are
white that could well be seen, as well as crude bowls bearing-
ornament
in
and other colours
greens, reds,
which the
interest save those for
The next
;
but none are of
district is celebrated.
great seats of the porcelain manufacture are Owari
and Mino, where most of the blue-and-white wares of Japan are made, and both districts produce wares similar both in character and
merit.
Seto, a small
from Nagoya, it
is
town
number of
are a
of the
The
man who is said to Kawamoto Masukichi, a
In
blue-and-white wares.
by no means characKato Mokuzayemon,
chief potters are
Government money man who has just built Kawamoto Hansuke, Kato Shige-
be assisted with
prosperous
house
himself a beautiful
make
all
varieties of porcelain
district.
a
shiro,
who
potters,
Some, however, make teristic
Owari, twelve and a half miles distant
in
wholly given up to the porcelain industry.
;
and Kato Gosuke, and each of these makes wares of great
excellence.
The Mino
potteries are situated in the villages of
Tazimi and
Ichi-no-kura, about thirty to thirty-five miles distant from
but the better class of
Mino wares
In Ichi-no-kura there are are
Kato Shinbei, who
Kato
many
made
in the latter village.
more important
potters, but the
said to be the largest in
Kat5 Kohei, Kat5 Gosuke
Jivvsuke,
potter),
is
are
(a
Nagoya;
the village
;
namesake of the Seto
and Kato Kichibei.
Some
of these
characterised
men make wares
by much
work upon them which
delicacy. is
the drawings on which are
Deep cups have blue
both minute and tender.
see grass, equisetums, dandelions, and the coranella,
pencil-
On one
drawn with
great fidelity to nature, and with almost microscopic minuteness
while on
many
of the sachi cups
we have
little
I
;
diaper patterns,
both varied and interesting.
As an example Kato Gosuke, which
of the latter is
1
may mention
a specimen by
decorated both internally and externally
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
396
The
with
little
parts
by
filled
with the same pattern.
diaper patterns.
inside
divided
is
into
eight
radiating from the centre, and no two sections are
lines
manner
into sixteen
diapers.
Thus one
parts,
The
exterior
divided in the same
is
and no two of these contain the same
section
with a simple arrangement
filled
is
manner of a chess-board, another
of blue-and-white squares in the
with a scale pattern, another with circles arranged
in
parallel
another with overlapping circles which intersect each other
lines,
one contains a key pattern, one
is
;
enriched with a mere checker,
one with a pattern founded on the hexagon, and another on diagonal
Others contain diapers based on the square, and,
lines.
to heighten the pleasant effect produced, every second division
darker
in
While blue-and-white wares, and pleasant,
fresh
passing away.
am
I
well in our
if
well manufactured, always look
rage
not sorry that the
for
Excessive repetition of anything, be
good, produces monotony.
make
In order to
our houses
by
in a similar
blue and white look ;
all to treat
is
his castle
;
hence
it
ought to express
this
the case there would be an interest in visiting each
which
now
is
lacking.
In wishing for the dethronement of blue-and-white
in
is
ever so
manner.
Englishman's house
other's houses
harm
them
decoration the mind, tastes, and knowledge of the owner.
its
Were
it
rooms the decoration must be of a certain character
and no fashion can be satisfactory which compels us
An
is
colour than the intervening one.
to those
good potters by
both Seto and Mino.
wares novel
in character
I
am
whom
I
sure that they could
and excellent
in
I
wish no
was so kindly received
make
workmanship.
coloured
At
this
moment there are many men, both in Ichi-no-kura and who devote themselves to the production of things quaint in
present
Seto
character and novel in effect. the beaten track
change
in
still
farther from
!
If the potters of
them
Let them depart
Owari are
our taste respecting
to seek to
in
any way
produce novelties with
Their present blue might
be, to
suffering from
blue-and-white soft
I
the
should advise
effects
of colour.
an extent, maintained, for the
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
love for Japanese porcelain
as great as ever
is
it
397
was, and the desire
for novelties greater.
My
visit to
some of the
these seats of manufacture enables
difficulties
names, there
Thus
must encounter.
in
one Kato Genjiw making wares resembling
I find
those of Banko, and even following the to
to illustrate
which any one attempting to write an exact
history of the Japanese ceramic arts
Ichi-no-kura
me
Banko
Then, as
shapes.
here a potter called Kato Kichibei
is
who
is
known only under the cognomen of Hechibei, which means funny The
fellow.
that
fact
he makes curious wares and grotesque
objects, together with the similarity
Japanese word
hechibei, has
between
name and
the
caused him to be thus designated.
Kawamoto Masukichi
In the case of
his
of Seto there
is
a
diffi-
culty, for his wares are sometimes called by the name Hansuke, Yet this which was the name of his father, a celebrated potter.
man The
has a brother, confusion
The
is
whom
I
also visited,
now
the
Hansuke.
name of mere cognomen
sons do not of necessity take the
name
is
frequently a
assumed by the manufacturer, and that
this business
appellation
be bequeathed to an apprentice or a son at the option of the
parent, renders
it
most
difficult to
things in a manufacturing is
is
obvious.
fact that the
the parent, that the trade
may
who
district,
we should
In England
inevitable.
understand the actual state of
and without great care confusion naturally conclude that a
youth who succeeded to the business, who was called by the name
who used
of the manufacturer, and
ware
is
that this
known, was the is
the seal or stamp by which the
But in Japan it very often happens Another element of confusion is intro-
son.
not the case.
duced by the chief name (that which answers to our surname)
coming
first
;
thus,
where they would write Kat5 Kichibei we
should write Kichibei Kato, and where they would write Kato San
we should
write Mr. Kato.
In going through the porcelain districts of Seto and
Mino
I
found that some of the potters decorated their own wares, while others sent
them
in the village of
to professional artists to receive patterns.
Tazimi
I
purchased a small sachi
bottle,
Thus
decorated
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
398 in
the style of
in the village
for
ware, which had been painted by an artist
Ichi-no-kura
found several
in business
who
undertook the painting of any wares entrusted
I
In Ichi-no-kura one of the chief
to them.
men
in
;
themselves
Kaga and
"
Kato Hichibei, a namesake of the
men
thus engaged
is
funny fellow."
found that much of the better wares from both Seto sent to Nagoya to be decorated, where the two were and Mino chief artists who undertake this work are Yokoi S5suke and SuyeI
also
moto Suzukichi, the former being eminent as a painter of gold But in the Seto district where work on an iron -black ground. the manufacture itself is carried on I did not notice the same
number of men employed as professional artists as I did in the Mino towns. If the artists who live in the pottery districts, and decorate wares, have but little work on hand, they make purchases of "
shapes," which they decorate and
artists
whom
I
have named
in
Thus, while the two
sell.
Nagoya undertake work
for the
chief potters, they also decorate wares which they have purchased,
and these they
offer in the
Objects decorated
but there pottery,
is
no place
in in
market with
their
Tokio are common
Tokio that
I
am
where any good wares are made
own names
in the
aware ;
affixed.
English market
of,
save the Shiba
and most of that which
here receives pattern has been purchased in either Seto or in
an undecorated In Tokio
I
Mino
state.
have never seen any pottery decorated
than a very second-rate manner by the professional
in
more
porcelain
The Shiba pottery turns out some exquisite things, and so does that of Ota, near Yokohama, but here works are Those who are engaged as mere both made and decorated. painters.
painters in
Tokio have never, so
work of a high
The Shiba grand
far
as
I
could learn, produced
character.
pottery,
and that of Ota, have turned out some and other things and to
vases, platters, incense -burners,
;
these potteries we are indebted for most of those specimens figured with saints which have been attributed to Kioto workmen. I also
think that
all
those examples with black grounds which have been
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
by even our best
referred
produced within the
and he
is
"body;" and
it is
works which we
made
any one
class of
Kagoshima, or
England
no
making a
his
in
his
difficulty in
similar
of even the fine
South have been
attribute to the
Shiba and Ota.
in
That Kioto has long been engaged both porcelain and faience until a
is
number
certain that a large
in
were
ware has a high market
desirous of deceiving, there
getting the clay from
district,
few years at these places.
last
If a potter finds that
value,
Satsuma
to the
collectors
399
certain
is
the manufacture
in
of
but the things produced,
;
comparatively recent period, were insignificant as ceramic
For many days
works.
my
devoted
I
attention, almost wholly,
Kioto potteries and their history
to the
Osaka, and other towns, wares.
I
;
and both
I
always found that they were rather curious and quaint In Tokio
than fine examples of work.
consulted the various
I
Museum upon
leading authorities connected with the Imperial the early ceramic productions of Kioto, but
decorated
Kioto,
in
sought specimens of the old Kioto
vase
was
that
not
small,
I
never saw a highly
nor one example
decor-
ated with nimbused saints which was attributed to the district
while
not
I
potteries, but
only saw scores attributed to the two I
saw such
at the
works themselves
in
;
Northern process of
manufacture.
That important works duced
in
faience or porcelain were not pro-
Kioto, even at the end of the sixteenth century, seems
and Ksempfer's remarks on Miaco (Miaco is the old name Kioto), made in the year A.D. 1 690, would bear out my state-
clear for
in
ment
;
:
" Miaco
is
the great magazine of
all
Japanese manufactures and com-
modities, and the chief mercantile town in the empire.
house
where there
in this large capital
is
not something
There
made
they refine copper, coin money, print books, weave the richest
and sorts
silver flowers.
The
best
and scarcest dyes, the most
of musical instruments, pictures, japan'd cabinets,
wrought
in
gold and other metals, particularly in
blades and other arms are richest dresses,
and
made here
in the
steel, as
is
scarce a
or sold. stufifs
Here
with gold
artful carvings, all all
sorts of things
the best temper'd
utmost perfection, as are also the
after the best fashion, all sorts of toys, puppets,
moving
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
400
heads of themselves, and numberless other things, too many
their
mention'd.
found
In short, there
is
to
be here
nothing can be thought of but what
may be
Miaco, and nothing, tho' ever so neatly wrought, can be imported
at
from abroad but what some
artist or
other in this capital will undertake to
imitate."
Although Kaempfer
may
but what
says, " there
nothing can be thought of
is
be found at Miako," the very fact that he does not
mention the ceramic manufactures, when enumerating the industries of the
city,
would
at least lead
me
while in Japan led
were
to the conclusion that they
not of special importance in his time to conclude
;
and that
resembling the Satsuma wares were made
all
my
no
important works
investigations
in the old capital
up
to a recent date.
Besides the
regular porcelain
of Tokio there
artists
are a
number of men who paint sachi cups (which are made in Seto and Hizen), and who sell these at little stalls. Such men generally paint over the glaze with a
and they It
upon
figure their
full
ultramarine blue colour and gold,
wares and mind their
stalls at
the
same
time.
curious to watch these poor artists, at one time intent
is
and
their painting, at another serving a customer,
other
at
times calmly smoking their pipes while taking care of the
little
portable kilns in which they are firing their few wares.
When way
in use this
of the cottage.
fifteen in width, artist
a
kiln
It
about eighteen inches
is
is
and would to us appear a mere toy
watches over the
firing of his
mother over her sleeping
kiln
generally placed in the door-
little
child.
in
height by
yet the poor
;
wares with the tenderness of
While
he appears to devote himself wholly
his
wares are
and
to his fire
in the
his pipe
;
a customer should appear, he will attend to his wants at
yet
if
the
little stall
which stands
in the front of his house.
In this notice of the ceramic manufactures
I
have tried to
distinguish between the different forms of faience and those of porcelain,
and have spoken of the places
This classification districts
If
is
in
apt to be misleading, for
which each are made. in
most of the pottery
both wares are made.
we
visit
one of the chief potters of Kioto we
shall
find
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
he makes both porcelain, earthen goods, and stone -ware.
that
Thus in
401
that celebrated
man Kiyomidsu Rokubei we
find
engaged
the manufacture of exquisitely finished porcelain teapots, cups,
and
vases,
some of which
some have
are tenderly painted, while " slip "
sprays raised upon them by
—
Others have
pate-sur-pate.^
the rich blue surface which characterises the old Worcester work,
with white sprays also raised
rough objects tiles,
irregular
pavement of
in
in
But
slip.
this
man
makes
also
a coarse yellow earthenware, curious embossed
lumps of clay which he glazes and employs as the
his
garden paths
indeed, there
;
is
scarcely a form of
pottery ware that this manufacturer does not produce.
The same remark
man
applies to Ichi-no-kura, for here one
makes wares resembling those of Banko, as well as blue-and-white porcelain and dark metallic-looking pots, while others are engaged in
manufactures widely different from those which characterise
the district.
No
One man
the character of the wares themselves.
use two or three marks of his master, and the
as his
;
name
in
own
trade name, the trade
is
not aimed
been amused at the pertinacity with which
to those
infallibility
who have
of such stamps.
travelled
in the
which pieces have been made, the
must be
useless, save
have become famous. deceptive imitations
have often
in
potteries at
who made them, or even men who
the case of a few
But even these may be confused with
made
for sale in the
European and American
markets, or with the works of the favourite apprentice
succeeded to the business and imitated his master's
As an
artistic
form which has never been equalled ^
is
has
differ
widely
Greek pottery had a beauty of
from those of ancient Greece.
"
who
style.
manufacture the ceramics of Japan
" Slip
England
only too apparent
names of the
artists in
It is
at, I
many
country and visited the seats
of industry, that the attempt to fix the
their dates,
name
which trade marks are applied,
in
those cases where deception
maintain the
in
sometimes
will
of the district in which he works.
Having seen the manner even
marks than
further trust can be placed in the potters'
in
any other
clay in the form of batter.
2
D
nation.
Beauty
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
402
of line and tenderness of shape characterised the works of both
the Greeks and
But while these peoples produced
Etruscans.
forms of matchless grace, and while the Greeks painted upon their
works ornaments beautiful
simple
form,
in
and
treatment,
in
arranged with the utmost regard to quantities, neither the Greeks
knew anything of the varied and subtle proby which the Japanese give variety to their wares. The Greeks produced no porcelain and variety, even in their earthenware, was most limited, while in Japan the methods of nor the Etruscans
cesses
;
Avork are well-nigh innumerable.
As
beauty of form,
regards
Japanese are
far
must be admitted that the
it
behind the ancient Greeks, and Japanese shapes
Yet
certainly often display quaintness rather than grace.
are in Japan
many
shapes which are beautiful even
with the Greek standard, so there are also
many which
what clumsy, awkward, and what we might others are
Humorous
eccentricities account for
in the pottery of
many
are some-
podgy
call,
bounded by heavy curves instead of
as there
when compared
;
while
lines of beauty.
of the forms found
Japan, while others are explained by reference to
common in the country. As illustrations of forms resulting from the sense may mention certain objects which are before me
the natural objects
I
pot in the form of a frog teapot in
another
the
in the
—
mouth acting
the
of humour,
—
as a tea-
as the spout, another
form of the fingered orange already mentioned,
form of a duck, another
in
the form of a swallow,
while another simulates a portion of a tree stem from which a
branch with flowers protrudes as the spout.
Of
the second class
we have many examples
;
thus, cups in
the form of the lotus leaf are welcome to the Japanese, as the
Nelumbium vases (the
is
Buddha's plant
" spill "
shape)
;
and the prevalence of cylindrical
due
is
to
vessels of daily use are cut from the
necessity have this shape.
the
common
many
of the
stem of the bamboo, and of
But the most characteristic form
pottery of Japan
In glancing round the
the fact that
is
room
in
that of the gourd. in
twenty specimens derived from the
which
I
sit
I
see
more than
bottle, or pilgrim's, gourd,
but
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
403
only include such as have the contraction in the centre,
in these I
like the old hour-glass
we
neck, such as
;
yet the onion-shaped bottle with a long
so often
see
in
Kishiu ware,
undoubtedly
is
derived from another and equally characteristic form of gourd
man
while primitive
has frequently
made
cups from
his drinking
may
portions of the gourd shell, such vessels
and
;
be found
in use at
the present day in Japan, together with earthen pots having forms
Ladles formed by the longitudinal
similar to the natural object. splitting of a long-necked
gourd are also
Before me, in porcelain or earth,
broad gourds, narrow gourds distensions almost of the
and the
large
sion
bottle,
and one
the country.
in
long gourds, short gourds,
lie
gourds with the upper and lower
;
same
size,
gourds with the lower disten-
upper small, and gourds bent
One gourd
manners.
common
is
various
in
a sachi bottle, one a teapot, one a sauce
(or rather half a one) a
ladle
;
while,
if
we were
to include the long-necked bottle, with the one globular bulb,
the
common
and was a bottom portion of a gourd), derived from the gourd, the specimens met
sachi cup (for
amongst the
vessels
it
with would be simply innumerable.
While speaking of the gourd, we may mention that
common
in
:
;
for here
we
find
rude
mere imitations of the carved calabash
some cases the gourd form some vessels may be regarded In
for
is
me
is
somewhat strangely used
bought
in
the
tubular portion a
flat
It in
or hour-glass.
a teapot so shaped, and with the ends
pieces of this gourd-like shape. I
metal vessels which
shells of the district.
as formed chiefly of a
having the sectional form of the gourd before
form
is
similar thing occurs
are
its
by no means peculiar to Japan, for it is equally China and Morocco and even in Central Africa a
pottery ware
in
is
An
made
;
tube Here,
of
flat
earthenware basket which
Sanda district is of this shape. But here the and short, and stands vertically. It has
large
bottom and an arched handle. would be easy
to furnish
many
illustrations of the
which the Japanese have derived the forms of
natural objects
;
but having called attention to the
leave the reader to pursue the inquiry for himself
manner
their wares fact, I
from
must
Could we extend
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
404
our researches to
all
branches of manufacture, and to
such an investigation would have great
interest,
all
countries,
but as
we must
confine our remarks to pottery and to Japan, the inquiry loses
much
of the fascination which
Comparisons,
is
it
it
would otherwise
are odious
said,
manufactures of a country we
may
possess.
yet in considering the
;
reasonably try to estimate their
when a nation has produced such works as command the attention of the world. I must say that in form the Greeks stand pre-eminent, that the Chinese and the Moors true value, especially
perhaps come next, then the
Persians
and Indians, while the
But
in other respects I think
Japanese lack tenderness of shape. that Japanese
works take a
first
place
;
and
cannot help feeling
I
that the best productions of Ota, the finest works of Shiba, and
choicest
the
potter's art,
cups of Satsuma, are
and that some of the
things
later
unsurpassed
the
in
works of Kioto are
fit
for
a place in the best boudoir in the land.
Respecting the manufacture of porcelain and faience something must be said.
may
It
be remembered by those
who
visited
the Philadelphia Exhibition that the Japanese there showed those materials which are spread so widely over the country, and are
used the
in
the pottery manufactures, as clay, kaolin, silex,
official
are told that " in
many
we
instances very good ordinary refractory
materials and fine porcelain clay are found close together. is
In
etc.
catalogue of the Japanese section of this exhibition,
This
the case to a most remarkable degree in the neighbourhood of
the small town of Arita, province of Hizen, the head centre of the porcelain
manufacture
not half a mile at
the
in
in
different places all the
coating of the
craquele,
etc.,
Japan.
embedded
circuit,
in the
rock
materials necessary for the biscuit, for
ware before glazing,
for
the
glaze,
for the
the best being of such good quality that, after being-
powdered and decanted, the finest ware,
—
it
is
used without any further mixture for
the so called egg-shell porcelain.
part of Nippon,^ where granite
mountains,
Within a very limited
diameter, there are found
in the
is
In the central
the principal constituent of the
provinces of Owari, Yamashiro, and the island ^
Japan.
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
405
much
of Awajishima, opposite Hiogo, beds of petuntse, very the
Bohemian
this material
When
material, are to be found.
mixed with
is
silicious
and
like
used for porcelain,
from
feld spathic materials
other places."
This
is
what the Japanese say respecting the materials with
which they fabricate of Awaji,
we
their ceramic wares
but the ordinary wares
;
are told, "consist of a strongly
composed of
kaolin,"
and that they are
"
baked
biscuit, chiefly
glazed with a very fusible
mixture of sand and oxide of lead, which, by an addition of copper oxide or certain naturally-coloured clays, assumes a green, yellow, or brownish-red colour."
comments of
Before making any of manufacture,
I
catalogue their
own
which "
think
as follows
is
The
of the
description
on the processes
manufactures,
porcelain
:
making presents
of porcelain
art
it
my own
well to extract from the Philadelphia
features
which,
of course,
are very similar to those of porcelain manufacturing in
principle,
however, the machinery used
"Whatever may be
is
of a
more
in
Europe
;
primitive kind.
the nature of the raw material, be
kaolin, feldspath, or the peculiar porcelain-stone of Arita,
it
it is
quartz, felsite,
always powdered
These are by means of balancing pounders of a pecuhar construction. composed of long horizontal beams, with a perpendicular cross piece at one end, giving the whole the shape of a hammer, and with a water-trough at the other end. utilised
;
This instrument
is
put up wherever a small stream of water can be
the water running into the trough raises the pounder by over-weight,
and running out
at the
end
in
consequence of the
incline, allows
it
to fall
down
again, with the iron-shod cross piece dropping into a stone mortar, in which the
materials are thus reduced to powder water,
"
;
the latter
is
then
sifted,
mixed with
and decanted.
No
other machinery, such as the quartz or glaze mills of foreign porcelain
and the consequence is that all the material which powdered by the above described pounders amounting is thrown away as waste. often from forty to fifty per cent " The fine powders produced by decanting are carefully mixed and removed manufactories,
cannot be
is
used,
—
sufificiently
—
into flat boxes,
where the water
is
partly drained off through a sand bedding
covered with matting, and partly tapped off from above the deposed clay latter is finally
Long
brought to more consistency by placing
it
;
the
on the warm furnaces.
experience, combined with the good quality of the raw material, enables
the manufacturers to prepare a clay pieces, such as
fit
even for the production of very large
\ases from six to seven feet in height.
These are
chiefly
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
4o6 manufactured
Arita
in
whereas porcelain
;
painted slabs, fireplaces,
tables,
and similar articles, are mostly made in Owari. The throwing and shaping of the clay is done upon the common potter's wheel, which, in the town of Arita (Hizen), consists of a flying wheel and a working disc, twelve or fifteen inches one above the other. These are united by a sort of hollow wooden prism, so as to
form one system of wheels, which
To
fastened in the ground.
wheels
upoh the pointed
resting
is
placed over a vertical round piece of wood
is
much
avoid friction as
By means
porcelain set underneath into the working disc.
workmen
as possible, this system of
by means of a hollow piece of
stick
of this lathe the
in Arita turn out large dishes of three feet in diameter, as well as the
For very heavy and large
so-called egg-shell porcelain, not thicker than paper.
pieces the lathe
" In
all
turned by means of a driving-cord.
is
other provinces but Hizen the lathe
of a moi'e simple and same time the working
is
imperfect construction, the flying wheel being at the disc.
" Moulds are also used, and
gypsum
Exhibition the use of
facturers of different places,
Some
made
for
and
will
Since the Vienna
of ordinary clay.
moulding
most
is
taught to the porcelain manu-
an important progress.
likely effect
made by
of the pieces exhibited at Philadelphia have been
new
the
process.
"
When
the pieces have been sufficiently dried in the open air they are
shaped with sharp iron tools on the same lathe on which the
been done, and are then coated with a very pure white finished ware a better appearance, fine blue colour of the
and
first
throwing has
clay, so as to give the
to bring out with
more
intensity the
After this coating the ware receives
cobalt painting.
the preliminary baking in small kilns built in the open yards of the manu-
The
facturing localities.
afterwards
glazed
composed of a
pieces are then painted with the oxide of cobalt,
the
in
same way
alkali
The
Europe.
in
glaze
feldspathic material, either natural or produced
of different minerals, to which
from the
as
by
is
added a
careful lixiviation.
certain quantity of
The
is
by the mixture
wood ashes
white or
made
ware.
common
For the Celadon the body
ware.
of a mineral different from that which
The
craquele,
etc.,
the
i.e.
kind of porcelain stone the meshes,
is
not
reference to certain peculiar kinds of porcelain, such as
Celadon or the craquele, the materials used are not the same as
the
is
With
freed
proportion of ashes depends on the
place which the pieces have to occupy in the kiln, the heat of which quite uniform.
and
always
;
is
is
used
body of the craquel^,
for the
the same, but the glaze
for the glaze of the white
is
made from
a peculiar
but the nature of the network of cracks, the size of
depend not only upon the thickness of the glaze and of the is baked
white coating underneath, but also on the degree to which the piece before and after glazing. so as to render the cracks "
of a
The
The ware is more distinct.
finally
kilns are of a peculiar construction,
hill, in
rubbed over with Chinese
and are always
built
ink,
on the slope
a line of from four to twenty, according to the importance of the
ART, The base
locality.
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
of each kiln
the foregoing one, so that,
if all
lies
about three
The ground -plan
higher than the base of
feet
them
the kilns were uncovered, the whole of
would present the aspect of terraces formed by a feet high.
407
and wider as they extend up the
trapezoid, the kilns growing wider
each three
the form of a rectangle, or rather of a
in
is
series of platforms,
The
hill.
walls on the four sides of the ground-plan being vertical to the height of a few feet
above the base, gradually form a off in
at
This somewhat complicated shape
all.
when seven
The
feet,
be more easily understood
will
stated that one of the large kilns in Arita has a length of twenty-
is
it
corners of which have been
vault, the
such a way that the upper part of the vault presents no corners
rounded
a depth of eighteen
and a height of
feet,
feet in the centre.
fifteen
by the depth would resemble half an
section
central
with the
ellipse,
principal axis in a vertical position, while the section through the length of the
would be half of an ellipse, with its principal axis in a horizontal position, and raised three or four feet above the ground. The front wall of each kiln, i.e. kiln
the wall facing the lower end of the line of kilns,
pierced on the level of
is
its
by a series of holes eight to twelve inches high, and three to four inches wide and in the opposite wall, which, on account of the trapezoidical groundfloor
;
plan of the kiln,
is
a
longer than the front wall, there
little
is
a second series
of similar holes, but at three feet above the floor, and consequently opening exactly upon the floor of the next kiln.
through the whole line of the
kilns,
corresponding to the draught-holes of the furnaces or fireplaces, but the fuel
purpose a space o m. 70 to kiln, the air-holes of
way
In this
which ends
in
a draught
There are no separate kiln. For this
kiln.
last
thrown directly into the
is
m. wide has been reserved along that wall of the
i
which open immediately upon the
floor,
to
outside by
I
of an opening, o m. 50 high
Through
the side wall of the kiln.
throws dried wood into the that the kiln
The
is
is
separated
about
This separate narrow space communicates with the
m. high.
means
and
fire-clay slabs
from the main part of the kiln by thick perpendicular
30 m. o
established
is
a range of short chimneys,
sometimes
8
this
kiln, three pieces at
m.
and
cm
15 wide,
in length, fires
a time
with
it
all
;
into
;
and, notwithstanding
the required regularity.
current of air passing through the lower kilns reaches the
the holes in the front wall
made
opening the fireman very dexterously
wood through
the flame, deviated by the upright fire-clay slabs,
does not strike the porcelain directly, but follows the vault, and the heat spreads
more equally amongst the objects placed vault
is
purposely
made
in the kiln.
steeper than the side
quently, the latter does not take the straight
produces a sort of whirling
fire,
The opposite
whence the flame line
to
going on, into the following
produces
red-hot by the time that the firing
bricks,
and the
firing
conse-
which takes the objects also from behind. the lower kiln, where the firing
the opening through which the
;
the opposite holes, but
The flame passing through from kiln,
part of the
starts
first
is
sufficient heat to
finished in the
kiln has been
begins in the second one.
fired
first.
is
is
actually
render this latter
At
this
moment
closed up with
fire-
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
4o8 "
By
modern
this
arrangement, the principle of which
is
very similar to that of the
circulating furnaces for burning bricks, the fresh air has to pass through
the kilns that have already been perature,
fired,
departing flame
and reaches the wood with a high tem-
on most favourable conditions, while the
producing combustion
used for heating the next
is
Since each kiln
kilns.
heated
is
by the fire of the foregoing ones before its own firing begins, it profits by an amount of heat which is the greater the farther up its place in the line. This explains why the manufacturers have thought it to be more advantageous to At
construct the kilns of increasing size in following the line upwards. for instance, the lowest kiln
has a length of seven
a height of six feet, whilst the last one
deep, and fifteen feet high. situated at the lowest
barked and dried
The
end of the
in the oven.
twenty-seven feet long, eighteen feet
is
single separate furnace to begin the firing
The
line. It
Arita,
a depth of six feet, and
feet,
may be remarked
is
wood, which has been
fuel is pine
that the firing, even in
more than fourteen hours but it should be borne in mind that they are already red-hot when the firing begins. " The setting of the pieces in the kiln is done with precautions similar to The only difference is those observed in Europe to prevent their distortion. that in general only a small number of pieces are protected by fire-clay boxes the larger kilns, does not generally last
;
or saggers, while the greater part are directly exposed to the
fire
but in this
;
some of the
respect improvements have been lately introduced by
principal
manufacturers. " In order to pre\-ent the dust from falling
surface of the kiln
The
is
made
pieces are arranged upon fire-clay stands,
and placed one upon another
tables,
The upper
is
happen were "
The
necessary to prevent
it
too
the shape of round
in
which a
to a height
man
can easily reach.
kilns are constructed in a
two or three
feet
from caving
it
in,
which would certainly
flat.
When
being extremely cheap.
manner which has the great advantage of is prepared and the side walls erected
the floor
above the ground, a centering
space one or more poles
made
i?
made by
placing within this
of young trees, with the branches cut in such a
The
as to give the upper end the shape of a fork.
corresponds to the height of the vault
Young
the \ault, the inner
half of the large furnaces remains entirely empty, but surplus height
of the vault
way
down from
coated with a glazing mixture before the firing begins.
length of these poles
the place where they are erected.
in
pine-trees are then fastened along the inner side of the walls
by one way
end, then bent over the uprights, and fastened with straw ropes in such a that
Long
the whole centering represents a vaulted strips of
finally,
bamboo
are then tied to the
a sort of liasket-work, leaving only such
building material cannot
broken is
now
network with wide meshes.
main centering, so
fire-bricks, with
fall
A
through.
enough water
placed on the centering.
mixture of
fire-clay,
to give the mixture
The
as to produce,
small interstices that the
powdered, and
sufficient
kiln-builders, using their
cover the centering with this mixture, taking great care to
make
it
plasticity,
hands only, as
compact
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART, as possible.
When
dry, without
entirely
down and has become
the material has settled losing
plasticity, the
its
409
exterior
sufficiently
beaten with heavy
is
wooden mallets in order to harden and to smoothen it. The vault is now solid enough to stand without the centering this is thereupon taken away, and the inside smoothened and hardened with small mallets. When repairs are necessary, the damaged part of the kiln is broken away, and a centering built at the required place in the manner described above whereupon the whole is filled up, this time with fire-bricks and not with the above-mentioned mixture. Thus, after a certain number of repairs in different places, almost the whole of the vault becomes composed of fire-bricks. These kilns are said to last fifteen years, and even the largest do not cost over sixty dollars. Their shape and dimensions vary in the different provinces, the walls being more or less steeply The above description refers to those kilns of Arita which seem to vaulted. ;
;
The
be the most perfect.
kilns used for
baking the porcelain before
glazing-
smaller and always single, each manufacturer
of a similar shape, but
are
having his own kiln on his premises.
But the finishing kilns belong
to
the
community, and are situated here and there on the boundaries of the town or village
each kiln '
The
to over
used only
is
two hundred, and they are
fired in turns, so that
six or eight times a year.
greater part of the articles which are baked in these kilns belong to
the kind called
neath the glaze
'
Sometsuki,' or porcelain decorated with blue paintings under-
;
this is
done with a native cobaltiferous Almost
material imported from China. '
In the town of Arita
they are rented to the different manufacturers.
;
number amounts
their
Another part
Sometsuki.'
is left
the ware
all
ore, or with a
made
for
home
purer use
is
white in order to be decorated on the glaze
with coloured enamels, which have to be baked in peculiar furnaces at a lower
temperature.
This kind of porcelain
mostly for the foreign market.
The
of powdered glass (a sort of
glass
and
flint
is
manufactured chiefly
composed of
portions, for the purpose of giving to each
viz.
The
Hizen, and
silica,
litharge or red lead,
with an addition of white lead or of silver powder in various pro-
nitre),
"
in
chief ingredients of the enamel consist
enamel a proper
fusibility.
colouring oxides to be mixed with the flux are very few in number,
copper, manganese, antimony, red oxide of iron, impure oxide of cobalt
(for the black),
and a
mixed with powdered or borax.
None
sort of smalt
glass,
and
from China
;
finally,
gold for carmine tints
for gilding with a slight addition of white lead
of these enamels are melted beforehand in a crucible, but
the ingredients are mixed by the painter himself and used directly for painting, so that the green, the yellow, the violet, etc., only appear
baked
painters are
decoration.
done "
the
Of
in the muffle.
in
later years foreign
more and more
when
the pieces are
enamels have been used, but the
inclined to return to the original native style of
Porcelain painting, to a
much
smaller extent than in Hizen,
is
Owari, Kioto, and in Yedo, on white Owari ware.
The manner
in
which
European method.
this decoration
In the
first
is
place, the
produced
differs
whole design
is
very
much from
traced in black
4IO
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
•
and the shades, when
lines,
enamels are put on either red, the yellow,
by strokes. The coloured when they are opaque, such as the a thick layer when they are to produce,
at all, are only indicated
layer
in a thin
and the black, or
in
after melting, the effect of coloured glass,
through which the black tracing of
Sometimes relief paintings are produced by first coating the porcelain with a white opaque enamel, which contains no oxide of tin, but is merely a mixture of glass, white lead, and powdered stone, and on which the design
visible.
is
the other colours are then painted. is
finished in one baking
As
Generally speaking, the whole decoration
very seldom
;
it
requires to be baked a second time.
to the character of the Hizen porcelain decoration,
in foreign
markets that
it
is
so well
known
In Owari, Kioto,
needs no special description.
it
Mino, the great bulk of the porcelain consists of blue ware or Sometsuki is the Eraku ware (so named ;
but a remarkable article produced in Kioto
which consists of porcelain painted over with red oxide all kinds of mythological ornaments are applied in
after the inventor),
of iron, on which ground gold.
"
Kaga ware
by the very
decorated in a most characteristic way.
is
fine
It is
distinguished
gold ornamentation, generally on red, sometimes on black
grounds, leaving open
with paintings of fiowers, birds, or personages,
fields
either dressed in red or gold outlines, or painted with transparent enamels of
These
a similar composition, as those used in Hizen.
latter paintings are
characterised by the vigorous tracing of the black outlines under the enamels, and the power with which these latter have been applied. Although the ware in itself is not generally of a
and red
is
very fine quality, this sort of decoration in gold
very rich and most effective.
In later years,
or imported from
when
better white
other places
for in Kaga, specimens, excellent some produced has painters of the one decoration, presenting a happy combination of the painting in red, black, and gold outlines, with the above-mentioned peculiar style of decoration, originated by a
ware has been manufactured
celebrated porcelain-maker of Kioto, called Eraku."
This
is
own
the description which the Japanese give of their
manufactures, and
it
is
so accurate that
it
needs Httle comment.
But with the view of rendering the nature of
mode
of working, better understood,
173,
174, and
175) which
explanation, and
for
these
I
their kilns,
and
their
give illustrations (Figs 172,
may serve to throw light on the I am indebted to Dr. Roritz of
Nagoya.
To me
the description seems likely to mislead in this one
respect, that while
Japanese potteries are usually very small,
account would cause one to suppose that of considerable
size.
In
Hizen
there
are
they are potteries
this
generally
where
a
ART,
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
411
number of men are
are employed, and in Mino and Owari there works which give employment to a score or more of but the great mass of those potteries, from which the
also
potters
;
Fig. 172.
-
Fig. 173.— The
The Pottek's Wheel.
Painter at
his wokk.
celebrated works proceed, have, as workmen, the master and a son, or the master
and an apprentice,
one or two others,
I
or, at
visited sixty -eight
saw a potter's wheel of the description
most, the master and potteries, yet
named by
I
never
the Japanese in
the Philadelphia catalogue.
In a little
paper which
time since,
I
gave
I
some the manner in
read before the Society of Arts this
as a description
of
" In a lovely little which earthen vessels were usually made. was covered with mats, dwelt the potter room, the floor of which .
.
.
One mat
being removed from the
exposed to view
;
but the wheel
is
floor,
a potter's wheel
of the simplest character.
is
It
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
4i:
is
a mere circular stone, of the form of a Cheshire cheese,
level
is
wheel
is
is
uncovered
with the
which
floor,
and works
on a
is
axis
vertical
wood beneath. At one side of the lump of clay. At the other side lacquered, on which the vessels, when shaped, are placed. The operator now kneeling
fixed in a log of
a clean tray bearing a
another tray, often well
the
wheel,
more
or less
of
front
in
and
sitting
back on
his
heels, sets
the
in
motion by
disc
whipping of
it
with the tips
fingers
his
tained in
He now
its
the
till
speed
necessary
at-
is
rotations.
places a piece
upon the wheel
of clay
and gives to
it
form
in
the usual manner, stop-
ping to whip the stone
whenever
it is
that
speed
its
quickened. Fig. 174.
necessary
be
re-
In this
way
he shapes his wares."
Oven.
found
invariably
I
that where excellent work was produced things were on a very and that it was only in those cases where numbers small scale ;
of
common
country or markets)
things were
those
produced
anything
that
made
for
ordinary wares of the
the
(like
the
like a factory
European system
important to remember that a Japanese or other handicraftsman,
may become
or a Turner, and that works bearing
much sought masters
"
are
after
by
by the natives
and
American
existed.
It
is
potter, lacquer -worker,
as famous as a Landseer his
signature will be as
as those of
any of our
"
great
us.
Such men are invariably
lost
in
their art.
They
give them-
ART, up
selves
lovable
;
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
to the production
and whether
do not seem
of the excellent, the beautiful, the
their food
is
of the poorest or the best they
Their whole pride
to care.
41;
in
lies
the production of
meritorious works.
Fir,. 175.
In buying from one of these
— Kii.N.
men
a specimen of his
found that he could not count money, and that he had idea of
by
his wife
much had
in
The buying and
value.
its
and daughter
;
little
consumed
and as the money system had changed
keep pace with the day.
in his
I
or no
was done exclusively
selling
the last twenty years, this poor but skilled
failed to
work
His
life
workman
had been wholly
work.
This was by no means a solitary case
;
and
it
is
only under
we get those grand objects which much value. Whenever these men
similar conditions to these that
both we and the Japanese so part
with a work they are most particular
beautifully
finished
pine -wood box, on
in
placing
it
in
a
which they place their
JAPAN: ITS ARCn/TECTURE,
414
autograph and seal
(red
paper which they again
stamp), and
sign.
in
wrapping the box
None but ordinary works
in
are sent
out without being thus packed.
Happily
for
Japan the personal pride of a workman
great as that of any of our artists or our sculptors.
is
as
ART,
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
CHAPTER
4'
V.
THE METAL MANUFACTURES.
The to
art
of metal casting
is
of great antiquity, and
have been carried to a high state of perfection
period
;
indeed, during the Middle
Ages bronze
it
at
appears
an early
casting, chasing,
engraving, gilding, and the various processes connected with the goldsmith's excelled.
were
art,
This
is
so
perfect
have
they
that
been
never
who have had
at once apparent to those
the
opportunity of studying the old swords with their various ornaments, and the large castings of Ikiddhas and of bells which
be seen
The
may
in the country.
traveller
excellence of
is
astonished at the magnitude as well as the
some of the metal
but in contemplating these works
castings which he meets with
we should always bear
that they resulted from a national interest
in
awakened by the
In mediaeval times the casting of a large
bell,
;
mind
priests.
an image, or a
bronze lantern, was a matter of public concern, and for the work the priests collected offerings of gold ornaments, of copper, and of
other metals.
The Dai-butz at Nara and Kamakura are the largest metal that at Kamakura being now existing in the world
—
castings
forty-seven feet in height, while that at
Nara
half feet from the base to the top of
its
these enormous statues was but, being destroyed
first
during the
seven hundred years since.
is
fifty-three
head.
The
and a
latter
of
erected in the eighth century, civil
wars,
it
was
recast about
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
41
In attempting to produce this enormous casting six failures
were made, and
was only by the seventh
it
Three thousand tons of charcoal are said to have been
achieved.
We
in the operation.
used
are told that the metal used in the
production of this great Dai-butz weighs four hundred and tons,
was
effort that success
and that
it is
fifty
an alloy consisting of about one part of gold,
four parts mercury, thirty-four parts
tin,
and nineteen hundred
and seventy-two parts of copper. Here, as in Europe,
much
of the best work of the Middle
where religious enthusiasm work which was ultimately fostered through the baronial system, when the skilled workman became
Ages was achieved
in the monasteries,
zeal led to that loving
and holy
the servant of a feudal lord.
but
It
was
it
was not
(the
in the
eighth century that the
;
end of the twelfth century that Yoritoma
until the
Shogun)
first
Mikado became secluded
the dual system of government
initiated
leaving Kioto (with the officers of the internal revenue) for
b)^
Kama-
and establishing those conditions which led to the feudal Although the Mikado remained at Kioto, Kamakura system. kura,
actual seat of Government, and
became the toma's
governors of provinces civil officers
;
now made
but before this time the governors were
The people were next taxed for the provincial troops, who were subject to Yoritoma's military rulers who were appointed as co-rulers of
of the Court.
support of the relations, or to
the provinces with the Court military
was subject to Yori-
Five members of Yoritoma's family were
will.
officials.
supremacy which made him
The power
of this mighty ruler
conquest which he achieved
in
Yoritoma thus gained a
practically the ruler of Japan.
became increased through
the north of the country.
a
By way
of a reward for this service he was received in great state by the
Mikado which
I
at
Kioto
;
had valuable presents given
inspected at
Kamakura and
to him,
many
Nara, where they are
of
still
preserved, and was appointed to the important office of subjugat-
ing barbarians.
The more
military governors of the provinces gradually
became
came an
insolent
powerful, and with the increase of power
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
417
and overbearing manner, which led to the Court governors of provinces being entirely superseded by military authority.
Thus
became feudal lords, each of whom number of armed men but all were subject chief of the barons, who held a power from the
the military rulers gradually
commanded
a certain
to the Shogun, or
;
Mikado by which he could reward
acts of prowess, or
any conduct
which he personally approved.
Thus was in
the Buddhist monasteries, where the quiet
in
leisure necessary to the production of great art
alone be enjoyed.
by the military than a
to foster art
Yoritoma handicraftsmen
Prior to the time of
were found chiefly
and
much
established a system which did
the country.
works could
But no sooner was the feudal system established,
rulers of provinces
becoming Barons or Daimios,
Buddhist monks took place, when
fierce persecution of the
The workmen
the power of the priesthood was to a great extent broken.
newly established
who
rulers of provinces
now sought
skilled
could manufacture objects such as they themselves desired
and which might serve
to use,
part of the household of the lord for
These workmen became
whom
clothed as the servants of the household
and received presents or favours
;
tion of
;
;
They
they were fed and
they were allowed to
in return for
the produc-
works having special merit.
work of Japan was done enjoyed by artists working work had formerly been best the
For seven centuries the best under the conditions of under the baronial
done
they wrought.
palace
lived in the precincts of the baronial
marry
worthy of the accept-
as presents
ance of the Shogun or other barons.
rest
and
rule, just as
in the seclusion of the
art
leisure
monastery.
Metal -work, especially, prospered during the
earlier part
of
the feudal period, for not only were good sword-blades necessary
during the periods of
Daimio
civil
war, but officers of rank, as well as the
himself, sought to have their
sword and armour adorned
with metal ornaments of marked beauty. these enrichments, both as
On
the perfection of
regards workmanship and
art,
they
especially prided themselves.
Our
first
acquaintance with Japanese manufactures revealed 2
E
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
4i8
But
their skill in the casting of metals.
was the Vienna Exhi-
it
bition
which showed what supreme casters of metal the Japanese
are.
In this exhibition was shown a casting of a flight of birds,
which
may now be The
burgh.
seen in the Archaeological are so
birds
arranged
Tokio manufacturer of remarkable know,
this
Edin-
at
group forms a
This casting
separate the one from the other.
far as I
Museum
the
Yet the birds composing
continuous casting.
So
that
almost
are
it
the work of a
is
ability.
was the most notable work ever produced
by the flowing of molten metal into a mould. But even this marvellous work was surpassed by a peacock sent to the last Paris International Exhibition by the same wonderful metal founder. This peacock, which was of
unspread
tail,
but
many
were distinctly rendered
feathers,
had a drooping and
size,
life
of the feathers, and even barbs of the
while in
;
many
cases the barbs
were separate the one from the other, and the individual feathers
more or
less distinct.
Up
to the
time when this marvellous casting was brought
before the eyes of Europe nothing approaching
produced,
believe,
I
by any people or
in
it
had ever been
any time
;
but before
the close of the exhibition in which this was shown, Messieur
Barbedien of Paris added some truly remarkable works to his exhibit, which, while smaller than the difficult
his
But were
of production.
work
I
Japanese
to guess
bird,
were equally
how he accomplished
should say that he had learned the Japanese secret,
and adopted
While
I
in
their
method of work.
Tokio
I
had the opportunity of seeing the
little
foundry of the great metal caster who sent these marvellous objects to Europe,
and he most kindly showed
me how
he achieved his
results.
The
great peculiarity which
noticed in the Japanese
I
made
consisted in a fresh model being
Thus,
if fifty
kettles were to be
for
method
every work produced.
formed of the same pattern, not
only would a fresh sand mould be
made
for
each particular
kettle,
but a fresh model would be prepared for the making of each mould. All must
now be
familiar with those
beautiful iron
kettles
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
which have become so fashionable
419
for the afternoon tea-drinking,
and which frequently have a flower or some other device jutting These are of Japanese out from the side in almost full relief manufacture, and while the body is
of iron the
and the handle
lid
are generally of bronze (Fig.
To
wood
shape of
is
its
on
whether
ornament simple
or
most
in
wax
separate
pro-
" core,"
this
work,
modelled
be is
to
is
finished
the
it
elaborate,
turned to the
body, and the spray,
whatever
appear
on
J 6).
produce such a kettle a
block of
or
i
a
of
modelling being neces-
sary to
the production of each
cess
particular kettle. It will
be seen that this pro-
although
cess,
Fig. 176.— Cast-Iron Kettle, with lid and handle of bronze.
gives
laborious,
variety and interest to the works produced
methods must seem of labour, lose
by
I
;
and while
all
yet think that the Japanese gain as
much
as they
their processes.
Nothing
is
remove from man a true perception
so calculated to
The
of art qualities as seeing hundreds of works precisely alike.
mere
fact
of seeing a number of duplicates of the one thing, how-
ever meritorious each
may
ciation of the beautiful. dislike,
such
to us to involve an unnecessary expenditure
though the work
No one would of Landseer's
"
be,
is
itself
calculated to
weaken our appre-
multiplication of examples inspires
The
may
be worthy of admiration.
like to see his walls
covered with
Last Mourner," Herbert's
"
Man
fifty
copies
of Sorrows," or
Derby Day," even if each one were painted by the same So is it with reproductions of art objects of any kind. master. There is something about numbers which in some way detracts Frith's "
from our appreciation of the object multiplied.
The Japanese method
of
casting
gives
a
certain
amount
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE.
420
of variety in the
And
alike.
work produced,
each
has
no two objects are
for
character
special
a
precisely-
from the
resulting
personal work of the modeller.
which causes those who have
It is this quality
art appreciation
to prefer Japanese kettles to anything that the black countries
have yet produced.
Whether the work be
a rough piece of wood, to which shape
wax and
a mixture of
other fragile parts the slips as
resin
The model being
;
but
is
made on
first
given by the addition of
is
case of long feathers or
in the
wax would
would be needed
model
large or small a
bamboo
enclose such wires or
for their support.
prepared, a thin batter
formed by mixing
is
a sand of exceeding fineness, and almost clay -like in character,
This
with water.
manner
as to coat
model
carefully spread over the
is
all over.
it
dry a second coating
given,
is
When
these are dry sand
is
all
by the semi-fluid
filled
the whole appears as one shapeless but solid mass.
till
The next
process consists in removing the model with
surrounding sand to sufficient
is
When
around the mass and pressed into
piled
the spaces which have been but partly
heat
If necessary, other
placed over the whole or part of the work.
are
matter,
this batter
and then another, but now the
batters are formed of a slightly coarser sand.
coats
such a
But care must be taken to leave
no air-bubbles between the wax and the sand. is
in
a sort
to melt
of kiln
necessarily been
left
time of casting.
Through the
air
holes
is
to
Certain holes have
exist.
through which the metal
and also holes by which
its
which the
and evaporate the wax, and even
consume the wooden core should any to the mould,
or " muffle," in
to be introduced
is
to be expelled at the
any dust or ash can be
removed from the mould.
By
process
this
of
melting
the
and
wax,
evaporating
it
through the body of the sand, a firmness seems to be produced in the
mould which our moulds
model
is
this end.
first
But the
fact that the
coated with semi-fluid matter does
It is
in a vessel,
lack.
well
known
that
if
much
a pint of fine sand
much water may be added
to
it
wax
to attain is
placed
with the result of
ART,
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
diminishing, rather than increasing,
its
and
air,
owing to
it is
this fact that
Particles of matter
bulk.
adhere more closely together when floated
we
in
water than when
are able to
being floated
for the particles of vegetable fibre,
421
in
make
in
paper,
medium,
this
are brought into close contact and entangle themselves together.
had no opportunity while
I
process of casting carried on,
and moulds
workmen own.
I
Japan of seeing the actual
in
only saw the making of models
but from the explanations given to
;
seemed
it
to differ in
no
essential
was, however, told that the moulds were
I
me by
made hot
the fluid metal was poured into them, so as to prevent
This
while flowing through fine ducts.
know
I
its
of could such work as the
by no other method
tail
of the great peacock already mentioned be effected.
Anything analogous Japan, and
The
was known.
of "under -cut"
moulds " I never saw in method of working nothing
to our " piece
informed that of
v/as
I
I
before
chilling
think highly probable,
for
that
various
particular from our
this
case
work
is
met by their wax models. is
a cast-iron
hibachi with
much under-
Fig.
177
cut work.
one instance
In
saw a
kettle, the
was cover-
half of which
with
ed
I
upper
little
rounded
eminences,
closely
ranged
geometrical
in
disposition.
ar-
The mould
V
was, in this case, formed Fig. 177.
in
two
and
a
wooden
parts,
lower,
an upper
upon
a
The upper
core.
Fig. 178.
Cast-Iron Hibachi or Fire-Holder.
_ half of the
mould having been separated
from the lower, the end of a small iron tool, with rounded point (Fig. 178), was pressed into the sand wherever an eminence was wanted and while these indentations of the mould were ;
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
422
arranged
almost mathematical accuracy,
with
— row
row-
after
mould was
being so placed that when the entire half of the
covered with these depressions those spiral lines appeared which are always visible surface,
—
yet this
when dots are regularly arranged on a globose work of " pitting " the mould was accomplished
simply by eye, and without the aid of any
The
casting of kettles
many
Tokio, whence with gold and
is
setting out " whatever.
carried on chiefly in the district of
are taken to
silver, for in
"
Osaka
no country
in
or Kioto to be inlaid
the world has damascen-
The
ing been carried to such perfection as in Japan.
work
finest
of India, Persia, Venice, and the Peninsula being entirely surpassed,
both as regards excellence of workmanship
by many of the Japanese productions. work occurs where gold is inlaid in certain
and perfection of
The
detail,
iron or steel
The
;
but the Japanese inlay
and not
alloys,
in these latter
metals
in
also.
processes employed for the enrichment of metal-work in
Japan are more numerous than case
best of this
small
of
unknown
to
any other country, and
in
metal -work
objects
is
carried
to
a
in the
perfection
any other people.
Damascening, chasing, hammering, inlaying, and combining metals are means by which they achieve careful use of in
"
textures
so far as
while
I
results.
In bold
hammered
iron alone,
know, has Japan been beaten by other nations
has produced
it
by the
but repousse woxV has been practised
;"
Japan with magnificent
effects, as well as
grand
nail-heads
(Fig.
36)
;
but
and good
some of the iron -work Germany wrought during the Middle Ages like that which may still be seen on the old houses
hinges,
—
near the cathedral at Frankfort-on-the-Main
—
is
better than
any
work in Japan. With the exception of the nature of the alloys used, and of the means by which colour is given to metals, the metal manufactures are chiefly carried on in a manner similar to that of other similar
countries.
We tail "
here find true damascening.
cut being
into this cut.
made
in
This work
metal, is
"
This results from a
dove-
and by a wire being hammered
effected in the following
way
:
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART, By mered
the aid of a
The same
tool
179,
now tapped
and
2)
then
other (Fig. 179, to
chisel-like tool (Fig.
make
is
1
79, 1) which
formed with nearly
with a
hammer
ham-
vertical sides.
run along,
is
is
first
one
groove (Fig.
of the
side
little
into the metal, a groove
423
3),
the
Mm,
wm
4:
so as
the base of the
Ti'
groove wider than the cut
on the surface
(Fig. 179,
This process always
4).
causes the groove to have
a raised and
curved is
edge.
slightly
This edge
now rubbed down,
the result, as seen
than
it
reFig. 179.
with
from the surface, of making
previously was (Fig, 179,
5).
A
much narrower
it
wire of gold,
silver,
or
some other metal softer than the body in which it is to be inlaid, is hammered into this " dove-tail " groove. The whole is then ground down, and the
inlaid wire appears as a gold
line
on the
surface.
By
method most
this
ments are produced
some specimens of
write,
and complicated orna-
patterns consisting of
and even flowers are formed.
scroll-work, I
;
beautiful effects
for
and beautiful than anything
The Japanese
this I
I
is
in
the
manner
in
is
method of pro-
one of the richest
generally supposed to result from
a true method of damascening.
made
have before me, as
have seen from any other nation.
ducing that elaborate Kuftgari work, which
is
lines,
work which are more minute
are also acquainted with the
of Indian manufactures, and
straight
But
this
is
not the case, for
which the Japanese produce
it
their
cheaper work, and results from those parts of the surface of the metal, which are to be covered with gold, being scratching,
paper,
made rough by
and by sheet-gold, of the thickness of ordinary writing-
being rubbed
on to
this
scratched
work, to
adheres, the rough surface being sufficient to secure
its
which
it
adhesion.
Lines, less in thickness than the shank of an ordinary pin, can
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
424
be formed with great accuracy by this method
masses of gold and of
silver
which we frequently meet with on
Japanese bronzes, and which look in
reality only pieces
and those large
;
lumps of
like
solid metal, are
of bronze covered with a sheet of gold or
silver thus attached.
we not unfrequently
In Japanese metal-work of enamel introduced.
by the
their places
These are
lump
or devices out of a solid
due
it
is
results
to the mixture of various metals I
have before
me
undulated surface
;
button
;
methods of production, and
The
and has
its
moon appearing of inlaid
little bit
Here
is
Here
body formed of
silver,
is
while
;
(it is
with is
moon
the
have been
on one leg a in
low
relief),
eye (which
its
its
greatly
another iron
tree
tree stands
stork protrudes from the iron disc
no
is
legs are of gold.
its
a clasp, two and a half inches long by three-quarters of in width,
which has twenty-two
formed of white metal with gold little
water
in the
silver.
under the
work
little
longer than the eye of a very fine needle) and
an inch
one work.
as water
as well
cut,
but the interest of this
inlaid in fine gold lines, while stork.
in the
which a few sprays of some drooping
in
cut into
is
a sort of iron button on which one or two
increased by the reflected
being formed of a
which
but the choicest effects are
and alloys
bamboo have been
of
from the cutting of forms
or plate of metal,
fixed in the bronze
to the absence of all mechanical
sprays
prepared, and then held in
first
" dove-tail " cut.
Much Japanese metal-work form after
find small plaques
metallic alloy,
and each
the solid mass by so
leaf appears to
many
clean
The dense mass
centres.
leaves on which these flowers rest
cuts.
daisy-like flowers
little
is
of
formed of some dark
have been chiselled from
Here
is
a
little
chased
bead, about half an inch square, ornamented with flowers and
an insect
;
but interest
gold on the insect's yellow metal while has a
fruit
is
imparted to the work by a touch of
neck, and all
else
is
by one flower-bud being white.
Here
is
in
this
a brooch which
resembling that of the winter cherry boldly chiselled
out of white metal, but through some
little
openings
which represent decay, a red substance appears
in the fruit,
like coral, while
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART, some of the
leaves are white, others black (being formed of an
alloy into the composition of which
antimony largely
enters),
and
brown of tea-urn bronze.
others the rich
Here
425
a
little
gourd-like bottle formed of iron, but in this
iron are inlaid
little
curved and irregularly arranged lines of gold.
There
is
no pattern on the
is
through
interesting
Here, too, its
is
is
rendered
method of mixing the metals.
another gourd-like bottle formed of brass, but with
surface roughened
some
object, but the surface
this curious
by
little
irregular
similar metal protruding from
rounded lumps of zinc or
it.
have also seen curious convoluted surfaces, formed by a
I
number of
thin layers of various metals brazed together
metals of the
compound
on the surface
in
waved
subsequent grinding down,
its
1
lines.
much
manufacture has
but the
been removed
the
town of Hiroshima
the
in
80),
all
sheet appear
Repousse work was formerly
(Fig.
a thick
Then, by the irregular hammering and
sheet has been formed.
bulging of this sheet, and
practised
till
Osaka, where the de-
to
scendants of the old Hiroshima metal-
workers
work
is
still
made
also
The
chiefly live
finest
seen of this
in
but repousse
;
Kioto and Tokio.
specimens that
particular
work
property of Mr. Mounsey.^ I
have
I
are
the
Curiously,
have never seen any other specimens
similar to
He
these.
has a bowl
in
white metal, probably in white copper (called
by the Japanese
tiitenagiie),
which has a dragon hammered up on its
interior surface with almost inimi-
table
works seen.
skill.
in
It
is
repousse
one of the that
I
finest
have ever
Fig. 180.
Bronze Hiroshima Candlestick.
Mr. Mounsey has also a pair
With much sorrow
I
learn of this gentleman's death while
my book
is
in the press.
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
426
of vases, about two feet in height, surrounded by nimbused saints,
and robes treated with a
crisp conventionality, equalling, if not
surpassing, any mediaeval or early renaissance
There
to us.
is
about these works a
"
work
breadth
preserved
still
of treatment,
"
a simplicity of execution, and a boldness of design, which,
when
mingled with a perfect understanding of the method by which the design has been produced, stamp I
cannot but know the
"
them
as of great excellence.
Milton Shield," the other great works
of our Elkington, and the products of the attelier of Messieur
thought,
museums
York, as well as the
of Europe; yet, after calm
doubt whether any greater works exist than those of
I
which Mr. Mounsey these works
and that
New
and of Tiffany of
Christofle of Paris,
objects preserved in the great
I
I
the
is
happy
have been told that
I
Since
possessor.
I
first
saw
have objects of a similar kind,
have either had these works of Mr. Mounsey copied,
or have succeeded, through seeing them, in possessing myself of like treasures.
This
is
another instance of the fact which so often
comes before me, that others know so much more of me than I myself know. Were I speaking according to the best of my knowledge and
belief, I
should say that the only things of the kind
I
have ever seen are the magnificent, and perhaps unequalled, works
which Mr. Mounsey managed to pick up while in Japan but as gentlemen have stated that I also have received like works from o ;
Japan,
I
suppose
somewhere amidst
I
must be
my many
can positively say, that I
know, Mr, Mounsey
I is
blind,
and that they are hidden
specimens of oriental
have never seen them
;
and
This
art.
I
that, so far as
the possessor of works in repousse which
are both unique and priceless. I
saw the silversmith
to the
emperor (Mikado)
hammering up beautiful forms when in his company was his grand very old man) and his spectacles (Fig. teapot,
;
at
work on a
but what struck old
happy
me most
face (he
was a
i8i).
Hiroshima bronze-work attained a celebrity which deserved, and which will increase as time advances.
It
it
richly
resulted
from the work of the hammer, and from a simple method of inlaying.
The
vessel itself
was of copper-coloured bronze, whether
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
and each specimen bore the marks of the modern frying-pan. Silver inlaid sprays, bordered But marks, gave relief to the surface (Fig. 182).
box, tazza, or tray
hammer,
like a
by sunk
tool
;
Hiroshima work was also characterised by a
of
school of
seam
Hiroshima bronze affords a
a).
individuality
work and
hammered bronze
refined
Hiroshima Bronze Tazia,
would take many printed pages
specialties of
and no better
;
Fig. 182.
Fig. 181.
and
the metal
exists than that of Hiroshima.
His Spect.'\cles.
It
in
fine illustration of
feeling
art
embossed metal
little
clasps, which overlaid every crack, handle, or
(Fig. 182,
427
enumerate the excellences
to
Japanese metal-work
inlaid with silver.
;
the task, therefore, must
The wood-carver, the enameller, the weaver, and others have an equal demand on my space, which
not be attempted. the printer, I
must divide
The the
before
I
can amongst
all.
great charm in Japanese metal work, as in most of their
arts, consists
at
as well as
in
the variety and delicacy, the poetical feeling, and
same time the boldness, displayed
me
a metal netsuki on which
I
in
I
it.
have here
find a butterfly, a
moth,
a dragon-fly, a gnat, beetles, a bee, grass, leafage, and flowers
innumerable. is
conveyed.
Thus the thought of summer, In
an
illustration
reflected,
and here the
already given,
I
and beauty have spoken
water
in
which the moon
interest centres
in
the sheen of the
of the bamboo drooping over
was
life,
the
reflected orb of night, while the very attitude of the stork, stand-
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
428
ing under the golden branches of a weeping
tree,
removes the
The
bird
is
netsuki from a mere mechanical work.
thinking
and even
;
some time
its
thoughts can be divined.
since this bird last partook of food,
become conscious of the sustenance.
It
fact that
stands on one
it
moment
tribe in the adjacent waters
No
it
shall
further
its
should seek, and for
it
mind which of the finny
choose for
We
colour in metal compositions.
its
evening meal.
realised
kettles,
the
fact
make
and iron grates
that
steel
fenders, copper
but
we have never
;
by producing
metallic
combining these with pure metals, a world of colour
We
has just
it
people but the Japanese have understood the value of
coal-skuttles, tin fully
and
contemplative mood, medi-
leg, in
made up
has scarcely
it
evidently
shortly need
will
tating on the nature of the meal which
the
obviously
It is
have also never known the value of reflected
to metal compositions.
copper to another plaque of
tin
and when various
If light
many
to another
all
metals,
the
effects
times it
reflected
it
is
intense
by
and
open to
us.
light in relation
from one sheet of red,
becomes an earth-green produced
considered,
is
is
alloys,
is
light,
we have open
if
from one
(terra vert),
reflected
by the
to us an
infinite
resource of polychromatic harmony.
The Japanese have more nearly achieved the production of harmony in metals than any other people and in many their works we see gold, silver, copper, zinc, black-metal, tea-urn
colour of
;
bronze, green bronze, and other metals and alloys brought together;
and not only brought together, but so arranged that are brightened
by
reflected lights,
their colours
and brought into harmony by
skilful juxtaposition.
We are lence,
and
harmony
certainly in the very infancy of our
knowledge of metal-
Chilleney's cups are masterpieces of manipulative excel-
working.
their art qualities are also great in
;
but there
anything that Chilleney ever produced.
is
no colour
What
are
gold and silver but vehicles for the production of the beautiful
?
and cannot tenderness of shape, delicacy of form, and careful manipulation find expression also in copper, iron, tin, and lead ?
Are not
these, then, also vehicles for the
conveyance of beautiful
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
thought and refinement of mind
Japanese alone, of
certainly they are
?
civilised nations,
all
429
understand
and the
;
how
to
bine metals so that they shall express form, and at the
time combine to produce colour harmonies.
com-
same
In their combination
of metals they express an understanding and knowledge of the of
capabilities
materials
than
greater
that
of any
European
people.
One
other
connected
point
Japanese
with
metal -work
is
worthy of most careful consideration, namely, the various textures
We
given to metals.
are too fond of bright surfaces, and not
unfrequently prefer glitter to repose is
They
vulgar. to
districts
but to the Japanese glitter
a tale of a servant coming from the rural
tell
Tokio, where she entered the service of some disIn her
tinguished family. teapot,
;
new abode she discovered a
which was beautifully oxydised and subdued
To
which she at once proceeded to brighten. tale
has a point which
respectability of polishing,
the
I
their
am
the Japanese this
not so striking to us, for to them the whole
is
article
was
removed by
become an object of absolute
process
this
and what was a work worthy of high
had, by her labour,
silver
colour,
in
of
appreciation
vulgarity.
sure that the Japanese are right in seeking to give to
works
in
metal
such textures as
will
render their forms
apparent, and
make
the ornaments which they bear prominent
by
Many
of their works have a
contrast.
powder-like grain, and from
what smooth
this
"
toothed
"
or gun-
an ornament, having a some-
surface, frequently stands out.
But the number of
various textures given to the surfaces of metals by the Japanese is
almost endless.
The Japanese
are the only perfect metal-workers which the
world has yet produced, for they are the only people who do not think of the material, and regard the effect produced as of greater
moment
than the metal employed.
gold, silver,
things of beauty as the other,
To them
iron, zinc,
bismuth,
and copper, are only so many materials with which
if
may
be produced, and the one
perfect appropriateness
of the material, and
if
is
is
as acceptable
seen in the application
the result produced be
satisfactory
and
JAPAN
430
So long
beautiful.
and
insist
as
:
ITS ARCHITECTURE,
we value
upon purchasing
the material rather than the
art objects
art,
by the ounce, we can never
Whoever heard of music being dealt Fancy paying for an oratorio by measured quantities.
attain to true knowledge.
out in
the length of time taken up in
recital, or
its
purchasing a picture
Yet if a silver teapot is purchased its weight is by the yard demanded, as though the material were not altogether insignificant when compared with the knowledge and skill expended on its !
production.
been formed by a
If a teapot has
man who
knowledge, and who has simply expended upon
art
many
so
hours of labour, then
it
is
its
production
right to determine both the
value of the labourer's time and the cost of the material the
work be
beautiful,
knowledge and
and
refinement
if
it
of an
has no
;
but
if
conveys to the beholder the educated
artist,
then
it
is
its value as though the material of which composed were of greater worth than the amount of life, thought, and painstaking care expended upon its production.
ridiculous to estimate it
is
ART,
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
CHAPTER
431
VI.
ON THE MEANS BY WHICH FABRICS RECEIVE PATTERN. Processes in zvJiich the effect produced results
The
from
processes of printing on fabrics, and the
figures are
produced on both cottons and
the loom, are
somewhat various
in
silks,
the use of dyes.
means by which without the aid of
With the simple methods
Japan.
of block printing they are perfectly familiar, but of those processes
which are mere modifications of our own
methods which
I
am
I
need not speak.
The
about to describe are those by which the
greater portion of Japanese fabrics receive their figure.
Japanese towels, as
have before
I
cloth or calico, about three feet in
said, are strips of a
common
length by one foot in width,
which always bear some simple pattern or curious device, and while they sometimes vary in colour, almost nineteen out of twenty are of blue with a white figure.
All
etc.,
183), cesses
seem to
is
first
be
such as towels, coolies' dresses (Fig. figured
by one of the following pro-
method
consists in preparing
while the other has the pattern which
it.
two blocks, the one of
simply a heavy piece of wood with a perfectly smooth
cloth cut into
upon
fabrics,
:
The which face,
common
its
From
surface,
—
the pattern
is
is
to be given to the
thus wrought in intaglio
the deeper portions of the sunken figures holes
are bored through the block to the outer surface, where they are
enlarged into funnel-shaped tubes.
fAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
432
In order that the fabric be figured
smooth
surface of the plain block, as
figured block
now
is
inverted
Fig. 183.
The
circular device
surfaces of the plain so as
to
possible,
and
table
thus the fabric
Printed Dress df a is
stretched over the
is
lies
this the
between the
Choi.ie.
the bad^e of the master
and figured wood.
upon
;
whom
he serves.
Pressure
is
now employed
bring the surfaces of the blocks as near together as
when a dye
is
poured through the funnel-shaped holes,
thus brought in contact with the fabric wherever the block
is
has been hollowed. saturated with the dye
poured off
fluid
;
it
upon a
In
a
few seconds the fabric has become
when the blocks
and thus the
;
are inverted,
all
the spare
fabric has received pattern, for the
pressure was sufficient to prevent the
"
running
"
of the dye, and
thus the obliteration of the figure.
some
In
cases a
dyed
fabric receives a white pattern
modification of this process, in which a
which
fluid
in
will
a dyed cloth,
in this
way
that
Although on cloth but
I
works
it
I
destroy or is
discharge
"
weak acid, or some other the dye already existing
poured through the holes
many
in
the block.
It is
of the towels are figured.
have described
this
method of producing patterns
by no means unknown in our own manufactures it is now almost abandoned in our calico printbeing, however, one of the simple processes by which
is
believe that It
"
by a
;
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART, cottons
are
mention
it.
figured
Japan,
in
have
I
Another process by which cotton
common
of using a I
by
84), but
paint tern
is
desirable
fabrics receive pattern
is
to
that
formed of lacquered paper (Fig. simple means two kinds of effect are produced.
this
simpl\'
is
dye being used instead of
while in the other case the pat-
;
it
stencil plate
In the one case the pattern stencilled, a
thought
433
stencilled with a kind
of paste,
or " resist " (a substance that
protects
,
^
^
=
=
^
^S^'^^^^-^^'^^l^^g
^^^
'^H *
^^^i::
^^
I
^*v
|
^p ^p
|
mersed in a dye vat, and then washed, by which processes the ground of the
^p'
|
^P^
1
and then the
^p: ^*^
when brought in conwith the latter). Whenever the
cloth from dye tact
pattern " resist "
cloth
upon the
placed
is
the
cloth
afterwards
is
receives colour,
first
fabric
in
im-
" resist " is
washed away, leaving a white „„4-4-„ „ „ pattern upon a coloured ground. 1
There
in
another
is
the
modification
following roundabout
figure
little
1
by which work
process,
this
1
—say
—has
a leaf
of
1
i '^
-
-
-
-
Stencil formed of lacquered paper. The dark tint shows
Fig. 184.
the paper, and the white lines the
openings cut
in
it,
mil
size.
done
is
Let us sujDpose that a
manner.
be distributed
to
in
green colour
over the surface of a fabric, a thing which could obviously be
done by the use of a small green colour.
little
stencil
plate and
a brush with
a
But the Japanese have a labour-expending
process (not a labour saving-method) by which they achieve this result. size,
in
They
cut a series of leaves,
all
of the
same shape and
paper, and instead of using the sheets from which the
leaves have been cut as so
many
stencil
plates,
they take these
paper leaves themselves and arrange them upon the cloth
manner
Now
required.
holding a leaf with a finger of the
hand, and with a sort of trowel quantity buried, as
Leaf
of
resist,
well
after leaf
as is
in
they so spread the
covered
in the
cloth in
the
left
the right, on which rests a that
the
leaf
intervening between
the
leaves.
this
resist
is
same manner, care being taken
2 F
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
434
the " resist
that
Each the
leaf,
fabric
"
does not get under the edges of the paper.
which
is
now
is
just visible through the " resist
covered,
hence at these particular places the fabric is
now
with which
"
up by a needle point
picked
is
The
clean.
is
dried, the fabric
;
" resist
dipped
is
green dye vat, by w^hich the
in a
assume their colour.
leaf-like spaces
The
cloth
now exposed
is
steaming process which
and
to us,
iliar
thus the resist
have a
is
is
series of
to the
so fam-
is
then washed
;
removed, and we
green leaves figur-
ing a white surface.
185
Fig.
gives a copy of a dragon cut in
paper which Fk;.
Japan
Paper Dragon.
I
just
We such as
am
I
in the
silk crapes, receive their patterns,
any way analogous
aware,
I
feel
what
I
Now an
have already said briefly
as to the
artist,
I
means of
who draws
were designing an
can
it
I
I
but as
most
it
The
far
difficult,
and less
paper read some
but there
could not
I
work.
figuring fabrics, the silk
the pattern upon
am now
fabrics,
we have
have more or
in a
;
in the present
historical cartoon.
by the process which in
the task of describing
fully as
leaf
Japanese method, so
time since before the Society of Arts
go into matters so to
to the
whole of these descriptions of processes
to repeat little
in
and
in
of.
must now consider the means by which expensive silks
no process as
manner of the
the
in
spoken
saw used while
I
is
first
as carefully as
given if
he
pieces of silk figured
describing, are about forty feet
length by twelve inches in width, and on the entire fabric the
artist places either
a varying or a repeating pattern as
is
required.
This pattern he draws with a preparation of indigo, which can readily be
removed from the
fabric
by washing
;
gives outline but adds depth, shade, or whatever
and he not only
may
enable him
to produce a desired effect.
Thus, at the outset, the whole pattern
is
drawn by hand
(Fig.
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART, I
and
86),
this
we should thhik
figure to a fabric
work
is
only
;
now
Fig. i86.
but
a sufficiently costly
the process which
in
in its first stage of
— Painting
we
435
mode
of giving
are considering the
production.
the Design on the Fabric.
After a native drawing.
The artist having finished his work hands the fabric to a workman who has prepared a material of a most tenacious and ductile nature a sort of glutinous bird-lime. This mucous
—
matter he forms by boiling the
finest possible rice-flour
glutinous matter he
warms
a kind of putty knife, but
warm
with lime
Having previously prepared
water of a particular strength.
and rubs
it
slightly,
it
appears to
A
indiarubber would be.
me
it
this
on a board with
as difficult to rub as
piece of this bird-lime about the
wooden point or skewer, and a portion of the fabric is stretched flat by bowed Thus all is ready for pieces of cane being placed beneath it. size
of a small pea
with the that
the
placed on the end of a
Holding the stretched
work.
it
is
may
little
hand under the
left
fabric over a small
cloth, so as to
raise
charcoal
fire,
any portion of
be necessary, and with the point of wood, on which
ball
is
of plastic matter, in the other hand, the operator
begins by touching the fabric at some point of the pattern, say
mucous ball, which at once adheres mucus is now drawn to some little
at the base of a leaf, with the
to the cloth.
The
ball
of
distance from the surface of the fabric, say a foot, but betw^een
the
fabric
and the
mucus, for so ductile
ball is
there
now
intervenes a thread of this
the material, and so sticky, that
it
will
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
436
adhere to anything, and draw out to a thread some yards
By
length without breaking. right hand, in is
held,
when
which the wooden point supporting the
and by the middle finger of the
left
hand
necessary, a thread of the plastic matter
formed, and
movements
certain dexterous
is
as constantly
to the pattern (Fig,
i
87,
dropped upon the
With
A).
is
in
of the
plastic matter
raising the cloth
being constantly
fabric as an outline
the utmost skill leaves, flowers.
Fig. 187.
and even the small parts of the with this mucus, which
flowers, as the stamens, are outlined
upon the cloth
falls
the thickness of an ordinary pin-shank.
ever small
its detail,
But as
outlined.
for thickening
The whole
or however finely serrated
this outline
Hence a
it.
as a thread of about
pattern, leaves,
its
in
diameter.
At
tube
is
made by
outside)
and also to
is
is
to
broad
its
i
87,
fine
b).
This
opening
in
so pressed as to thicken (on the
raise the outline already formed.
All this has
means of preventing the " running " of dyes which be used and when thus prepared the fabric is ready
afforded a
now
formed
an opening
is
a fine darning-needle (Fig.
charged with the mucus, and through the
the tin nozzle the plastic matter
thus
the small end this tube
terminates in a tin nozzle, in the apex of which
such as would be
how-
not sufficient, means are adopted
is
conical tube of oiled paper
of about four inches in length, and with an orifice at
end of about an inch
is
;
are for
the next stage of the process.
This consists
in the
painting with dyes of various colours of
the spaces enclosed by the
mucous material
;
and a care
little is
banks of now dry but formerly
bestowed upon
this painting
such as
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART, would
production of a highly-finished water-colour
suffice for the
drawing.
way
In this
437
the pattern
exposed
dried, the colours are
for
is
The dyes having
wrought.
about six minutes to the action
of steam in a steam bath
(which
is
a sort of kit-
chen
"
over
a
pot
water),
and
steamer
"
placed
of
boiling
then
mucous matter moved by the
the re-
is
fabric
being gently rinsed a
of
vat
(Fig.
I
88).
If the
ground
to
is
the whole
coloured
be
in
water
clean
are
now
painted over by a
" re-
of the figures
and the
sist,"
then dipped
fabric
is
the dye
ground receiving
vat, the its
in
colour
as
it
is
un-
protected.
Landscapes, flowers, birds,
and
various
groups
kinds are
of pro-
by this methand some interest-
duced od,
^^^ i88.— Pattern of Fabric knto which Telegraph Posts, with their Insulators, and Telegraph
Wires are introduced.
ing sketches, which are often mistaken in
by
this
for
pure hand drawings, are wrought
semi-mechanical method.
Many thus
England
some
fabrics are
made by combinations
are in part stencilled and in
of these processes
part wrought
by
;
this last
mentioned process.
The means
of producing an effect just described appears to us
the most laborious that could well be imagined
method
is
;
yet, while the
laborious, the results achieved are in the highest degree
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
438
and nothing could be more welcome than some of
satisfactory,
the effects thus laboriously obtained.
we
Here, on a length of fabric figured by this strange process,
have a strange
some
of panels,
series
with
painted,
is
group of
exquisite
some other pretty
In each of these
over the surface.
forms, distributed
shapes
and some of other
fan -shaped,
all
flowers, a objects,
the
tenderness of hand -work,
few birds at rest or
while
on
in
an or
flight,
the ground are dispersed
blossoms, sprays, spiders'- webs, and insects in groups of singular
No
interest.
mechanical method, such as we employ,
purely
could possibly produce the effects gained by this
may
and while we "
be disposed to talk of
"
mode
of work
wasted labour
;
and
"
laborious methods," the Japanese yet succeed in producing, by
their process, effects that
all
artists
work yet achieved by our calico with art knowledge and taste.
The Japanese know have already
results are achieved
notice
the
whereas but
little
other methods of figuring fabrics, as
;
I
it
is
these only by which artistic
and while we cannot hope that our manu-
follow the Japanese methods,
facturers will
;
has satisfied persons
but the processes described are those which
said,
alone require our notice, for
their
esteem
printers
artistic
character of the
we
yet
works
commend
to
produced
in
Japan.
The
principal seat of the cotton-printing industry
and near towns
;
but the more expensive fabrics, as
is
Nagoya
silks,
are
chiefly figured in Kioto.
On
Fabrics figured in the Loom, by Embroidery, and by combined Methods.
As the
regards the methods by which fabrics receive pattern in
loom
little
need be
said, for
they are of primitive character
and the work of the Jacquard apparatus raises strings
is
;
done by a boy who
and thus enables the weaver to give pattern to
his
fabrics.
This same method of weaving was formerly employed by
us,
ART, for
sat the "
on the top of our loom
succeeded his
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
in
draw-boy,"
439
whom
Jacquard
dethroning by the ingenious contrivance which bears
name. In Japan weaving
Even
the hand.
on ahnost without mechanical
carried
is
appliances, and the shuttle
is
in those cases
passed across the warp threads by
where many colours are introduced
the various shuttles necessary for the production of the fabric are
moved more which such a
manner of a darning-needle than contrivance is moved by us.
For personal wear Japanese neutral
that in
the
in
but a
colour,
will
girl
are
fabrics
show
narrow
a
of dark
generally strip
of
bright
colour around her neck, and the sash which she winds around
her waist will often be of rich terry, with a pattern upon velvet
and
But
gold.
in
in
it
no case must she wear obtrusive colours,
bow on
save around the neck, or as a
the hair, and even these bits
of colour must be small in quantity.
The Japanese seem to understand most of the systems weaving that we employ, but they also have methods peculiar themselves.
It is
common
to find
as to produce a velvet pattern, figure,
velvet gold
may
terry cloths with parts so cut
when
and the terry as the ground
generally happens that
by looking
of to
;
the velvet appears as the
but when this
is
the case
it
the cut surface of the
into
be seen, for the Japanese often weave gold into
the substance of a fabric so that
it
can only be seen through th
cut velvet surface.
Speaking of gold, we may here remark that the thread used in
the weaving of fabrics for the production of gold tissues
nearly always shredded
paper, and that gold thread
gilt
is
is
scarcely
ever used by the Japanese weaver.
The
fabrics
gorgeous
in
used for
I
produced are very varied
in character.
colour and beautiful in effect scarcely know.
I
;
Some
are
but what these are
have seen bright coloured cloths
thrown over trays on which presents were borne to a friend, but in no other way have I seen the gorgeous tissues which they produce
utilised.
Their houses are not draped
openings have no curtains
;
and there
is
;
the
window
no furniture to
cover.
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
440 All in
I
can say
that during
is,
my
stay in Japan
never saw, either
I
the palace of the Mikado, the residence of
house of a merchant, or the cottage of an
a minister, the
any of
artisan,
their
richly coloured fabrics used, either as dress materials or in
On
other way.
the occasion of a reception given
by
any
Harry
Sir
Parkes one native lady of high rank wore a dress covered with
cherry-blossoms of the softest pink shade, and on the robes of the priestesses at
Nara were embroidered sprays of somewhat
bright colour, and, while neither was of a character similar to the
specimens of which
rich
many examples, they were
possess
I
stronger in colour than anything that
save
little
bits of
common
finery in
I
met with
in the country,
which the children of poor
parents were dressed on holiday occasions.
Amidst the ground
rich fabrics
the
often find specimens in which the
common
from one colour to another, the most
shades
variation being from
that
we
ground
In one illustration
red to white.
changes
about
I
notice
whereas
every half yard,
in
another we have this change occurring about every four inches. Besides
gorgeous
the
effects
colouring and the free use of gold,
resembling our brocaded colours or are certain
silks
mere damasks,
produced by polychromatic we have many fabrics closely
and these are either
;
in
two
distinct
their pattern rendered visible
by a
arrangement of the threads.
Then we have gauze -like
tissues
of the most charming tints
of soft greens, gray-blues, and other neutral colours, with patterns
woven upon them
in gold, or in
gold and colours
;
but
we might
almost fancy that the figures on some of these tissues had been
produced by darning, at the
back of the material
useless
cloths
;
for
fabric,
there
is
no
"
floating " of the thread
and the consequent cutting away of the
and besides these there are scores of other
which cannot possibly be described.
Something should be
said
respecting
the
patterns with which these fabrics are figured.
character of the
One
consists of a
dragon, clouds, and flowers, drawn to a somewhat large scale, and coloured
in
a
rich
and neutral manner
formed wholly of scroll-work
;
;
some have patterns
others have scroll-work grounds
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART, with circular
floral
^^\
Some have
ornaments placed upon them.
the ground covered with fan -shaped panels, in which landscapes are
wrought
and others have patterns of a wholly geometrical
;
Then
character.
there are patterns formed of clouds, of storks,
of insects, of pine leaves, of small diapers, of sailing boats, of
cobwebs, of fungi, of water, of feathers, of
bats, of
of
fire -flies,
sea-monsters, of broken diapers, irregular powderings, strange key patterns,
rosettes,
numerous
to
plaids,
waved
lines,
mention, even rain
and
elements too
other
being used
some of
in
their
designs.
Out of these strange materials the Japanese
manage
artists
to
construct patterns which are both interesting and satisfying, and,
discarding
symmetry and
their fancy
and produce designs of the wildest
Yet there
other
all
nothing outre
is
in
they give free vent to
fetters,
order.
their patterns, for
by
flatness of
treatment and evenness of distribution they achieve the production of effects having at
pean
all
same time they
the
necessary qualities of repose, although,
bid defiance to
all
the canons of Euro-
art.
What would
an English
artist
think were he asked to produce
a pattern from telegraph posts and wires, or to arrange a design in outline
boys
at
fabrics
and
flat
!
such
the
materials
little
Japanese figure
Japanese art seems to laugh at the canons by which
the European derision.
colours which should consist wholly of
Yet with
play?
designer
is
bound, and to hold our method
Clearly, without law
and without
in
order, patterns can be
constructed which are quite as acceptable as those which other nations with fixed rules have produced.
While speaking thus respecting the
art of Japan,
I
be understood to underrate the ornament which arose in
China,
developed
in
Greece,
into
the
in
Morocco, and Normandy. of a
Byzantium, and
styles
of
in
must not in
Arabia, and which
Rome, Pompeii, Turkey,
Neither do
more exalted character than
these.
I
Egypt,
Persia,
say that Japanese art Its
forms are
less
than the Greek, less dignified than those of Egypt, and in miss that purity of style which characterises
Mahometan
is
pure it
we
orna-
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
44:
Yet there
ment.
unknown little is
to
all
a variety and a freshness about
is
other systems of decoration
and while
;
which
it
is
savours
it
of the college, and makes no pretence to Attic elegance,
redolent of spring,
and has
all
it
the freshness of the fields and
the flowers.
In the sections Architecture and Art the interest of Japanese patterns
lies
in
we noticed
poetical feeling,
its
here
is
was taken
where
and
fact (Fig.
Woven
189).
of
a dress which well
illustrates this
it
much
that
it
in Kioto,
to Vienna,
enjoyed a con-
spicuous position at the International Exhibition, after
my
which
it
possession.
came The
into
pat-
tern of this dress consists
of flowers and butterflies
drawn
in colours
cloth
of
The
flowers
flies
are
upon a ground.
gold
and butter-
treated
as
flat
ornaments, and are without
shade
but
it
mony I Fig. 189.
shadow
or
not
is
the
;
har-
of colour to which
wish to
call
attention,
Woven Fabric with Cloth
of Gold Gkound AND Flowers and Flies in Colours.
perfect as
it
is,
beauty of the
though
this
is
nor the
drawing,
excellent, but the thought realised in the work,
namely. Summer.
No
one can look upon
this
beautiful dress
without feeling the influence of the sunny ground, of the profusion of richly coloured bloom, of the glorious insects which appear to
hover over the flowers
summer
while
we
could possibly
gaze.
;
and the influence makes us
No
feel
that
it
is
merely imitative treatment of flowers
convey the thought of summer so well as
this
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
we
conventional treatment does, and here
443
are pleased with the
consistency of the means employed to achieve the
while
effect,
if
we should have been offended
the rendering had been naturalistic
by inappropriateness.
The
Kioto, and
company,
all
produced
looms are owned by the
majority of the
the
banking
Mitsui
Japan are nearly
richly figured fabrics of
yet
private
individuals
in
rich
weave
also
fabrics.
Embroidery never to fabric to
be decorated
much
on as a manufacture, and
carried
is
by
be practised is
as an
ladies
in
Europe.
Embroidery, as practised
in
Japan,
more usual
as
it
is
form
seen
is
brought into this country yet these do not convey a
Two
is
of
numbers
in large
full
men work
many for
the
kinds, but the
have
been
banner -screens
;
idea of the nature of Japanese work.
They have
these.
The
on those squares which
methods of producing
Japan are
seems
stretched on a frame, and
worked
pattern
it
accomplishment.
which
results
are
peculiar
to
kind of embroidery consisting
a
wholly of raised dots similar to those often used for the centres of flowers in this country, and which result from wrapping the
thread
several
through the
when the work
round the needle and drawing the
times
coil. is
This class of work
on a small
scale,
is
made with
latter
a fine thread
and with a coarse thread
the production of large pieces, such as
we should use
for
for the panels
of walls.
The
other method
is
that of forming the ground of a
of spiral arrangements of the thread.
much Japanese embroidery fabric
through the is
used
results
on which the work
—
ground
fabric, as
is
is
It
from stitching threads to the
placed rather than from stitching
common
with
us.
say one of the one -sixteenth inch
is
formed by
two or more inches a curious effect
is
this
in
When in
a stout thread
diameter
cord being rolled into
flat
— and
the
spirals of
diameter, which are sewn to the fabric,
produced
work employed on
number
should be noticed that
;
but
large pieces.
I
have only seen I
this
method of
have also seen the ground
formed of gold threads so arranged into masses as to give much
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
444
the ground of "the hawthorn pattern;" and
the effect of
arrangement has the advantage view
it
may
from
that,
be seen, some parts of the gold
this
whatever point of be bright.
will yet
In some cases remarkable effects are achieved by shaded or
mixed yarns being
In a piece before
used.
me
as
I
write
I
see
the silk thread shaded from indigo to claret colour, from claret to green, from green to soft yellow, and from this to light blue, and
the rocks on this piece of work are formed of this mixed yarn.
all
Then we have
a sandy beech formed of
mixed
the shades are soft and silvery, and are so
Water
a curious sheen.
crestings to the waves,
from white to
A
hues.
is
worked
in
which
is
conspicuous
and
in this
in
in
shades passing
a series of amber
It
work has a
piece of
head and neck formed of a piece of flesh-coloured slightly
produce
as to
shades of blue, with white
and the clouds are worked
red, in various tints of blue,
figure
threads, but here
managed
which
silk,
modelled by wool being placed beneath the raised
The skimp
has eyes formed of talc or horn.
is
parts.
hair of the head,
eyebrows, the long but sparse moustache and beard, are
the
full
all
formed of the
finest
of
silk,
the loose ends of which give a
strange naturalistic look to the embroidery.
The
worked
lips are
with red, and a soft pink thread gives outline to the features, while the texture of a tiger standing close beside the figure
by shades of floss silk. More need not be said respecting embroidery, notice a combination of processes by which the
is
excellently given
we must
for
finest
effects
England we manufacture printed goods and woven
fabrics,
achieved in Japanese fabrics are rendered. In
and we also work embroidery, but we never attempt the three methods of producing pattern. the Japanese, for here varied, in
With of
we
find
us, also, printing seems to be
stuffs
only
;
is
to
combine
not so with
any methods employed, however
order that effects of an art
common
This
character be
employed
produced.
for the
figuring
but in Japan the methods equivalent to
our printing processes are applied to the most costly fabrics, and paid to the texture of the cloths which are
special attention
is
to receive pattern
by any method of
printing.
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART, crape
Silk it
is
a favourite
by a
often figured
is
material with
" resist "
445
the Japanese, and
being stencilled over parts of
by dyeing, a white pattern is produced on a coloured ground, as we have already seen. Such a pattern when occurring on an expensive material is generally enriched by embroidery, some of the flowers being filled in with coloured the surface, when,
or with gold, while
silks
a leaf here and there
emphasised
is
same
in the
manner.
A dress, which especially
is
woven
was
me
to
beautiful,
as
white
a
damask, figured
silk
all
over with the buds and
So
flowers of the plum. far
a woven fabric
is
it
But
figured in the loom.
now
it
goes to the printer,
and he
stencils here
there upon
its
and
surface in
"resist" fan-shaped pan-
and then
els,
fabric
in
a
We
dye.
dips
soft
the
scarlet
thus have
a
scarlet fabric figured with little
D\biNC, Painting, anu EMBKOiDrR\
plum blossoms and
outline either flowers, outline
work
is
in
part
fish,
filled
in
in
tender
animals, birds, or landscape, and the
with subdued tints of colour.
next goes to the embroiderer,
each fan-shaped panel, and
who
who works
The
a border around
enriches certain portions of the
surface with charming sprays of the in
now drawn
In each panel are
white fan-shaped panels.
fir-tree,
some
in
gold,
some
yellow-green silk thread, and some in a green shade of indigo
(Fig. 190).
This method of combining processes
is
of the greatest value
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
446
achieving art
in
effects,
and we
lose
more than
We
supposed by our exclusive modes of work.
is
generally
forget that various
processes achieve different results, and that these various effects
can be combined
a most welcome and harmonious manner.
in
The question that we have to solve as artists is not simply how we may produce the best effect by printing, by weaving, or by embroidery, but how we can produce the most welcome results Surely if by a by any processes of which we have knowledge. combination of weaving and printing, or of printing and broidery, or cloth,
only,
we can it is
em-
by a union of the three methods of giving figure to get better effects than by employing one method
our duty as well as our privilege to avail ourselves of
them.
Nothing can be more stupid than our pig-headed persistence Progress is no longer possible if we do only old methods.
in
what our
forefathers did
We
and
all
and the gulf which separates one manu-
must be crossed
facture from another
should.
;
if
we
are to advance as
have yet to learn the need of so using
all
materials as to achieve the best possible results.
doing we
may meet
with
trade
we
processes
In so
opposition and the difficulties
which spring from prejudice and ignorance, but these must be encountered and overcome or our manufactures will ultimately be to a great extent replaced
In
some
by those of
instances embroidery
Japan.-^
used to heighten the effect
a drawing, and in the case of Indian
of
golden threads are frequently
On is
is
employed
ink sketches on silk
to give sheen to clouds.
a specimen of a very beautiful character, in which the drawing
coloured,
of floss silk
we have ;
and
the lustre of ripe capsicums given by threads
in a
melon garden by moonlight we have touches
of embroidery which give the idea of the yellow blossoms in a strange and effective manner.
Another method by which
fabrics receive pattern in
Japan
is
evidently derived from Central Asia, and practised to this day in It may here be noticed that Japanese tea-trays have ahnost entirely superseded our own, and have materially injured our manufacture of such articles, as their price is less '
than that of English goods, and their art qualities greatly superior.
ART, India
;
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
but the Japanese objects figured by the process about to
be described are most frequently
The mode silk
of procedure
silk scarves.
as follows.
is
crape are taken, each about three yards
inches in width (twelve inches
Fig. igi.
Fabric tied ready FOR DYEING.
These two pieces of forming one double
is
Two
Fabric untied and stretched flat.
Fig. 193.
untied.
fabric
are placed
Thus
fabric,
and
placed, will
together so that one
we
Finished Silk Crape
manipulated together.
common meat
Fig. 195.
The
Fabric.
A
is
regard them as
will
forget that
there
are two
and the two are
thicknesses, for they are both treated as one,
Fig. 194.
pieces of white
length and twelve
in
the usual width of native cloths).
Fabric being
Fig. 192.
exactly over the other.
a
447
Part of a Striped Silk Crape Fabric. stripes being
formed by a method of tying.
small piece of pointed stick resembling
skewer, and a quantity of
waxed
thread, are the
requisites of the process.
From below
a small portion of the fabric
is
on the point of the skewer into the form of a
pressed upwards
little
cone
of,
say.
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
448
half an inch in height.
Around
so that a Httle tuft or knot
The skewer from
this
is
this
cone waxed thread
formed on the surface of the
now withdrawn and removed about
is
little tuft,
when
it is
employed
wrapped round by the waxed
formation of tufts
is
repeated
them, when
ready for dyeing.
in its
dipped
in
turn
it
is
the entire fabric
This
thread. is
covered with
Thus prepared the
fabric
is
a dye-vat, which in this case generally contains scarlet
The dye
or pink colouring matter.
and
till
fabric.
half an inch
to raise a second cone,
is
which
wrapped,
is
at the
same time shrinks
it
gives colour to the cloth,
hence, where the dye has
;
in contact with the crape a shrinking has taken place.
come Thus
The waxed thread is permanent conical eminences are formed. being unwound, and not only has tuft little each now removed, a curious fabric been formed with a surface consisting of conical
eminences, but also a fabric variegated
wax
thread was
upon
it
in
in
colour
;
for
where the
contact with the crape the dye could not act
thus by the one operation a fabric has been produced
;
both variegated and with a
rich,
coarsely -granulated
character
and 195).
(Figs. 191, 192, 193, 194-
The
heio-ht
eminences
much.
are
to
which these
brought
varies
In some instances conical
tufts of half
an inch
height
in
completely and regularly cover the fabric, while in other cases the tufts are but small and are
arranged into patterns.
Common
cotton
cloths are
also treated in a similar
manner,
only here the tufts are large .
Cotton Fabric figured nv TvEiNG AND Dyeing.
but by the
stretching
fabric after the
dyeing
of is
;
the
com-
pleted irregularly shaped star-like figures have been produced over
the surface (Fig. 196).
We
must not hope that English manufacturers will adopt a yet some of the crape scarves treated process so laborious as this ;
ART, in this
manner
are
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
amongst the most
beautiful
449
and dainty of fabrics.
But what the Japanese do by hand we could achieve by the aid of machines
;
and
it
surely would not be very difficult to bind
the fabric into tufts by revolving spindles of suitable description.
This interesting manufacture
—^Narumi
and Arimatsu
shibori (shibori
meaning
— and
is
carried on in
tied or knotted).
2
two small towns
the fabrics are called
G
Narumi-
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
450
CHAPTER
VII.
MINOR MANUFACTURES OF JAPAN. In
many manufactures
certain printing processes are employed,
as in the production of wall-papers, hand-screens, umbrellas, fancy
For whatever purpose
papers, and other things.
may
printing" processes
be employed, the method of engraving and of getting im-
pressions from the blocks seems to be similar.
A
drawing
prepared on a thin piece of paper, and this
is
pasted on a block of cherry wood, which across,
the grain.
The engraver
knives and chisel-like tools.
cuts
In this
is
is
cut with, and not
through the paper with
way
those wooden blocks are
prepared which are used for printing the illustrations of books as well
The
as for producing the
native drawings
in
this
papers used
in
the manufactures
work were engraved
in
the
:
same
manner. Just
as
we
use
several blocks
the production of wall-
for
when
papers, so the Japanese use various blocks
occur in the one pattern
;
different colours
but their methods of printing are so
simple that shading can be effected without difficulty by the use of but one block.
In the production
upwards on a table or the block is
is
of wall-papers the stool
block
from four to six inches
fed with colour in various ways.
is
placed face
in height,
and
Sometimes a brush
used for this purpose, when colours are not unfrequently blended
together, so that a polychromatic effect
sometimes by a
sort of pad, like that
is
given by one printing
;
used by engravers for the
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
production of proof impressions
451
and sometimes by a membrane
;
stretched over a circular frame to which a long handle (this feeder closely
by
resembles
methods, the colour
either of the latter
" dabber," or to the frame,
attached
is
form a shallow stew-pan).
in
and by these
If fed
applied to the
given to the block
is
it
first
is
;
but the dabber appears to be chiefly used where colours are
When
shaded from dark towards white. pared with colour a sheet of parper with
in contact is
its
the block
placed upon
is
it
thus pre-
is
and pressed
by the hand or by a pad which
surface either
bamboo shoot
generally formed of a scale from a
as
it
first
from the ground.
issues
In no instance where paper
brought down
on the paper.
always pressed on the block.
seems ever to have been used
observe the block
I
On the contrary, the No printing-press of any in
described being that by which
When
printed did
is
paper was description
Japan, the simple process already
all
printing
speaking of wall-papers,
it
is
effected.
must be noticed that while
these are used on the " slides " which separate the various rooms
of a house, they are never produced in continuous in
small sheets.
lustre effect
which
powdered mica. a sort of paste material
is
Silver
so
is
common
in
their
in
rolls,
them being due is
Fans are made
to
in
sizes
be used
many
to finely
generally
use of this
;
seem
but always
production, the
The size used for binding the colours made of rice but I do not think the
invariable, for
different roots,
never used
is
made from
of different sorts, and in various cases.
parts of Japan, but the cheaper kinds
are produced in the district of Kioto, while the costly productions
come
chiefly
from Tokio.
The Japanese
a native invention, and assert that half of the seventh century.
They
wing, which was studied as a model. originally
that
it
formed of twenty-five
was introduced
The
into
it
flat
claim the folding fan as
was
first
made
refer
its
origin
They
in
the latter
to the bat's
also assert that
it
was
boards united by strings, and
China from Japan.
uses of this familiar object are various.
It is
the house-
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
452
hold bellows with which the
machine by which the chaff girls
use
it
is
kindled
office
;
Roman
important individual has rather the shape of a
There
fan.
than the wood side-pieces when the fan
perfumed
way
closed
is
paddle
a form of
is
much broader
folding fan peculiar to Nara, in which the folds are
its
at wrestling
but the particular form used by
than that which we associate with the
form or other the fan finds
Dancing-
rice.
indispensable as an
it
employed by the umpire
It is
matches as a badge of
the winnowing
is
it
;
separated from the
is
a manner which renders
in
adjunct to the dance.
this
fire
;
and
in
some
There are
into every house.
with scented material enclosed between the two
fans,
thicknesses of paper
there are waterproof fans, which are used
;
as sprinklers in hot weather
by being dipped
water and then
in
swung backwards and forwards in the ordinary way. The Japanese often ask great artists to make a sketch on a fan, great writers to inscribe a few
words of poetry, or celebrated men to place
autograph on such an object photographs of Besides
;
their
and these they preserve as we do
friends.
the
folding
screens, or flat fans,
fan
made
in
peculiar this
any other part of the country.
Nara, there are hand
to
town which we do not
find
silk
and sometimes of paper, but
like
our stencil plates, only the perforations are exceedingly
Sometimes the pattern figures,
and
in all
cases they are perforated
is
fine.
consists of diaper-work or small geometrical
at other times of flowers, animals, or birds
cases the figure
in
These are sometimes formed of
;
but
in all
produced by perforation.
These fans are always made by hand six thicknesses are cut through at the
;
but
same
if
formed of paper
time, while
if
silk
is
used a smaller number of thicknesses are brought together during the operation of cutting. is
The accuracy with which
this perforating
accomplished, and the minuteness of the work, causes us to
wonder
at the skill of the
workmen,
for lines
shank of a medium-sized pin are commonly but also
no thicker than the
cut,
not only
in
paper
in silk.
When
these pieces are
made
into screens one piece
is
pasted
on the front and another on the back, but they are so arranged
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
the perforations of one
that
4 53
exactly over the perforations of
fit
the other.
There
in
is
Japan a material which we
This
crape.
is
my
but the process of manufacture
;
stay in the country.
am
I
catalogue of the Philadelphian Exhibition
which
may be
paper, which
is
a most perfect imitation of the real crape,
called the matrix-paper
mentioned
'
it
the Japanese
in
wooden board
is
In the
first
is
place, that
prepared by laying a moistened sheet
cut with fine grooves running either parallel
or crossing one another at very small angles, and by beating so as to force
did not see
:
ingenious and most simple process.
of strong paper on a
I
therefore compelled to give
the description of the process which appeared
" The crape made by a very
it
a tough, fibrous paper to which a crape-like sur-
face has been given
during
crape-paper, as
call
crimped woven fabric which we know as
closely resembles the
into these grooves.
It is
it
with hard brushes
then painted over with the frequently
consequence of which operation the paper becomes so
shibu,' in
after having been stretched out it refolds by itself. For the production of crape several sheets of thin moistened paper are laid alternately with sheets of the above-mentioned matrix-paper, one upon the elastic that
when
let
go
The package
other.
is
then
wound on
several times with a strong lever, as
By means
of wood.
if it
to a
round piece of wood, and pressed
were
to
be stripped
off
from
into the folds of the matrix,
and consequently folded
in a similar
is
forced
manner.
repeating this manipulation ten or twelve times, each time unrolling to
this piece
of this operation the soft and moistened paper
it
in
By order
change the position of the paper between the sheets of matrix-paper, and by the paper becomes gradually folded in it again on the piece of wood,
winding all
directions, the intersecting points of all these folds producing the craped
process causes the
Naturally, this
surface.
This kind of craping
is
paper to shrink considerably.
done with printed pictures, and also with coloured
papers, which are used for coiifures."
Paper leathers also receive their textures in
the
last
" grain "
these
Paris
in a like
way, and
Exhibition some pieces with the coarsest of
were shown.
The
patterns which are embossed
leather-like surfaces are
upon
almost always due to the fabric
being hammered with hard brushes upon a matrix in much the same manner as we form the moulds in the process by which our
newspapers are stereotyped.
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
454
With regard
to baskets there
is
nothing of importance to be
number of
noticed, except the fact that in a large
formed from
flat
work which
sheets of plaited
cases they are
are cut into shape
and joined together.
When plaited
are covered
The is
made
thus
work
the basket
by
strips of
plaited
generally lined with a kind of
is
from that of the exterior, and the seams
differing
bamboo sewn over
in basket-like fashion.
work of which the exterior of the basket
is
formed of shreds of the bamboo, on one side of which
made that
is
hard glossy surface characteristic of the stem of the plant, and
much
these sheets are plaited for chairs.
surface,
in the
All good baskets have as their exterior this glabrous
which possesses the quality of
The
degree.
manner of our cane bottoms remarkable
resisting dirt to a
inner lining of the basket
is
formed of
flat
laths of
extreme thinness, which are cut from that portion of the bamboo which
remains
Common
used
baskets,
purposes, are
the
after
made
surface
silicious
has
removed.
been
holding eggs and other household
for
of the inner portions of the stem, like the
lining of the better works.
Baskets are also
made
in
Japan from the shoots of the Westeria
creeper, but these are not in interest attaching to them.
general use, and there
no special
is
Occasionally a beautiful basket
may
fine string of some kind instead of bamboo. Such a basket, rubbed over with brown lacquer and dusted with
be seen formed of
gold, ful
is
before
me
as
I
write.
We
have already seen that beauti-
works are also formed of fern fronds
The
(see
page 194).
Japanese are the best basket-makers in the world, and
They
they alone have raised the manufacture to an art industry.
make baskets which are not only useful but
beautiful,
of them must be classed as true art objects. carefully considered, the patterns into
are beautiful, the contrast of open ated,
and the handle
is
often of
and many
Their forms are
which the bamboo
is
worked
work with solid is duly apprecimost dainty character, while its
curve almost invariably forms a pleasant contrast with the lines of the other parts of the work.
As
I
write
I
have by
my
side a
number of baskets from Japan, China, Formosa, India, Jamaica,
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
455
Ceylon, Java, Haiti, Spain, and Algeria, but none of them are
comparable as works of
Boxes are
art with those
made
also
from Japan.
of fine basket-work on which lacquer
sprays are sometimes drawn, the interstices between the strips of
bamboo being the flower
is
things are in
we
are
all
filled
up
some
familiar with the egg-shell
Sachi
Immense bamboo
many
bags,
in
these are as an
piles
and
orang-es
feet
filled
The Japanese
cups covered with
covered
common.
are
formed of
length, are also
in
to a river, as
strips of
we have already seen bamboo for carrying
;
fruits.
from
differ
all
other people in the extended use
of material, and in the mingling of a
The advantages which
one object.
produced where
with boulder-stones and then arranged
embankment
and other
materials,
and from the mingling of
object,
greater than
is
sachi
similarly
bottles
nets are formed from strips of
little
is
Cabinets, luncheon baskets, and other
cases covered with plaited bamboo-work, and
basket-work.
;
so that a level surface
to be drawn.
we might
number of substances
in the
accrue from this use of varied different substances in the
one
at first suppose.
In the sections on the metal manufactures the fact was noted that the Japanese use metals for their art qualities, and to a great
extent disregard their intrinsic worth. also, for
an art workman
in
It is
so with other materials
Japan seems to search the earth and
the seas for material with which to produce beautiful objects.
A ivory,
but
pipe-case which
and
its
it is
I
have just been inspecting
decorated with inlaid sprays of
interest rests in the fact that colour
by the use of formed of of ivory
different kinds
is
formed of birds
;
given to the sprays
Thus we have
of material.
tortoise-shell, of pearl, of gold, of
dyed green, while the
is
bamboo and
oxydised
leaves
silver,
and
birds are formed of horn, through
which coloured pigments are just
visible.
But each bird has a
golden eye.
By employing and colour
is
this variety of material richness of effect is got,
also secured
;
whereas we to a great extent lose the
advantag-es of colour through confining ourselves to certain kinds
456
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
of materials.
197 gives a wood pipe-case in which flowers formed of various metals are inlaid.
and
Fig.
butterflies
Fig.
197.— Pipe-case, formed of wood, with pattern of chased inlaid metalsgold, silver, and bronze being used in the work.
But besides combining various substances
the one object
in
the Japanese use materials which no other people
employ
in their
manufactures.
Bark
is
worked
into trays of considerable beauty,
And
either left plain or lacquered.
made
veneer, the trays being chiefly in the district of
The bark used what suberous the
Nikko
is
Hakone.
is
is
of various kinds, but that most
of ash-gray colour, with a rough and some-
character.
trays
largely used as a
is
Nikko and the veneer work done
in
as a veneer
generally employed
bark
That employed
for the
manufacture of
comparatively smooth and ligneous, and appears
to be the inner bark of a cone-bearing tree.
The
inner layers of
a certain kind of fibrous bark are also used for the
temples
thatch
of
and a roof of this material which has become celebrated
;
Japan owing ing which
it
to the perfection of its
has lasted,
In Japan
The
which are
I
is
in
workmanship and the time dur-
pointed out as one of the sights of Nara.
purchased a
set of sachi
cups
made
of orange-peel,
rind of half an orange had been shaped into a beautiful form,
and covered with a thin coating of transparent
dried,
Internally the cup
These little
little
vessels
was covered with red lacquer of
cups were not mere ornaments
from which the Japanese would
should wine from a Venetian glass.
prove durable.
But
I
And
;
lacquer.
perfect finish.
they were dainty
sip their sachi, as
we
they would certainly
suppose that the British workman would as
soon think of making his breakfast of cowhides as he would of
making orange-peel into cups. I found in Tokio a manufacture which concerned
itself
with
the working of sea-weed into pocket-books, plaited hats, and other things.
The form
of algae used was evidently a tangle.
By some
ART, means the
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
was extracted from
salt
while the beautiful smoothness of
The town
Okabe
of
it,
its
Suruga
in
and
was rendered pliable
it
was
surface is
457
retained.
almost entirely devoted to
the manufacture of mats, trays, and chop-sticks, from the stems of the
common
brake
Mats
fern.
are
made by
number of stems
a
of equal size being arranged in parallel rows and held together
by long copper pins which run crosswise through the stems, or by being
first
pinned and then plaited together by a
thread
little
The
trays are formed in the same manner, only they by one or two stems similar to those of which the bottom part is made. The margin is generally tied to the bottom part at two or three points by strips of cherry bark (Fig. 63). At Yumoto-kawabata, in the province of Sagami, baskets, which are beautiful in shape, and hats of helmet-like form, are
of cane.
are margined
made from
the fronds of a pinnate fern which are most ingeniously
The
plaited together.
pieces of frond used for this purpose are
generally about twelve or fifteen inches in length, and the pinnae
When
extend to about six inches on either side of the mid-rib. dried this frond sistence
one-third of
The sawn
smooth, of
its
in
the gourd
is
also used
and even teapots are made.
in
pilgrim bottle,
is
pared to about
Japan, and with
A
is
;
it
gourd which
bottle
two lengthwise makes two excellent
interiors are well lacquered
I
and leathery con-
soft buff colour,
original consistency (Fig. 64).
rind of
cups, ladles, is
is
but before being plaited the mid-rib
;
ladles
when
their
but the use of the gourd, save as the
not general in Japan.
have seen excellent stands, with lacquered and inlaid orna-
ments upon them, formed of those fungoid masses which we sometimes see protruding from the sides of
box formed of
When
the
bamboo
almost enveloped
gus shoot.
first
rises
And
I
have seen a
from the ground the stem
in large scale-like leaves like
These are shed when the
their appearance.
Such
scales are
is
a colossal aspara-
foliacious
branches
somewhat scoop-shaped,
make
as they
or less encircle the stem.
They
are gray in colour, fibrous,
slightly striated in character
owing
to their
more and
trees.
a sea-urchin (Echinus) shell, with lacquered interior.
endogenous forma-
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
458
These
tion.
made
much
work now commonly cut
of the
but in this case they are most
;
into little squares vertically
as veneer to
scales are used
Tajima
at
arranged that the
so
and horizontally
of the scale run
fibres
in the alternate squares.
Flattened grass stems are also largely used for the covering of
wooden boxes are
made with
and when dyed into many colours beautiful objects
;
simple material
this
:
Bamboo
scales are sometimes,
though not frequently, covered with lacquer and used as scoops. have
I
Japanese
in
mentioned
a
number of
used
materials
by the
order to show English manufacturers that they do not
avail themselves of
many
materials capable of being formed into
beautiful objects
but
have not even named the two which
;
more of the
furnish
I
useful
scarcely excepting clay itself
To enumerate would be
make
of Japan than any other, These are the bamboo and paper.
objects
the various uses to which the
to furnish a
list
bamboo
is
put
altogether unreadable, for they seem to
everything of bamboo, and to treat
it
every imaginable
in
manner. It
must be remembered that the bamboo
giant grass, with hollow stem
Thus
it
is
a tough, fibrous,
divided horizontally at the knots.
consists of a series of cylindrical
chambers superposed one
on the other, and separated from each other by horizontal wooden divisions
— the
knots or divisions being very close to each other
near the root of the plant, and removed from each other by a considerable distance in the higher part of the stem.
from these
It is
knots that the thin shoots on which the foliage
borne are
is
protruded.
Before me, as
I
write, are a series of carved
boxes each made
from a section of the stem with two of the transverse divisions,
box and come from the
the one forming the top and the other the bottom of the these boxes vary in height according as the joint has
centre or lower portion of the stem.
Here
is
a sachi bottle formed
of an elongated joint, and with an arched handle. beautiful spray of the magnolia carved in the
;
manner
On
it
is
a
called cameo,
and with a bud so arranged as to become the spout from which the sachi
is
poured.
A
plugged hole at the top permits of the
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART,
459
vessel being filled with the exhilarating fluid (Fig. 198). is
a
Here
bordered with a Greek key pattern, and on one side of
spill
which a snake
carved, while on the other
is
we have
a flower,
the surface being lowered in both cases so that the fieure stands
Fig. igg.— Teapot, formed of portion of
bamboo
stem, with three septa.
Sachi Bottle, formed of a porbamboo stem, with two horizonone becoming the top, the septa
Fig. 198.
tion of a tal
—
Tray, formed of the carved transverse bamboo stem {the dissepiment).
Fig. 200.
partition of a
other the bottom, of the vessel.
out in relief
But besides the carving,
riched with a
little
and a warm brown flowers cut
upon
it
formed out of a short root
hole
is
made
in
Here
colour, prevail.
in intaglio.
Here
joint.
in
the top, to which a
consists of a tuft of lateral shoots.
is
another
is
en-
silver,
spill
with
a tea-box or tea-caddy
is
Here
a root joint, with the spout carved
A
beautiful spill
this
lacquer-work, in which gold, oxydised
is
a teapot also formed of
the thickness of the side. lid is fitted,
Here
is
and the handle
another
made
out
of two cells and three of the dissepiments, the one being utilised as the handle (Fig. 199).
But before
me
I
see scoops
made
of
portions of the stem, trays formed of the horizontal divisions, both
carved (Fig. 200) and plain; medicine boxes; portable writing-cases
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
46o a
box formed by
splitting a portion of the
of boxes, consisting of a the form of a tripod
number of superposed
and many other
;
stem lengthwise; a nest joints
a censer in
;
But the Japanese
things.
make useful ladles. They use large joints for the carrying of water as we use pails. They make fences of a hundred different kinds by plaiting and
attach handles to portions of the stem and thus
intertwining
the
shoots
thin
in
various
ways
(Figs,
i
to
15).
They make sun blinds by threading little bits of bamboo on strings, as we thread beads they split it into laths and form mats by attaching the strips together with threads they make They split a stem throughout the spokes of their fans of bamboo. a portion of its length and make a hand screen by spreading the They make their split portions and pasting paper over them. fishing-rods of the bamboo they convey water in bamboo stems from which the transverse members or dissepiments have been ;
;
;
removed; and the gutters around
Japan
formed of
their houses are
Their baskets are of the bamboo (willow
material. for
basket-work)
;
and,
by hammering
it till
this
not used in
is
it is
reduced to
a broken and fibrous condition, they form a fuse used for blasting operations
;
while the tooth-brush
is
a bit of
bamboo
is
put
in
stem, with
These are some of the
the end rendered fibrous by hammering. uses to which the
bamboo
Japan, but they are only a few
out of a multitude.
The Japanese paper that they treat
it
is
in various
ance of other substances.
tough and
ways so
fibrous,
and we have seen
as to give to
Thus they make from
it
the appear-
it
a material
closely resembling leather, and also an imitation of tortoise-shell
so like the substance imitated that
the real
shell.
passes through
They make it
almost be used for In
its
as
it
it
might readily be taken
for
a paper so gossamer-like that the air
would through a
net,
and which might
ladies' veils.
leather-like form paper
is
used for the making of pocket-
books, tobacco-pouches, pipe-cases, satchels, and for most of the
purposes to which we should apply leather. tion tortoise-shell
it
is
inlaid into
In the form of imita-
cabinets and trays.
Japanese
pocket-handkerchiefs are formed of paper, and some of these
may
ART.
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
461
be rubbed up into a ball without their tearing, when they become
Small parcels are almost invariably
as soft as the finest cambric. tied with string
formed of twisted paper.
formed of paper, as well as the paper
is
also put to
have now, so
I
devoted to
Waterproof coats are "
of the jinrikishas, and
we apply
far as I could, described
in
it
England.
the arts and the art
want of space has compelled me
to treat
The art of Japan is so full of volume and many illustrations should be
subjects imperfectly.
interest that a large it
be employed
aprons
those uses to which
all
industries of Japan, but
some of the
"
alone if
and especially should coloured
;
justice
is
done to
to be
illustrations
The manufacturing
it.
processes are so varied and so interesting that a volume should also. My book may, however, awaken some interest in the beautiful works which Japan produces, and throw some little light on the architecture, the art, and the
be devoted to their consideration
manufactures of the country. in
productions of others.
the
or any of them,
Some
I
may
It
own manufactures by
our
improvement
also lead to
calling attention to excellences If
should achieve these
it
my
shall feel that
interesting manufactures
knowledge
I
have been unable to describe
and one of the most
want of
i.e.
the manufacture of cloisonne enamel-work on porcelain,
;
While
been obliged to pass unnoticed. detail
of the process, and after
Nagoya, most kindly got
them
in
complete set of specimens.
trading firm,
was sold
To me
in
own
have
I
observed every
These
which appears
goods.
But, un-
and no one got a
parts,
they were
all lost,
no opportunity of analysing the substances used
The
I
the substances used.
mistake for their
fortunately, the collection
Japan
a specimen of every process in all
were sent to the care of a London to have sold
in
interesting,
the country Dr. Roritz, of
I left
me
for
the manufacture, and samples of
results,
labour has been well bestowed.
for
sufficient
in
in
and
I
had
the process.
wires are attached to a biscuit-ware and not to a glazed
surface,
and
(probably a
to
this
liquid
they are stuck by a resin
or
a
solid
gum -like
volatile
oil).
substance
When
all
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
462
the wires have been fixed in their places, the whole work
and
biscuit
—
are smothered
in a white semi-fluid
—
wires
The
matter.
and sent to an oven, where the white matter But this subwith which it has been covered becomes vitrified. It has no tendency to run, but stance never actually melts. simply becomes hard and gritty; is it borax? It is this substance object
which
now
is
dried,
fixes the wires in their places,
manufacture
enamel colours are placed
in
the cells and are vitrified
process of filling and of vitrifying
come
with a true enamel.
filled
till it is
secret of the
After the wires are thus fixed the soft
here.
rests
and the whole
repeated so that the
is
The work
all
and
this
cells
be-
now ground down
is
smooth, and the outer edges of the wires are
all
then comes a polishing process, after which the work In
;
distinct
;
finished.
is
respects this manufacture resembles that of cloisonne metal
objects,
save
them
soldering cloisonne
in
is
now
The whole
the to
of the
fixing
metal,
and the
wires
to
earth
instead
of
metal
manufacture of the
so familiar as to require no description.
of the manufacturing processes of Japan are con-
ducted without the aid of any mechanical contrivances whatever, I do not think that the country and with the simplest of tools. boasts a saw of sufficient length to cut through a large log of
The saw has
wood. it
and work plank
is
is
begun on the opposite
cut.
The plane
so does the saw.
I
when
the form of a butcher's chopper, and
has cut well into the angle at the end of a log, the log side.
By
is
repeated turnings a
cuts pulling towards the
workman, and
never saw a lathe with a continuous
motion, save in the Royal Arsenal, which
is
turned,
rotar}-
nothing more than
and I never but once saw a labour-saving a European workshop Rice is husked by being contrivance of any kind in the country. The pestle placed in a sort of mortar into which a pestle falls. by a fulcrum supported is attached to a horizontal piece of wood ;
in the centre.
On
thus the pestle
is
By
this repeated
the end opposite to the pestle a
raised
:
man
stands
but by his jumping off the pestle
;
falls.
stepping on the end and jumping off the process
of husking the rice
is
accomplished.
In the corner of a field
I
once saw one of these mills with a
ART,
AND ART MANUFACTURES. beam where
kind of bucket placed on the end of the
would
stand.
filled this
Fig. 201.
A
small
water -spout
bucket with water, when
it
coming from
the
a
and thus
let
man
hillside
But the
raised the pestle.
Humorous Sketch of a Man working a Rice Mill, who jerked the fulcrum from its socket.
act of raising upset the water,
463
bv his energy has
the pestle
humorous native sketch of an energetic workman, who by exuberant energy has displaced the beam,
is
A
fall.
his
given in Fig. 201
;
and the delighted man who has found out the labour-saving contrivance
is '
given, together with his mill, in Fig. 202.^
A
similar contrivance
is still
in use in the
north of Ensiland.
This, as
I
464
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
FiQ. 202.
— Rice
ISIili,
wokkeu
by
watek power,
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
ART, have just the
said, is the
only machine that
productions of the
465
ever saw in Japan, yet
I
country would
lead
us
to
that
infer
machinery of an advanced character must be common. Various forms of water-wheels are known, but during all my travels I never saw one.
The
may
following
be useful, as
is
it
a
of the chief woods
list
of the country, with the Japanese, the English, and the botanical
name
of each, the natural order to which the tree belongs, and
the chief uses to which each
is
by Motoyoshi Ono
put, as prepared
of Tokio for the instruction of engineers, students, and merchants.
Magnolia
Magnolia.
Ho-no-ki.
hypolciica S. et Z.
Used
Magnoliacea?.
sword scabbards and cabinet-work.
for
CercidiphyHum.
Katsura.
Used
liaceae.
Mokkoku.
Used
Ternstroemia.
Magno-
et Z.
and boxes.
Tej-nstra'tnia
Japonica
TernstroemiacecTe.
Tli.
for joinery.
Kiwada.
Phellodendron.
Used
Cercidiphyllum Japonicinu S.
for furniture
Phellodeiidroii aniurcnse Riip?\
Xanthoxylacea?.
for joinery.
Sweet hovenia.
Kenpo-nashi.
Ho^ietiia duh/'s
TJi.
Rhamnacece.
Used
for joinery.
Horse-chestnut-tree.
To-chi-no-ki.
Used
^-Esciiliis
iurbinata Bl.
Sapindaceae.
for joinery.
Urushi.
Lacquer-tree.
Dc.
RJiiis ver)ncife7-a
Anacardiacea?.
Used
for
boxes and joinery.
for
Kaki.
Sopliora Japonica L.
Sophora.
Yenju.
Cherry wood.
Sakura.
Used
Leguminoste.
Pruniis pseiidocerasiis Litid.
for joinery.
Rosaceje.
Used
woodcuts and joinery.
Persimmon wood.
Diospyros kaki L.
Ebenacea?.
Used
for
joinery.
Kuro-gaki.
persimmon.
Black
Diospyros kaki L.
Ebenaceje.
Used
for joinery.
Yego-no-ki.
Styrax.
Sfyrax Japonicum
S. ct Z.
Styracacene.
Used
for
joinery and turnery. Shoji. Kiri.
Kind of
for boxes
Kusu.
ash-tree.
Paulownia.
and
Used
for joinery.
Scrophulariacere.
Used
Cinnaviouuiin cnmpliora F. Xces. et Ehcrn.
Lauracese.
for joinery.
Yama-giri.
Used
Oleacea?.
furniture.
Camphor.
Used
F7-axinus.
Paiihnvnia ivipo-ialis S.et Z.
Wood
oil-tree.
Elcrococca
for joinery.
2
H
cordata
Bl.
Euphorbiacese.
JAPAN: ITS ARCHITECTURE,
466
Ze/kowa Kcaki
Zelkowa (planera).
Keyaki.
Used
Urticacea;.
Sieb.
for timber, joinery, furniture, etc.
Aphananthe.
Muku-ye-no-ki.
Used for joinery. Kuwa. White mulberry. and Nara,
aspera
Aplianatitlie
Morns
Urticace^e.
PI.
alba L.
Urticacea_\
crispiila
Bl.
Used
for joinery
furniture.
Kind of oak.
Querais
Used
Amentiferre.
for
handles, ships, and timber.
Used Amentifera;. Kind of oak. Qiierciis ciispidata Th. and timber. Amentiferae. (literals thalassica Hance. Shira-gashi. Kind of oak. Used for handles, ships, and timber. Kind of oak. Qucrcus acuta TJi. Amentifera;. Used for Aka-gashi. handles, ships, and timber. Querais sp. Amentifera?. Used for handles, Sawaguri. Kind of oak. ships, and timber.
Shihi-no-ki.
for handles, ships,
Kuri.
Castanea vulgaris Laiiik.
Chestnut -tree.
Used
Conifera;.
Used
Pinus Tlnmbcrgii Paralat.
Black pine.
0-matsu.
Amentiferae.
and timber.
for boxes, joinery, furniture,
for timber.
Red
Me-matsu.
pine.
Pinus
de7isiflo7'a S.
et Z.
Conifera;.
Used
for
timber.
Hime-ko-matsu.
Used
S.
et
Z.
Coniferre.
and timber.
Larix
Larch -tree.
Kara-matsu.
Pinus paT^tnflora
Yellow pine.
for joinery
leptolepis Cord.
Conifera?.
Used
for
Conifera?.
Used
for
timber.
Momi.
Abies firnia S.
Fir (Coarse texture).
et Z.
timber and boxes. Fir (fine texture).
Shirabe. for
Abies niensiesii S.
et
Z.
Conifera;.
Used
boxes and timber. Fir (white wood).
Tohi.
Abies alcokiana Lindl.
Conifera\
Used
for
boxes and timber. Tsuga. Sugi. for
Fir.
Abies Tsuga S.
Japanese
cedar.
et Z.
Used
Coniferaj.
Cryptonieria japouica Don.
for timber.
Conifera;.
Used
timber and cooper's work.
Kurobe-sugi.
Used Hiba.
for
Japanese
cedar.
Cryptonieria japonica Do?l
Coniferre.
timber and cooper's work.
Thujopsis.
Thujopsis dolabrata S.
ct.
Z.
Conifera\
Used
for
timber (much valued).
Nedzuko. fera;.
Sawara.
Used
Selaginellense Thujopsis.
Used for timber. Kind of white cedar. fyr
4-
Thujopsis
l(Ttevi7-ens
Lind.
Clianiceyparis pisifera S. ct Z.
timber and cooper's work.
Coni-
Conifenu.
ART,
Juniperus.
Jimiperus
and timber, Arbor vitee. Tlnija.
nipponica
Maxiii.
Coniferae.
for joinery
Wa-byakudan.
Yew-tree.
Araragi.
Coniferae.
for timber
Beni-byakusin.
Used
467
Kind of white cedar. Chamcccyparis obtusa S.et Z. (much valued).
Hi-no-ki.
Used
AND ART MANUFACTURES.
Taxiis
Used
Coniferae.
aispidata
S.
et
Z.
for joiner}'.
Coniferte.
Used
for
joinery.
Kaya,
Nut-bearing tree resembling the yew-tree.
Used Icho.
for
Ginko
boxes and tree.
Torreya nuciferce Z. et S.
fine timber.
Cinko biboba S.et Z.
Coniferae.
chessboards.
THE END.
Printed hy R.
&
R. Clark, Edhilmrgh,
Used
for
boxes and
l'^
BOSTON PUBLIC LIBRARY
llllllillllll,, 3 9999 05692 2899
:^^-.
ys^
m